Skip to main content

Full text of "The quest of the chief good : expository lectures on the book Ecclesiastes, with a new translation : a commenrary for laymen"

See other formats


LIBRARY 

Theo 

logical  Seminary. 

PRINCETON,  N.  J.    , 

Case 

Division. 3.SJ.4..V.5.  . 

1     ShJf 

Secti9n....0..'.V:-0.-/... 

Book 

1 

•. ' No,... ■ 

.tiN  »^  "i^  %ef 


EXPOSITORY     LECTURES 


THE    BOOK     ECCLESIASTES, 


A     NEW     TRANSLATION, 


SAMUEL    COX. 


%  Comment arg  for  ^agmjit. 


LONDON : 
ARTHUR  MIALL,  18,  BOUTERIE  STREET,  FLEET  STREET. 


YATr.S   AND    ALEXANDFTt, 

rniNTKns, 

SYMONDS    INN,    tllANCF.nY    LANK. 


TO 

Xtarg   Allien   ^ajc]^, 

THE   BEST  FRIEND 
HE   HAS   YET   FOUND   OR  HOPES   TO   FIND, 

THIS  VOLUME 

AFFECTIONATELY   INSCRIBED 
BY 

THE  AUTHOK. 


P  U  E  F  A  C  E. 


HERE  is  now  no  dearth  of  Commentaries 

adapted  to  the  use  of  Scholars.     But  all 

men  are  not  scholars,  nor  even  all  who  love  and 

study  the  Bible.   Among  these  there  are  many  who 

have  little  Greek,  less  Hebrew;  and   many  more 

who  are  acquainted    with  no  language  but  their 

own.    For  such  students  of  the  Bible  comparatively 

little  has  been  done.     They  have  no  Translation  on 

the  accuracy  of  which  they  can  rely,  nor  do  those 

whose  learning  and  godliness  give  them  authority 

seem  at  all  disposed  to  furnish  them  with   one. 

The  best  Commentaries  of  the  day  are  not  written 

for   them,   nor   popularized   for    their   use.      And 

meantmie, 

with  no  parade 
Of  Hebrew  or  Greek 
To  make  thcni  afraid, 


PREFACE. 


many  of  the  most  subtle  and  daring  assaults  on  the 
Sacred  Documents  are  conveyed  to  them  in  their 
own  tongue. 

The  surest  defence  against  such  assaults  lies,  I 
think,  not  m  formal  refutations  of  them,  but  in  a 
more  profound  and  accurate  acquaintance  with  the 
history,  contents,  and  aim  of  the  several  Books  of 
Scripture.     It  has  long  therefore  been    a   ruling 
endeavour  with  me  to  acquaint  myself  and  those 
whom  I  am  called  to  teach  with  the  mind  of  God 
as  revealed  by  the  holy  men  who  were  inspired  by 
the  Holy  Ghost.     One  result  of  that  endeavour  is 
the   following   Commentary.      Its   contents   Avere 
delivered  to  my  Congregation  in  a  series  of  Expo- 
sitory Lectures.     As  my  Congregation  is  not  com- 
posed of  scholars,   I  was    compelled    to   omit  all 
discussion  of  various  readings  and  disputed  render- 
ings, grammatical  problems  and  niceties  of  criticism 
— a  happy  necessity  for  me,  since  I  am  not  com- 
petent to  deal  with  such  questions.     My  aim  was 


PREFACE. 


simply  to  bring  out  the  leading  thoughts  of  "  the 
Preacher  "  as  concisely  and  clearly  as  I  could,  and 
to  clothe  them  in  words  familiar  to  those  who, 
though  of  fair  general  culture,  had  no  knowledge  of 
Hebrew  and  no  love  for  theological  or  scholastic 
technicalities:  in  short,  to  give  the  results  of  the 
best  modern  criticism  without  obtrudinor  the  critical 
process  by  which  they  had  been  reached. 

I  now  offer  these  Lectures  to  a  larger  circle; 
but,  though  I  have  in  part  re-written  them,  I  have 
retained  their  original  form,  lest,  in  recastmg  them, 
I  should  fall  into  a  more  bookish  style,  a  style  less 
simple  and  direct.  In  the  absence  of  better  help, 
I  hope  there  are  some  who  will  find  even  this  brief 
imperfect  Commentary  helpful  to  them.  If  any  of 
my  readers  have  been  wont  to  think  of  Ecclesiastes 
as  a  series  of  detached  gnomes  or  maxims,  not 
always  very  wise,  and  sometimes  distinctly  immoral ; 
they  will  find,  I  trust,  that  it  is  rather  a  Drama 
which  sets  forth  truths  of  the  profoundest  and  most 


PREFACE. 


practical  importance,  truths  as  vital  and  momen- 
tous to  us  as  to  the  antique  Hebrew  world,  in  long 
lines  of  coimected  thought,  each  mounting  to  its 
appropriate  climax,  and  all  pressing  on  to  a  lofty 
and  most  impressive  close.  If  they  discover,  with 
some  natural  regret,  that  not  a  few  familiar  passages 
must  be  read  in  a  new  sense,  they  will  also  discover, 
I  hope,  that  the  new  sense  of  these  passages  is  at 
least  as  instructive  as  the  old,  and  that  the  whole 
Book  gains  in  coherence,  in  clearness,  in  power. 

They  may  rely — and  here  I  am  simply  antici- 
pating a  question  sure  to  be  asked — on  the  superior 
accuracy  of  the  "  New  Translation;"  for  it  is  based 
on  that  of  Mr.  Ginsburg,  perhaps  the  highest  living 
authority  on  all  that  pertains  to  the  Book  Eccle- 
siastes.  In  common  with  all  students  of  this  Book, 
I  am  profoundly  indebted  to  him.  He  has  given 
seven  years  of  learned  leisure  to  this  Scripture ;  and 
in  his  "  Critical  Commentary"  he  has  gathered 
together  ntost  of  the  exegetical  helps  the  Student 


PREFACE. 


requires.  Of  these  I  have  tried  to  avail  myself  in 
order  to  ascertain  the  true  text,  and  the  true  mean- 
ing of  the  text,  adding  what  I  could  on  the  historical 
relations,  dramatic  force,  and  moral  significance  of 
this  inspired  Poem.  For  the  Scholar  his  Commen- 
tary is  indispensable,  and,  so  far  as  my  reading 
goes,  unrivalled ;  but  for  the  general  reader  its  very 
perfection  becomes  "  an  effect  defective,"  since  to 
him  its  constant  citations  of  the  Hebrew  text, 
coupled  with  frequent  references  to  cognate  forms 
in  Syriac  and  Arabic,  present  insuperable  diffi- 
culties. Had  his  translation  been  as  idiomatic  as  it 
appears  to  me  accurate,  I  should  not  have  been  at 
the  pains  to  make  one  for  myself:  and  even  as  it  is, 
my  main  task  in  translating  has  been  to  give  his 
renderings  in  more  simple  nervous  English,  pre- 
serving so  far  as  I  could — and  that  is  less  possible 
in  this  than  in  almost  any  other  Book  in  the  Canon 
— the  familiar  beauties  of  the  Authorized  Version. 
In  dividing  the  Book  into  Sections  I  have  also  ibl- 


X  PREFACE. 

lowed  his  lead,  following  it  all  the  more  gladly 
because  in  the  main  his  divisions  tally  -svith  Ewald's : 
but  should  other  divisions  be  preferred,  the  chief 
coimections  of  thought  between  chapter  and  chapter, 
verse  and  verse,  would  not  thereby  be  broken. 

My  debts  to  other  writers  I  have  acknowledged 
as  I  have  contracted  them,  with  one  exception.  I 
chanced  to  be  reading  Epictetus  at  the  time  I 
wrote  these  Lectures ;  and  was  not  a  little  grateful 
to  him  for  constantly  leading  me  to  a  point  of  view 
from  which  the  "words  of  the  Preacher"  grew 
more  clear  and  forcible.  Those  who  happen  to  be 
familiar  with  the  " Dissertationes "  and  "Enchiri- 
dion "  of  that  most  Christian  of  the  Classical  Writers 
mil  readily  understand  how  closely  akin  his  tone  of 
thought  is  to  that  of  Coheleth. 


THE  TABLE  OF  CONTENTS. 


PAOKS 

I.— THE  INTRODUCTION 1— GO 

§  1     On  the  Authorship,  Desiyn,  and  Cuntents  of  the 

Booh 3 — 23 

§  2     On  the  History  of  the  Captivity     .         .         .  23 — (30 

(a)  The  Babylonian  Period     ....  ;J0 — 7 

(b)  Tbo  Persian  Period        ....  37— GG 

n.    THE  TRANSLATION G7— 109 

§  1     The  Prologue G9 — 70 

§  2     The  First  Section :  or,  The  Quest  of  the  Chief 

Good  in  Wisdom  and  in  Ploasiu-e        .         ,  71 — 6 

§  3     The  Second  Section  :  or,  The  Quest  in  Devotion 

to  the  AfFaii's  of  Business        .         .         .  77 — 8G 

§  4     'The  Third  Section  :  or,  The  Quest  in  Wealtli 

and  in  the  Golden  Mean      ....  87 — 96 

§  0     'The  Fourth  Section:  or,  The  Quest  Achieved  97 — 109 


THE  TABLE  OF  CONTENTS. 


PAOES 

III.— THE  EXPOSITION 111-320 

§  1    The  Prologue 113—125 

§  2    TuE    First    Section  :    or,    The    Quest    in 

Wisdom  and  in  Pleasure .         .         .         .  126 — 139 

(a)  The  Quest  in  Wisdom         ....  126—131 

(b)  The  Quest  in  Pleasure     ....  131 — 5 

(c)  Wisdom  and  Pleasure  Compared.        .        .  135 — 7 

(d)  TJie  Conclusion 137 — 9 

§  3    The   Second    Section:    or,   The    Quest   in 

Devotion  to  the  Affairs  of  Business  .         .  140 — 180 

(a)  The  Quest  obstructed  by  Divine  Ordinances;     140 — 3 

(b)  And  by  Human  Injustice  and  Perversity.  143 — 8 

(c)  It  is  rendered  hopeless  by  the  base  Origin 

of  Human  Industries          .         .         .  148 — 9 

(d)  Yet  these  are  capable  of  a  nobler  Motive 

and  Mode 150 — 4 

(e)  So  also    a    happier    and    more    effective 

Method  of  Worship  is  open  to  Man  ;  .  155 — 7 

(f )  And  a  more  hopeful  and  consolatory  Trust 

in  the  Divine  Providence        .         .         .  157 — 160 

Hortatory  Application 161 — 180 

(a)  Devotion  to  Business  springs  from  Jealous 

Competition :           .                 .         .  163 — 4 


THE  TABLE  OF  CONTENTS.  xui 


PAGEfl 


(b)  It  tends  to  foiin  a  Covetous  Temper  ;    .  1G4 — 0 

(c)  To  produce  a  Materialistic  Sceptisin  ;         .         1G6 — 7 

(d)  To  make  Worship  Formal  and  Insincere  ;       168 — 70 

(e)  And  to  take  from  Life  its  Quiet  and  Inno- 

cent Enjoyments         ....  1 70 — 71 

(f)  The    Correctives   of   this    Devotion    are, 

(1)  a  Sense  of  its  Perils ;         .         .         .  175 

(2)  And  the  Conviction  that  it  is  opposed 

to  the  Will  of  God  as  expressed 
(a)    in    the    Ordinances    of   His 

Providence,       ....  175 — G 

(b)  In  the  Wrong.s  which  He 
permits  Men  to  inflict  upon  us ;  .  176 — 7 

(c)  But  above  all  in  the  im- 
mortal Cravings  which  Ho  has 
quickened  in  the  Soul                .  177 — 8 

(g)  Practical  Maxims  deduced  from  this  View 

of  the  Business-Life       .... 

(1)  A  Maxim  on  Co-operation    . 

(2)  A  Maxim  on  Worship 

(3)  A  Maxim  on  Trust  in  God    . 

4    The  Third  Section  :  or,  the  Quest  in  Wealth 
and  in  the  Golden  Mean      .... 


178- 

-80 

179 

179 

180 

Sl- 

-220 

THE  TABLE  OF  CONTENTS. 


PAGES 

[A.)  Thr  Quest  in  Wealth 182—8 

(a)  Tho  Man  who  makes  Riches  his  Chief  Good 

is  haunted  by  Fears  and  Perplexities  :    .  184 — 5 

(b)  For  God  has  put  Eternity  into  His  heart ;  185—6 

(c)  And  much  that  he  gains  only  feeds  Vanity ;  186 — 7 

(d)  Neither  can  he  tell  what  it  will  be  Good 

for  him  to  have,           ....  187 

(e)  Nor  foresee  what  will  become  of  his  Gains  187 — 

(B)  The  Quest  in  the  Golden  Mean    ....  188—202 

(a)  Tho  Method  of  the  Man  who  seeks  a  Com- 

petence       ......  190 — 3 

(b)  The  Perils  to  which  it  Exposes  him  .         .  193—200 

(1)  He   is   Hkely   to   compromise  Con- 

science:             ....  194 — 5 

(2)  To  be  indifferent  to  Censure  :    .         .  195 — 6 

(3)  To  despise  Women :       .         .         .  196—8 

(4)  And    to    be    indifferent    to    Public 

Wrongs 198—200 

(c)  Tho  Preacher  condemns  this  Theory  of 

Human  Life        .         .         .         .        .  200—2 

HOKTATORY  APPLICATION 202—220 

(A)   The  Quest  in  Wealth 205—11 


THE  TABLE  OF  CONTENTS. 


(a)  Tho  Man  who  makes  Eiches  his  Chief  Good 

is  haunted  by  Fears  and  Perplexities     .  205 — 7 

(b)  Much  that  he  gains  only  feeds  Vanity  .  207 

(c)  He  cannot  toll  what  it  will  be  Good  for 

him  to  have ;           .....  207 

(d)  Nor  foresee  what  will  become  of  his  Gains:  208 — 10 

(e)  And  because  God  has  put  Eternity  into 

His  heart,   ho  cannot  be  content  with 

Temporal  Gains.          ....  21() — 11 

(B)   The  Quest  in  the  Golden  Mean    ....  210—20 

(a)  The  Method  of  tho  Man  who  seeks  a  Com- 

petence .......  213 — 15 

(b)  The  Perils  to  which  it  exposes  him         .  215 — 19 

(1)  He    is   likely   to  compromise  Con- 

science:            215 — 17 

(2)  To  be  indifferent  to  Censure :         .  217 

(3)  To  despise  Women :  ....  217— IS 

(4)  And  to  be  indifferent  to  Public  Wrongs  218—19 

(c)  Tho  Preacher  condemns  this  Theory  of 

Human  Life 219 — 20 

§  5    The  Quest  Achieved 221 — 03 

(a)  The  Chief  Good  not  to  be  found  in  Wisdom:  222— 2(i 


THE  TABLE  OF  CONTENTS. 


PAGES 

(b  Nor  in  Pleasure : 226—28 

(c)  Nor  in  Devotion  to  Affairs  and  its  Rewards :     228 — 37 

(d)  But  in  a  wise  Use  and  a  wise  Enjoyment 

of  the  Present  Life,        ....      237—46 
(o)  Combined  with  a  steadfast  Faith  in  the 

Life  to  come 246—62 

§  6    The  Epilogue  :  In  which  the  Problem  of  the 

Book  is  conclusively  Solved         .        .        .    264 320 


INTEODUCTION. 


INTEODUCTIOK 


§  1.  On  the  Authorship,  Design,  and  Contents  of  the  Book. 


HE  Bible  is  a  book,  but  it  is  also  many  books 
in  one*  It  is  one  book,  for  it  contains  a  pro- 
gressive revelation  of  a  single  coherent  scheme  of 
truth,  of  the  thoughts  of  a  great  and  unique  Mind.  Never- 
theless, this  one  book  is  composed  of  many  books,  each 
of  which  has  its  own  author,  its  distinct  purpose,  its 
special  form,  and  lends  its  peculiar  note  to  the  complex 
harmony  of  Scripture.  This  noble  company  of  holy 
authors  w^ere  moved  by  one  and  the  self-same  Spirit 
to  ^vrite  what,  and  as,  they  did;  and  it  was  by  His 
wise  careful  providence  that  their  writings  were  pre- 
served and  added  to  the  Canon.  There  is  not  a  single 
book  in  the  Book,  therefore,  which  will  not  repay  our  pro- 
foundest  study  by  disclosing  some  aspect  of  the  Divine 


*  Bible,  the  Book,  is  from  Biblia,  tlio  books.  Thus,  by  the  happy  solecism 
of  this  singTilarizcd  plural,  the  multiform  unity  of  Holy  Writ  is  indicated  by 
the  very  name  we  give  to  tho  Sacred  Volume.  Jerome  calls  it  "the  Holy 
Library;"  and  an  eminent  Oriental  scholar,  speaking  of  an  experience  Trhich 
many  of  us  have  shared,  says,  "  I  gave  up  '  a  book,'  and  found  'a  literature.'  " 

1 


INTRODUCTION. 


"Will  wliich  we  need  to  know.  Only  as  we  study  eacli  of 
the  separate  books  of  wliich  it  is  composed  can  we  appre- 
hend tlie  Eevelation  which  runs  through  them  all. 

This,  indeed,  seems  to  he  the  special  work  appointed  to 
us  in  the  present  age,  viz.,  the  study  and  interpretation  of 
the  Holy    Scriptures.       Our  fathers    might    give   them- 
selves  to    Dogmatic    Theology,    to   the    construction   of 
systems  of  Christian  Doctrine  based  on  Scripture  texts. 
We  cannot.     For  as  yet  we  have  no  stable  basis,  or  no  re- 
cognized and  unassailable  basis,  on  which  to  rear  them. 
Kecent  discoveries  in  the  sciences  of  Language  and  His- 
tory have  taught  us  a  little  to  distrust  the  text  of  Scrip- 
ture which  our  fathers  received  without  a  doubt,  and  the 
interpretations  of  it  with  which  they  were  content.     Our 
Authorized  Version,  although  so  admirable  as  a  composi- 
tion, is  not  equally  admirable  as  a  translation,  but  is  often 
inaccurate    and    misleading.      We  cannot  quote  from   it 
without  running  some  risk  of  being  told  that  the  Hebrew 
or  the  Greek  tells  a  very  different  tale.      Passages  which 
we  have  been  accustomed  to  cite  in  proof  of  the  resurrec- 
tion from  the  dead,  for  instance,  or  the  everlasting  pun- 
ishment of  the  wicked,  or  as  descriptive  of  the  glory  of 
the  Messiah,  prove  to  have  held  no  such  meaning  in  the 
aninds  of  those  who  penned  them.      Whole  books  which 
we  thought  to  have  been  ^\^.■itten  at  one  age  and  by  one 
man  turn  out  to  have  been  written  by  another  man  in 
another  age.     So  that,  happily  for  us,  we  are  driven  from 


INTRODUCTION. 


the  study  of  Theology  to  the  study  of  the  Bible ;  and, 
instead  of  constructing  dogmas  and  creeds,  we  must  ex- 
amine and  interpret  Scriptures  :  it  becomes  our  duty  to  lay 
the  foundations  on  -svhich  our  children,  if  they  are  so 
minded,  may  rear  the  lofty  and  far-shining  structures  of 
Systematic  Theology. 

This  necessity,  this  duty,  is  surely  a  very  welcome 
one,  for  what  can  be  more  wholesome,  what  more  grate- 
ful to  us,  than  to  have  our  minds  brought  into  contact 
with  the  very  mind  of  God  as  revealed  through  holy  men 
of  old?  than  to  learn  how  they — men  of  like  passions 
with  us,  yet  under  the  inspiration  of  the  Almighty — re- 
garded the  complex  mysterious  facts  of  that  life  which 
we  now  live  in  the  flesh,  and  which  is  as  strange  and 
perplexing  to  us  as  it  was  to  them  ?  Yet  this  most 
wholesome  task  has  been  too  much  neglected.  For  ever 
boasting  that  the  Bible,  the  whole  Bible,  and  the  Bible 
only,  is  our  religion  ;  how  much  of  this  "  religion"  do  we 
know  ?  How  many  of  us  could  give  an  orderly  and  ac- 
curate account  of  any  one  of  its  books,  of  its  author,  date, 
history,  form,  sequence  of  thought ;  of  the  conditions  of  the 
race  or  generation  to  which  it  was  addressed ;  of  the  errors 
.  it  rebukes,  and  of  the  views  of  truth  and  duty  wliich  it 
enforces?  To  tell  the  plain  truth,  we  are  dreadfully  and 
shamefully  ignorant  of  the  Bible  in  which  we  make  our 
boast ;  and  it  is  high  time  we  left  off  boasting  about  it 
and  set    ourselves  to    study  what  it  really  is,  high  time 


INTRODUCTION. 


that  we  replaced  our  customary  examination  of  detached 
verses  with  a  careful  investigation  of  the  history  and  scope 
of  its  separate  books. 

Now  if  we  care  to  give  ourselves  to  this  task,  where 
shall  we  begin  ?  As  we  glance  along  the  Biblical  "  Library," 
in  which  there  are  so  many  volumes  of  which  we  know 
very  little,  and  would  like  to  know  more, — which  shall  we 
take  down  ?  Let  us  take  one  of  which  we  know  least, 
and  must  know  least,  so  long  as  we  know  it  only  in  the 
Authorized  Version,  to  wit,  "  Ecclesiastes,  or  the  Preacher." 
It  has  many  claims  on  our  preference  besides  our  igno- 
rance of  it.  I  will  mention  only  two  of  these  claims,  and 
will  only  mention  them.  The  first  is,  that,  unlike  most  of 
the  Hebrew  Scriptures  but  in  common  with  the  Book  of 
Job,  it  is  Oriental,  or  even  human,  in  its  tone  rather  than 
Jewish.  It  gives  no  prominence  to  the  Law  of  Moses,  or 
to  the  theology  and  ritual  built  up  on  that  Law,  but  appeals 
to  the  general  instincts  and  needs  of  the  common  heart  of 
man.  It  is  hardly  going  too  far  to  say  that,  except  for  the 
use  it  makes  of  the  name  and  fame  of  Solomon — and  even 
these  are  common  to  all  Eastern  Literature — it  might  have 
been  written  by  a  Gentile  for  Gentile  readers.  Its  second 
claim  is,  that  it  discusses  those  dark  problems  of  Provi- 
dence which  have  always  tasked  thoughtful  men  of  every 
race,  which  still  task  and  perplex  the  thoughts  of  men ;  and 
discusses  them  in  a  dramatic  form  which  lends  the  discus- 
sion an  additional  and  peculiar  interest.     If  the  choice 


INTRODUCTION. 


need  any  further  vindication,  I  can  only  hope  that  the 
Book  itself  will  supply  it  as  we  grow  more  familiar 
with  the  Preacher's  words. 

Here,  then,  we  have  the  book  Ecclesiastes  detached  from 
the  other  Scriptures,  a  volume  complete  in  itself,  in  order 
that  we  may  thoughtfully  and  reverently  examine  it. 
Among  the  very  earliest  questions  we  have  to  ask  about  it 
are  these :  Who  wrote  it  ?  \Vhen  was  it  ^vritten  ?  To 
whom  was  it  addressed  ?  What  are  its  main  design  and 
scope  ?  All  these  questions  you  probably  suppose  to  ad- 
mit of  an  easy  and  distinct  reply.  Were  they  asked  of 
you, 'you  would  answer,  "Solomon  wrote  this  book:  of 
course,  therefore,  it  was  written  in  his  lifetime,  and  ad- 
dressed to  the  race,  to  that  generation  of  the  race,  over 
which  he  ruled:  and  his  design  inwritmg  it  was  to  record 
his  own  experience  of  life  for  their  instruction."  Now  if 
any  proof  were  needed  of  the  profound  ignorance  of  the 
Bible  which  afflicts  even  intelligent  Christian  men,  it  miglit 
be  found  in  the  fact  that  no  one  of  these  answers  is  true 
or  anywhere  near  the  truth.  The  Book  Ecclesiastes  was 
not  written  by  Solomon,  nor  for  centuries  after  his  death. 
It  was  addressed  to  a  generation  of  feeble  and  oppressed 
captives  who  had  been  carried  out  of  Judea,  and  not  to  the 
free  prosperous  nation  which  rose  to  its  highest  pitch  in 
the  reign  of  the  Wise  King.  It  is  a  dramatic  representa- 
tion of  what  some  Jewish  Piabbi  supposed  King  Solomon's 


INTRODUCTION. 


experience  to  have  been ;  and  its  design  was  to  comfort 
those  who  were  groaning  under  the  heaviest  wrongs  of 
Time  with  the  hope  of  Immortality. 

To  scholars  deeply  versed  in  the  niceties  of  Oriental 
languages,  the  most  convincing  proof  of  tlie  comparatively 
modern  date  and  authorship  of  this  Book  is  to  be  found  in 
its  words,  and  idioms,  and  style.  The  base  forms  of  Hebrew 
and  the  large  intermixture  of  foreign  terms,  phrases,  and 
turns  of  speech  which  characterize  it, — these  with  the 
absence  of  the  nobler  rhythmic  forms  native  to  the  purer 
Hebrew  poetry  are  to  them  a  conclusive  demonstration 
that  it  was  written  during  the  Eabbinical  period, — at  a  time 
long  subsequent  to  that  Augustan  age  in  which  Solomon 
lived  and  wrote.  The  Critics  and  Commentators  whose 
names  stand  highest  teU  us  that  it  would  be  just  as  easy 
for  them  to  believe  that  Hooker  wrote  Blair's  Sermons,  or 
that  Shakespeare  wrote  the  plays  of  Sheridan  Knowles,  or 
that  Lord  Bacon  wrote  Tupper's  Proverbial  Philosophy — 
and  improbability  itself  can  hardly  be  stretched  beyond 
that  point — as  to  believe  that  King  Solomon  wrote 
Ecclesiastes.  And,  of  course,  on  such  questions  as  these 
we  can  only  defer  to  the  verdict  of  men  who  have  made 
tliem  the  study  of  their  lives.* 


*  Rosenmiiller,  Ewald,  Knobel,  Do  Wctte,  Ginsburg,  Davidson,  and  many- 
other  compotont  judg^es  are  agreed  on  this  point ;  and  even  those  who  in  part 
diflFor  from  them,  differ  only  in  assigning  the  book  to  a  date  stiU  further  removed 
from  the  time  of  Solomon. 


INTRODUCTION. 


But  with  all  our  deference  for  learning,  we  have  so  often 
seen  the  conclusions  of  the  ripest  scholars  reversed  by 
their  successors,  and  we  all  Icnow  "  questions  of  words  "  to 
be  capable  of  so  many  opposing  interpretations,  that 
probably  we  should  still  hold  our  judgment  in  suspense 
were  there  no  arguments  against  the  common  conceptions 
of  Ecclesiastes  "  such  as  plain  men  use  "  and  can  under- 
stand. There  are  many  such  arguments,  how^ever ;  argu- 
ments, as  it  seems  to  me,  of  a  most  conclusive  force. 

As,  for  instance,  this  : — The  whole  social  state  described 
in  this  Book  is  utterly  unlike  what  we  know  to  have  been 
the  condition  of  the  Hebrews  during  the  reign  of  Solomon, 
but  exactly  accords  with  the  condition  of  the  captive 
Israelites  who,  at  the  disruption  of  the  Hebrew  monarchies, 
were.carried  away  into  Babylonia.  Under  Solomon  the 
Hebrew  State  was  at  its  best  and  loftiest.  His  throne 
was  surrounded  by  statesmen  of  a  tried  sagacity:  his  judges 
were  incorrupt.  Commerce  grew  and  prospered  till  gold 
became  as  common  as  silver  had  been,  and  silver  as 
common  as  brass.  Literature  flourished  and  produced  its 
most  perfect  fruits.  And  the  people,  though  heavily  taxed 
during  the  later  years  of  his  reign,  enjoyed  a  security,  a 
freedom,  an  abundance  unknown  whether  to  their  fathers 
or  to  their  children.  "Judali  and  Israel,"  writes  the 
Sacred  Historian,*  painting  a  graphic  picture  with  a  few 

*  1  Kings  iv.  20,  25. 


10  INTRODUCTION. 


rapid  touches,  "  were  many  in  number  as  the  sands  by  the 
sea,  eating,  and  "  drinking,  and  making  merry.  ,  .  . 
And  Judah  and  Israel  dwelt  safely,  every  man  under  his 
vine  and  under  his  figtree,  from  Dan  even  to  Beersheba, 
all  the  days  of  Solomon."  But  as  w^e  read  this  Book  we 
gather  from  it  the  picture  of  a  social  state  in  which  kings 
were  childish,  and  princes  addicted  to  revelry  and 
drunkenness ;  *  great  fools  were  lifted  to  high  places  and 
rode  on  stately  horses,  while  the  nobles  were  degraded  and 
had  to  tramp  through  the  mire  ;t  the  race  was  not  to  the 
swift,  nor  the  battle  to  the  strong,  nor  riches  to  the  in- 
telligent, nor  favour  to  the  learned .|  The  most  eminent 
public  services  were  suffered  to  pass  unrewarded  and 
were  forgotten  the  moment  the  need  for  them  was  past.§ 
Property  was  so  insecure  that  to  amass  wealth  was  only  to 
multiply  extortions  and  to  fall  a  prey  to  the  cupidity  of 
princes  and  judges ;  insomuch  that  the  sluggard  who 
folded  his  hands  so  long  as  he  had  mere  bread  to  eat  was 
esteemed  wiser  than  the  diligent  merchant  who  applied 
himself  to  the  labours  of  traffic. ||  Life  was  as  insecure  as 
property,  and  stood  at  the  mere  caprice  of  men  who  were 
slaves  to  their  own  lusts;  a  hasty  word  spoken  in  the 
divan  of  any  one  of  the  Satraps,  or  even  a  resentful  gesture^ 
might  provoke  the  most  terrible  outrages. IF    The  true  re- 


*  Chap.  X.  16.  -t  Chap.  x.  G,  7-  t  Chap.  ix.  11. 

§  Chap.  ix.  14, 15.  |1  Chap.  iv.  5,  6.  f  Chap.  viii.  3,  4 ;  x.  4. 


INTRODUCTION.  n 


latiou  between  the  sexes  was  violated  ;  tlio  ruling  classes 
crowding  their  harems  with  concubines,  and  even  the  wiser 
sort  of  men  taking  to  themselves  whatever  woman  they 
desired;  while  all,  with  cynical  injustice,  first  degraded 
women,  and  then  condemned  them  as  alike  and  alto- 
gether bad,  with  chains  for  hands  and  a  snare  in  place  of  a 
heart  *  The  oppressions  of  the  time  were  so  constant,  so 
cruel,  and  life  grew  so  dark  beneath  them,  that  those  who 
died  long  ago  were  happier  than  those  who  were  stdl  alive ; 
while  happier  than  either  w^ere  those  who  had  not  been 
born  to  see  the  intolerable  evils  on  which  the  sun  looked 
calmly  down  day  after  day.-f-  In  fine,  the  whole  fabric  of 
the  State  was  fast  falling  into  ruin  and  decay  through  the 
greed  and  sloth  of  rulers  who  taxed  the  people  to  the  very 
uttermost  in  order  to  supply  their  wasteful  luxury  ;|  while 
yet,  so  dreadful  was  their  tyranny  and  their  spies  so  ubi- 
quitous, that  no  man  dared  breathe  a  word  against  them 
even  to  the  wife  of  his  bosom  and  in  the  secresy  of  his 
bedchamber  :§  the  only  consolation  of  the  oppressed  was 
the  grim  hope  that  a  time  of  retribution  would  overtake 
their  tyrants  from  which  neither  power  nor  craft  should 
be  able  to  save  them.|| 

Nothing  would  be  more  difficult  than  to  accept  this  as 
a  picture  of  the  social  and  political  features  of  the  Hebrew 


Chap.  vii.  26,  28 ;  ix.  9.  f  Chap.  iv.  1—3.  +  Chap.  x.  18,  19. 

§  Chap.  X.  20.  II  Chap.  viii.  -5—8. 


12  INTRODUCTION. 


State  during  tlie  reign  of  Solomon.  Nothing  could  well  be 
more  incredible  than  that  this  should  be  intended  as  a 
j)icture  of  his  reigu,  save  that  it  should  be  a  picture 
drawn  hj  his  oion  hand  !  To  suppose  Solomon  the  author 
of  this  book  is  to  suppose  that  the  wisest  of  kings  and 
of  men  was  base  enough  to  pen  a  deliberate  and  malignant 
libel  on  liimself,  his  time,  and  his  realm  !  While,  on  the 
other  hand,  this  description,  dark  and  lurid  as  it  is,  exactly 
accords  with  all  we  know  of  the  terrible  condition  of  the 
Jews  who  wept  in  captivity  by  the  waters  of  Babylon. 
In  all  probability,  therefore,  as  the  most  competent  autho- 
rities are  agreed,  the  Book  is  a  parable  rather  than  a 
history,  written  by  an  unknown  author,  during  the 
Captivity,  in  what  is  known  as  the  Piabbinical  period  of 
Hebrew  literature, — certainly  not  bfefore  B.C.  500,  and  pro- 
bably somewhat  later.* 

Nor  is  this  inference,  drawn  from  the  style  and  general 
contents  of  the  Book,  unsupported  by  verses  in  it  which  at 
first  sight  seem  altogether  opposed  to  such  an  inference. 
All  the  special  and  direct  indications  of  authorship  con- 
tained in  Ecclesiastes  are  to  be  found  in  the  First  Chapter. 

The  very  first  verse  runs,  "  The  Words  of  the  Preacher, 
son  of  David,  King  in  Jerusalem."  Now  David  had  only 
one  son  who  was  King  in  Jerusalem,  viz.,  Solomon ;  the 
verse  therefore   seems  to  fix  the  authorship  on  Solomon 

*  The  fourth  century,  B.C.,  is  its  most  probable  date. 


INTRODUCTION.  13 


"beyond  dispute.  Simple  and  logical  as  that  conclusion 
seems,  it  is  nevertlielcss  untenable.  For  observe  (1),  that 
in  the  known  and  admitted  works  of  the  Wise  King,  he 
distinctly  and  directly  claims  the  authorship.  The  Book 
of  Proverbs  commences  with  "  The  Proverbs  of  Solomon," 
and  the  Canticles  with  "The  Song  of  Songs  which  is 
Solomon's."  But  the  Book  Ecclesiastes  docs  not  once 
mention  his  name,  though  it  speaks  of  a  "  son  of  David." 
Instead  of  calling  this  son  of  David  Solomon,  it  calls  him 
"  Coheleth"  or,  as  we  translate  the  word,  "  The  Preacher." 
Now  the  word  "  Coheleth  "  is  not  a  masculine  noun  as  the 
name  of  a  man  should  be,  but  a  feminine  and  abstract 
noim.  It  denotes,  not  an  actual  man,  but  an  abstraction, 
a  personification,  such,  for  instance,  as  "Wisdom"  or 
"  Virtue ; "  it  implies  therefore  that  it  is  not  tlie  real,  but  a 
fictitious  Solomon  who  is  about  to  speak  to  us,  that 
Solomon  is  not  the  author  of  the  Book,  but  a  person  in  the 
Drama  it  presents.  (2).  This  "  Son  of  David,"  we  are  told, 
was  "  King  in  Jerusalem  ;"  and  in  the  precise  Hebrew 
use  of  words  the  phrase  indicates  that  the  Book  was  written 
at  a  time  when  there  either  were  or  had  been  Hebrew 
Kings  out  of  Jerusalem,  when  Jerusalem  was  not  the 
only  site  of  a  royal  throne,  and  therefore  after  the  disrup- 
tion of  Solomon's  realm  into  the  rival  kingdoms  of  Israel 
and  Judah.  It  is  even  possible  that  the  phrase  may  imply 
the  Book  to  have  been  written  when  there  was  no  longer 
any  King  in  Jerusalem.     (3).     Again,  we  iind  Coheleth 


It  INTRODUCTION. 


afBrming  (12  v.),  "  I  icas  King  over  Israel  in  Jerusalem," 
and  (IG  v.),  "  I  acquired  greater  wisdom  than  all  who  were 
before  me  in  Jerusalem."  Now,  to  say  nothing  of  the 
questionable  modesty  of  the  latter  sentence,  if  it  fell  from 
Solomon's  pen,  you  wiU  observe  that  it  claims  for  him  more 
than  all  ("  all  kings,"  i.e.,  say  the  Commentators)  who 
were  before  him.  But  when  Solomon  sat  on  his  throne  in 
Jerusalem,  he  was  only  the  second  occupant  of  it ;  for 
Jebus,  or  Jerusalem,  was  only  conquered  from  a  Philistine 
clan  by  his  father  David.  And  if  there  had  been  only 
one,  how  could  he  speak  of  "  all "  who  preceded  him  ? 
(4).  And  stiU  further,  the  tense  of  the  verb  in  that  phrase 
"  I  was  King  over  Israel "  indicates  that  when  the  Book 
was  written  Solomon  was  no  longer  King,  It  means,  "  I 
was  king  but  I  am  king  no  more."  Yet  we  know  that 
Solomon  reigned  over  Israel  to  the  day  of  his  death,  that 
there  never  was  a  day  on  which  he  could  have  strictly  used- 
such  a  tense  as  this.  So  clear  and  undisputed  is  the  force 
of  this  Hebrew  verb  that  even  the  Eabbis,  who  held  and 
hold  Solomon  to  be  the  author  of  Ecclesiastes,  were 
obliired  to  invent  a  tradition  to  account  for  its  use.     And 

O 

a  very  pretty  pathetic  tradition  it  is.  They  said  :  "  When 
King  Solomon  was  sitting  upon  the  throne  of  his  kingdom, 
his  heart  was  greatly  lifted  up  within  him  by  his  pros- 
perity, and  he  transgressed  the  commandments  of  God, 
gathering  to  him  many  horses  and  chariots  and  riders, 
amassing  much  gold  and  silver,  and  marrying  many  wives 


INTRODUCTION.  .  15 


of  foreign  extraction.  Wherefore  the  anger  of  the  Lord 
was  kindled  against  him,  and  He  sent  against  liini  Ash- 
niodai,  the  ruler  of  the  demons ;  and  he  drave  him  from 
the  throne  of  his  kingdom,  and  took  away  the  ring  from 
his  hand  (Solomon's  ring  is  famous  for  its  marvellous 
powers  in  all  Oriental  fable),  and  sent  him  forth  to  wander 
about  the  world.  And  he  went  through  the  villages  and 
cities,  with  a  staff  in  his  hand,  weeping  and  lamenting,  and 
saying,  'I  am  Coheleth;  I  was  beforetime  Solomon,  and 
reigned  over  Israel  in  Jerusalem  ;  but  now  I  rule  over  only 
this  staff.'  "  We  cannot  but  love  this  story  for  its  beauty 
and  pathos  :  and,  though  of  course  we  must  not  accept  it  as 
history,  we  may  learn  from  it  that,  even  in  the  judgment 
of  the  Eabbis,  the  Book  Ecclesiastes  must,  on  its  o^vn 
showing,  have  been  written  after  Solomon  had  ceased  to 
be  king,  i.e.,  after  his  death :  the  Eabbis  are  "  hoist  with 
their  own  petard." 

So  that  all  the  phrases  in  this  Book  which  are  indica- 
tive of  its  authorship  rather  confirm  than  weaken  the  in- 
ference drawn  from  its  style  and  contents :  viz.,  that  it  was 
not  written  by  Solomon,  nor  in  his  reign,  but  by  a  Eabbi 
of  a  long-subsequent  period,  who,  by  a  dramatic  imper- 
sonation of  the  experiences  of  Solomon,  or  of  his  own  ex- 
periences combined  with  the  Solomonic  traditions,  sought 
to  carry  comfort  and  instruction  to  his  oppressed  country- 
men. 

But  perhaps  the  most  convincing  argument  in  favour  of 


IG  INTRODUCTION. 


this  conclusion  is,  that,  when  once  we  think  of  it,  we 
cannot  possibly  accept  the  Solomon  set  before  iis  in  Ec- 
clesiastes  as  the  Solomon  depicted  in  the  Historical  Books. 
Solomon,  the  Son  of  David,  with  all  his  wisdom,  played 
the  fool.  The  foremost  man  and  Hebrew  of  his  time,  he 
gave  his  heart  to  "  strange  women,"  and  to  gods  whose 
ritual  was,  not  only  idolatrous,  but  cruel,  dark,  impure. 
In  his  pursuit  of  science,  imless  the  whole  East  belie  him, 
he  ran  into  secret  magical  arts, — incantations,  divinations, 
an  occult  intercourse  with  demons  or  supposed  demons. 
In  all  ways  he  departed  from  the  God  who  had  enriched 
him  with  the  choicest  gifts,  and  sank  through  luxury 
and  excess,  first  into  a  premature  old  age,*  and  then  into 
a  death  so  hopeless,  so  unrelieved  by  any  sign  of  penitence 
or  any  promise  of  amendment,  that  from  that  day  to  this 
rabbis  and  divines  have  discussed  his  final  doom,  many  of 
them  inclining  to  the  darker  alternative.  This  is  the 
Solomon  of  History.  But  the  Solomon  of  Ecclesiastes  is 
a  sage  who  conducts  moral  experiments  for  the  good  of 
the  race,  in  order  that  with  aU  the  weight  of  manifold  ex- 
perience he  may  teach  men  what  is  that  good  and  right 
way  which  alone  leads  to  peace.  Now,  however  hardly 
we  may  think  of  the  Wise  King  who  was  guilty  of  so 


*  Solomon  could  not  have  been  more  than  sixty  years  of  ago  wlien  ho  died ; 
yet  it  was  not  till  he  was  "old"  that  his  wives  "turned  away  his  heart  from  the 
Lord  his  God." — 1  Kings  xi.  4. 


INTRODUCTION.  17 


many  follies,  "we  can  hardly  tliink  of  Lini  as  sncli  a  fool 
that  he  did  not  know  his  sins  to  be  sins,  or  as  such  a 
knave  that  he  deliberately  endeavoured  to  palm  them  on 
after  ages,  not  as  transgressions  of  the  Divine  Law,  but  as 
a  series  of  delicate  philosophic  experiments  which  he  was 
kind  enoudi  to  conduct  for  the  benefit  of  mankind.  Even 
if  we  can  conceive  of  him  as  thus  seeking  to  cloak  and 
palliate  his  sins,  we  may  be  very  sure  that  the  book  in 
which  he  made  so  shameless  an  attempt  would  not  have 
been  admitted  into  the  Sacred  Canon. 

On  the  whole,  then,  we  conclude  that,  in  this  Book, 
Solomon  is  taken  as  the  Hebrew  type  of  wisdom — 11  ic 
wisdom  which  is  based  on  large  varied  experience;  and  that 
this  experience  is  here  dramatized  for  the  instruction  of  a 
people  who  from  first  to  last,  from  the  fable  of  Jotham  to 
the  parables  of  our  Lord,  were  accustomed  to  receive  moral 
instruction  in  fictitious  and  dramatic  forms.  Its  author 
was  not  Solomon,  but  some  unnamed  Eabbi ;  it  was  written, 
not  in  the  time  of  Solomon,  i.e.  about  1000  B.C.,  but  some 
five  or  six  centuries  later ;  and  it  was  addressed,  not  to 
the  free,  wealthy,  cultured  subjects  of  the  Wise  King,  but 
to  their  degenerate  descendants  when  these  were  enduring 
the  wrongs  and  oppressions  of  the  Persian  Captivity. 

As  for  the  form  and  design  of  the  Book  there  is  no 
question  that  it  sets  before  us  the  Quest  of  the  Sumiimm 
Bomim,  the  Search  for  the  Chief  Good.  Its  main  im- 
mediate design  was  to  deliver  the  exiled  Jews  from  the 

2 


18  INTRODUCTION. 


misleading  theories  of  morals  current  among  them,  from 
the  sensualism  and  scepticism  caused  by  their  imperfect 
conceptions  of  the  Divine  Providence,  by  showing  them 
that  the  true  Good  of  life  is  not  to  be  secured  by  philo- 
sophy, by  the  pursuit  of  pleasure,  by  devotion  to  business, 
by  amassing  wealth ;  but  that  it  results  from  a  temperate 
enjoyment  of  the  daily  gifts  of  the  Divine  bounty,  and  a 
patient  endurance  of  inevitable  calamities,  combined  with 
the  sincere  service  of  God  and  a  steadfast  faith  in  that 
future  life  in  which  all  wrongs  will  be  righted  and  all  the 
problems  of  providential  rule  will  receive  a  triumphant 
solution.  Instead  of  setting  forth  these  truths  in  a  meta- 
physical treatise,  or  a  moral  essay,  or  even  in  an  authentic 
biography,  our  author  throws  them  into  a  dramatic  form. 
Availing  himseK  of  the  historical  and  traditional  records  of 
Solomon's  life,  he  depicts  him  as  conducting  a  series  of 
moral  experiments,  as  testing  the  claims  of  "Wisdom,  ]\Iirth, 
Affairs,  Wealth,  and  as  finding  them  all  incompetent  to 
satisfy  the  cravings  of  his  soul ;  as  attaining  no  rest  or 
peace  until  he  had  learned  a  simple  enjoyment  of  simple 
pleasures,  a  patient  constancy  under  heavy  trials,  a  heart- 
felt devotion  to  the  service  of  God,  and  an  unwavering 
faith  in  that  future  life  whose  dark  portal  men  name  Death. 

This  Drama  consists  of  a  Prologue,  Four  Acts  or  Sec- 
tions, and  an  Epilogue. 

In  the  Prologue  (Chap,  I.  vy.  1  to  11),  Coheleth  states 
the  Problem  to  be  solved. 


INTRODUCTION.  19 


111  tho  First  Section  (Chap.  I.  v.  12,  to  Chap.  II.  v.  2G), 
he  depicts  the  endeavour  to  solve  it  by  seeking  the  Chief 
Good  in  Wisdom  and  Pleasure  : 

In  the  Second  Section  (Chap.  III.  v.  1,  to  Chap.  V.  v. 
19),  the  Quest  is  pursued  in  Traffic  and  Political  Life: 

In  the  Third  Section  (Chap.  VI.  v.  1,  to  Chap.  VIII.  v. 
15),  the  Quest  is  carried  into  Wealth  and  into  the  Golden 
Mean : 

In  the  Fourth  Section  (Chap.  VIII.  v.  16,  to  Chap.  XII. 
v.  7),  the  Quest  is  Achieved,  and  the  Chief  Good  found  to 
consist  in  a  tranquil  and  cheerful  enjoyment  of  the  Present 
Life  combined  with  a  cordial  faith  in  the  Life  to  come. 

And  in  the  Epilogue  (Chap.  XII.  w.  8  to  14),  Coheleth 
summarizes  and  emphatically  repeats  this  solution  of  the 
Problem  of  the  Book. 

Now  it  was  very  natural  that  the  Providential  problem 
here  discussed  should  fill  a  large  space  in  Hebrew  tliought 
and  literature ;  that  it  should  be,  as  you  remember  it  was, 
the  theme  of  many  of  the  Psalms  and  of  many  of  the 
prophetic  "  burdens  "  as  well  as  of  the  Books  Ecclesiastes 
and  Job.  For  the  Hebrew  Eevelation  did  teach  that 
virtue  and  vice  would  meet  suitable  rewards  in  the  j)resent 
life.  At  the  giving  of  the  Law  Jehovah  announced  that 
He  would  show  mercy  to  the  thousands  of  those  who  kept 
His  commandments,  and  that  He  would  visit  the  iniquities 
of  the  disobedient  upon  them  to  the  third  and  fourth  gene- 

2* 


20  INTRODUCTIOX. 


rations.  The  Pentateucli  is  crowded  with  i^romises  of 
temporal  good  to  the  righteous,  and  with  threatenings  of 
temporal  evil  to  the  unrighteous.  The  fulfilments  of  these 
threatenings  and  promises  are  carefully  marked  in  the 
Hebrew  Chronicles  ;  their  fulfilment  is  the  supplication 
which  breathes  through  the  recorded  prayers  of  the  Hebrew 
race  and  the  theme  of  their  noblest  songs ;  it  is  their  hope 
and  consolation  under  the  heaviest  calamities  that  befall 
them.  What  then  could  be  more  bewildering  to  a  pious 
reflective  Jew  than  to  discover  that  this  fundamental  article 
of  his  faith  was  questionable,  nay,  that  it  was  contradicted 
by  the  commonest  facts  of  life.  When  he  saw  the 
righteous  driven  before  the  blasts  of  Adversity  like  a  witli- 
ered  leaf,  while  the  wicked  lived  out  all  their  days  in  mirth 
and  affluence ;  when  he  saw  the  only  nation  that  attempted 
obedience  to  a  Divine  I^w  groaning  under  the  evils  of  a 
captivity  embittered  by  the  cruel  caprices  of  an  Oriental 
despotism  and  unrelieved  by  any  hope  of  deliverance, 
while  heathen  races  revelled  in  the  lusts  of  sense  and 
power  unrebuked  ;  when  tliis  seemed  to  be  the  rule  of 
Providence,  the  law  of  the  Divine  administration,  and  not 
that  better  rule  revealed  in  his  Scriptures  :  is  it  any  wonder 
that,  forgetting  all  corrective  and  balancing  facts,  he  was 
racked  with  torments  of  perplexity ;  that,  while  many  of 
his  fellows  plunged  into  the  base  relief  of  sensualism,  he 
should  be  plagued  with  doubts  and  fears,  and  search  eagerly 
through  all  avenues  of  thought  for  some  solution  to  the 


INTRODUCTION.  21 


problem  which  haunted  his  mind  -with  its  suggestions  of 
despair  ? 

Nor  indeed  is  this  problem  without  interest  for  us  :  for 
we  as  persistently  misinterpret  the  New  Testament  as  ever 
the  Hebrews  did  the  Old.  We  read  that  "  whatsoever  a 
man  soweth  that  shall  he  also  reap ; "  we  read  that 
"  the  meek  shall  inherit  the  earth ; "  we  read  that  for 
every  act  of  service  done  to  Christ  we  shall  receive  "  a 
hundredfold  now  in  this  present  time  :  "  and  we  are  very 
ready  with  the  gross  careless  interpretation  which 
makes  such  passages  mean  that  if  we  are  good  we  shall 
have  the  good  things  of  this  life,  while  its  evil  things  shall 
be  reserved  for  the  evil.  Indeed  we  are  trained  in  this  in- 
terpretation from  our  earliest  years.  Our  very  spelling- 
books  are  full  of  it,  and  are  framed  on  the  model  of  "  Johnny 
was  a  good  boy  and  he  got  plum-cake,  but  Tommy  was  a 
bad  boy  and  he  got  the  stick."  Nearly  all  our  story-books 
have  a  similar  moral :  it  is  always  the  good  young  man 
who  gets  the  beautiful  wife  and  large  estate,  while  the  bad 
young  man  comes  to  a  bad  end.  Our  proverbs  are  full 
of  it,  and  axioms  such  as  "  Honesty  is  the  best  policy,"  a 
pernicious  half-truth,  are  for  ever  on  our  lips.  Our  art,  in 
so  far  as  it  is  ours,  is  in  the  same  story.  In  Hogarth,  for 
instance,  as  Thackeray  has  pointed  out,  it  is  always  Franci 
Goodchild  who  comes  to  be  Lord  jMayor,  and  poor  Tom 
Scapegrace  who  comes  to  the  gallows.  And  when,  as  life 
passes  on,  we  discover  that  it  is  the  bad  boy  who  often 


22  INTRODUCTION. 


gets  most  plum-cake  and  tlie  good  boy  wlio  goes  to  the 
rod,  that  bad  men  often  have  beautiful  wives  and  large 
estates,  while  good  men  fail  of  both ;  when  we  find  the 
knave  rising  to  j)lace  and  authority  and  honest  Goodchild 
in  the  workhouse  or  the  Gazette  ;  when  we  see  the  fraudu- 
lent contractor  lifted  to  the  peerage,  or  stockbrokers  who 
have  rigged  the  market  and  railway  directors  who  have 
sworn  to  false  balance-sheets  settling  down  into  wealthy 
chm-ch-going  country  gentlemen :  then  there  rise  up  in 
our  hearts  the  very  scepticisms  and  perplexities  and  eager 
painful  questions  which  of  old  time  troubled  the  hearts  of 
Psalmist  and  Prophet.     We  cry  out  with  Job, — 

It  is  all  one — therefore  mU.  I  say  it, 

The  guiltless  and  the  guilty  He  treateth  alike ; 

The  deceiver  and  the  deceived  both  are  His : 

or  we  say  with  the  Preacher, — 

This  is  the  greatest  evil  of  all  that  is  done  under  the  sun, 

That  there  is  one  fate  for  all ; 
The  same  fate  befaUeth  to  the  righteous  and  to  the  wicked, 

To  the  good  and  pure  and  to  the  impure, 
To  him  that  sacrificeth  and  to  him  that  sacrificeth  not : 

As  is  the  good  so  is  the  sinner, 
And  he  that  sweareth  as  he  that  feareth  an  oath. 

Well  for  us  if,  like  the  Hebrew  Dramatist,  we  can  resist 
*his  cruel  temptation  and  hold  fast  the  integrity  of  our 
faith ;  if  we  can  rest  in  the  assurance  that,  after  all  and 
when  all  is  done,  "  the  little  that  a  righteous  man  hath  is 


INTRODUCTION.  23 


better  than  the  riches  of  many  M'icked;"  that  God  lias 
something  better  than  lucky  haps  and  prosperous  forhme 
for  the  <];ood,  and  merciful  correctives  of  a  more  soverei'ni 
potency  than  penury  and  mishaps  for  the  wicked  !  If  we 
have  this  faith,  our  study  of  Ecclesiastes  can  hardly  fail  to 
stablish  and  confirm  it :  if  we  are  not  so  happy  as  to 
have  it,  Coheleth  will  give  us  soimd  reasons  for  em- 
bracincr  it. 


§  2.  On  the  History  of  the  Captivity. 


If  we  may  now  assume  the  Book  Ecclesiastes  to  have 
been  written  during  the  Babylonian  Captivity,  our  next 
duty  is  to  learn  what  we  can  of  the  social,  political,  and 
religious  condition  of  the  races  among  whom  the  Jews 
were  thrown.  That  they  learned  much  as  well  as  suffered 
much  while  they  sat  by  the  waters  of  Babylon ;  that  they 
emerged  from  their  long  exile  with  a  profound  attachment 
to  the  Word  of  God  such  as  their  fathers  had  never  known, 
and  with  many  most  precious  additions  to  that  "Word,  is 
beyond  a  doubt.  As  plants  grow  fastest  by  night,  so  men 
make  their  most  rapid  increase  in  knowledge  and  faith 
when  times  are   dark  and  troubled.     And  all  students  of 


24  INTRODUCTIOX. 


the  period  are  at  one  in  afTirniing  that  during  the  Cap- 
tivity a  radical  and  most  happy  change  passed  npon  the 
Hebrew  mind.  They  came  out  of  it  with  a  hatred  of 
idolatry,  a  faith  in  the  life  beyond  the  grave,  a  pride  in 
their  national  Law,  a  hope  in  the  advent  of  the  Great 
Deliverer  and  Eedeemer,  with  which  the  elder  Psalmists 
and  Prophets  had  failed  to  inspire  them,  but  which  hence- 
forth tliey  never  relinquished.  "With  the  religious  there 
was  blended  an  intellectual  advance.  Books  and  teachers 
were  soucfht  and  honoured  as  never  heretofore.  Schools 
and  synagogues  sprang  up  in  every  town  and  village  in 
which  they  dwelt.  Of  making  of  many  books  there  was 
no  end.  Education  was  compulsory.  Study,  as  we  learn 
from  the  Hebrew  proverbs,  was  regarded  as  more  meri- 
torious than  sacrifice,  a  scholar  as  greater  than  a  ^Drophet, 
a  teacher  as  greater  than  a  king.  Before  the  Captivity 
one  of  the  most  illiterate  of  nations,  at  its  close  the  Jews 
were  distinguished  for  their  literary  activity  and  a 
passionate  zeal  for  education  and  intellectual  culture. 

To  trace  the  progress  of  this  marvellous  revival  of  letters 
and  religion,  to  weigh  and  appraise  the  various  influences 
which  contributed  to  it,  would  be  a  most  welcome  task, 
had  we  only  the  materials  for  it  and  the  skill  to  use 
them.  I  have  neither.  Even  the  scanty  materials  that 
exist  lie  scattered  through  the  literary  and  historic  remains 
of  many  different  races, — in  the  cylinders,  sculptures, 
paintings,     inscriptions,    tombs,     shrines     of     Nineveh, 


INTRODUCTION.  26 


Babylon,  and  Persepolis  ;  in  the  sacred  Zendavesta,  in  the 
pages  of  Herodotus  and  the  earlier  Greek  historians,  in 
Josephus,  in  the  Apocrypha,  and  in  at  least  a  dozen  of 
the  Old  Testament  Books.  Probably  there  are  not  more 
than  two  or  three  scholars  in  England  *  who  could  write 
the  unwritten  history  of  this  period;  and  even  they,  through 
lack  of  materials,  could  only  write  it  in  part.  Yet  what 
period  is  of  greater  interest  to  the  student  of  the  Bible  ? 
A  large  number  of  the  Old  Testament  Books,  far  larger 
than  is  commonly  supposed,  belong  to  this  time ;  tlie 
Books  of  Ezra,  Nehemiah,  and  Esther,  for  instance,  among 
the  historical  writings,  and  among  the  prophets,  Jere- 
miah, Ezekiel,  Daniel,  Obadiah,  Haggai,  Zechariah, 
INIalachi ;  many  of  the  Psalms,  too,  are  of  this  date  ;  many 
of  the  prophecies  of  Isaiah  and  of  the  Minor  Prophets 
cotemporary  with  him  refer  to  it ;  at  least  portions  of  the 
Books  of  Kings  and  Chronicles  must  have  been  written  in 
it,  and  the  Book  Ecclesiastes  was  its  direct  offspring.  So 
that  could  we  recover  its  history  as  written  from  the 
secular  side,  that  history  would  throw  new  and  most 
welcome  light  on  well-nigh  one  haK  of  the  Old  Testament 
Scriptures. 


*  Sir  Henry  Rawlinson  and  Emmanuel  Dcutscli  arc  two  of  these  scholars ; 
the  third  is  the  Rev.  George  Rawlinson,  to  whose  work  on  "The  Five  Great 
Monarchies  of  the  Ancient  Eastern  World"  I  am  largely  indebted  for  the  his- 
torical facts  given  in  the  following  pages,  as  also  to  his  "  Herodotus"  and  to 
his  Articles  in  Smith's  "  Dictionary  of  the  BiLlc."     I  know  of  no  fourth. 


26  INTRODUCTION. 


Happily  it  is  no  part  of  my  duty  so  mucli  as  to  attempt 
this  arduous  hopeless  task.  It  will  he  enough  if  I  give 
you  such  a  sketch  of  the  history  of  Bahylon  during  the 
Hehrew  Captivity  as  will  show  you  how,  from  their  con- 
tact with  the  Babylonian  and  Persian  races,  the  Jews  re- 
ceived educational  and  religious  impulses  which  go  far 
to  account  for  the  marvellous  change  which  passed  upon 
them, — such  a  sketch  as  will  enable  you  to  read  "the 
Preacher"  intelligently  and  see  how  all  his  social  and 
political  allusions  exactly  correspond  with  what  we  know 
of  that  time. 

About  a  hundred  and  twenty  years  after  the  destruction 
of  the  Kingdom  of  Israel  by  Shalmaneser  King  of  Assyria 
(B.C.  719),  the  Kingdom  of  Judah  fell  before  Nebuchad- 
nezzar King  of  Babylon  (b.c.  598 — 596).  The  city,  palace, 
and  temple  of  Jerusalem  were  levelled  in  a  common  ruin  ; 
the  nobles,  priests,  merchants,  and  skilled  artizans,  all  the 
pith  and  manhood  of  Judah  were  carried  away  captive : 
only  a  few  of  the  lowest  of  the  people  were  left  to  mourn 
and  starve  amid  the  ravaged  fields.  Nothing  could  present 
a  more  striking  contrast  to  their  native  land  than  the 
region  to  which  the  Jews  were  transferred.  Instead  of  a 
picturesque  mountain  country,  with  its  little  cities  set  on 
hills  or  on  the  brink  of  precipitous  ravines,  they  entered  on  a 
vast  plain,  fertile  beyond  all  precedent  indeed,  and  abound- 
ing in  streams,  but  with  nothing  to  break  the  monotony 


INTRODUCTION.  27 


of  level  flats  save  the  high  walls  and  lofty  towers  of  one 
enormous  city.  For  Babylonia  Proper  was  simply  an 
immense  plain  (more  strictly  speaking,  it  consisted  of  two 
plains)  lying  between  the  Arabian  Desert  and  the  Tigris, 
and  of  an  extent  somewhat  imder  that  of  Ireland.  But 
though  of  a  limited  area  as  compared  with  the  vast  empire 
of  which  it  was  the  centre,  owing  to  its  amazing  fertility 
it  was  capable  of  sustaining  a  crowded  population.  It 
was  watered  not  only  by  the  great  rivers  Tigris  and 
Euphrates,  but  by  their  numerous  affluents,  many  of  which 
were  themselves  considerable  streams,  and  it  "  was  a  land 
of  brooks  and  fountains."  On  these  rich  alluvial  plains, 
amply  supplied  with  water,  under  the  fierce  heat  of  an 
Eastern  sun,  wheat  and  barley  were  indigenous  and  yielded 
a  return  far  beyond  all  modern  parallel.  Nowhere  else  on 
the  face  of  the  earth,  so  far  as  we  know,  is  wheat  a 
weed  springing  spontaneously  from  the  soil :  and  in  this 
its  native  habitat  it  bore  fruit  two-hundred-fold,  and,  if 
some  ancient  writers  are  to  be  credited,  even  three- 
hundred-fold — between  ten  and  fifteen  times  as  much  as  it 
now  yields  in  England.* 
Babylon,  the  capital  city  of  this  fertile  province,  was 


*  "  Of  all  the  countries  that  we  Icnow,  none  is  so  fruitful  in  grain.  .  •  • 
It  is  so  fruitful  as  to  j-ield  commonly  two-Lundred-fokl,  and  when  the  produc- 
tion is  the  greatest,  even  threc-hundred-fold.  The  blade  of  the  wheat-plant 
and  barley-plant  is  often  four  fingers  in  breadth." — Herodotus,  Book  I.,  chap. 
193. 


28  INTRODUCTION. 


tliG  largest  and  most  magnificeut  city  of  the  ancient 
world.  It  stood  on  both  sides  of  the  river  Euphrates,  as 
London  stands  on  both  sides  of  the  Thames  ;  but  it  was 
"  nearly  five  times  the  size  of  London."  It  covered  at 
least  a  hundred  square  miles,  and  was  defended  by  broad 
massive  walls  of  a  hundred  feet  in  height  and  about 
forty  miles  in  circumference.  These  walls  were  pierced 
by  a  hundred  gates,  twenty-five,  it  is  supposed,  on  each 
face  ;  and  the  main  streets  of  the  city,  which  was  a  vast 
square  laid  out  with  mathematical  precision,  ran  across  from 
gate  to  gate.  The  river  Euphrates  flowed  through  the  middle 
of  the  city.  "  Its  banks  were  built  throughout  with  quays 
of  brick,  laid  in  bitumen,  and  were  further  guarded  by 
two  walls  of  brick  which  skirted  them  along  their  whole 
length."  There  was  an  access  to  the  river  at  the  end  of 
every  main  street,  defended  by  a  brazen  gate,  and  furnished 
with  ferryboats  for  the  convenience  of  those  who  wished 
to  cross  the  stream.  Of  course  this  vast  area  was  not 
covered  with  continuous  streets  of  houses,  some  of  which, 
by  the  bye,  were  three  or  four  stories  high.  In  the  better 
quarters  of  the  town  the  palaces  of  the  King  and  his 
princes  were  surrounded  by  gardens,  parks,  orchards, 
paradises, — one  of  which,  we  are  told,  extended  over  eight 
miles.  Nevertheless  in  the  time  of  its  prosperity  the 
population  must  have  been  enormous,  and  its  broad  streets 
crowded  with  merchants,  traders,  soldiers,  and  pilgrims 
of  every  race. 


INTRODUCTION.  29 


lu  this  country  and  city  (for  "Babylon"  stands  for 
both  in  the  Bible),  so  unlike  the  sunny  cliffs  and  scattered 
villages  of  their  native  land,  the  Jews,  who  like  all  hill- 
races  had  a  passionate  affection  for  the  land  of  their  fathers, 
spent  many  bitter  years.  On  these  broad  featureless  plains 
they  Joined  for  "  the  mountains  "  of  Judea  ;*  they  sat  down 
by  the  waters  of  Babylon  and  wept  as  they  remembered 
"  the  hill  of  the  Lord."  They  do  not  seem,  however,  to  have 
been  handled  with  any  exceptional  harshness  by  their 
captors.  They  were  treated  as  colonists  rather  than  as 
slaves.  They  were  allowed  to  live  together  in  considerable 
numbers,  and  to  observe  their  own  religious  rites.  They 
took  the  advice  of  prophet  Jeremiahj^f"  who  had  warned 
them  that  their  exile  would  extend  over  many  years,  and 
built  houses,  planted  gardens,  married  wives,  and  brought 
up  children ;  they  "sought  the  peace  of  the  city"  in  which 
they  were  captives,  "  and  prayed  for  it,"  knowing  that  in 
its  peace  they  would  have  peace.  If  many  of  them  had  to 
labour  gratuitously,  as  most  of  the  conquered  races  had,  on 
the  great  public  works,  many  rose  by  fidelity,  thrift,  and 
diligence  to  places  of  trust  and  amassed  considerable 
wealth.  Among  other  Jews  who  filled  high  posts  in  tlie 
household  or  administration  of  the  successive  monarchs  of 
Babylon  were  Daniel,  Hananiah,  Mishael,  and  Azariah; 


*  Ezekiel  xiii.,  and  Psalm  cxxxvii.  t  Jeremiah  xxix.  4 — 7. 


30  INTRODUCTION. 


Zerubbabel,  Ezra,  Neliemiali,  and  Mordecai ;  Tobit  —  if 
indeed  Tobit  be  a  real  and  not  a  fictitious  person — and  liis 
nepbew  Acliiacliarus. 

But  who  were  the  people,  and  what  the  social  and  poli- 
tical conditions  of  the  people,  among  whom  the  Hebrew 
captives  lived  ?  The  two  leading  races  with  whom  they 
were  brought  in  contact  were  the  Babylonians — an  offshoot 
from  the  ancient  Chaldean  stock — and  the  Persians.  The 
history  of  the  Captivity  divides  itself  into  two  main 
periods,  the  Persian  and  the  Babylonian,  of  each  of  which 
we  must  form  as  accurate  a  conception  as  w^e  can. 

1.  The  Bcibylonian  Period. — For  more  than  fifty  years 
after  they  were  carried  away  captive  the  Jews  lived 
among  the  Chaldean  race  and  were  governed  by  Assyrian 
despots  of  whom  JSTebuchadnezzar  was  by  far  the  greatest, 
whether  in  peace  or  war.  It  is  hardly  too  much  to  say  that 
but  for  him  the  Babylonians  would  have  had  no  place  in 
history.  A  great  soldier,  a  great  statesman,  a  great  builder 
and  engineer,  he  knew  how  to  consolidate  his  immense 
conquests,  and  to  adorn  his  vast  empire — an  empire  which, 
if  historians  speak  the  truth,  "  extended  from  the  Atlantic 
to  the  Caspian,  and  from  Caucasus  to  the  Great  Sahara." 
As  yet,  however,  we  owe — and  till  the  Assyrian  inscrip- 
tions are  more  fully  and  certainly  translated,  we  must  owe 
— our  best  conception  of  the  personal  character  and  private 


INTRODUCTION.  3I 


life  of  this  great  despot  to  the  Book  of  Daniel.  Daniel, 
although  a  Jew  and  a  captive,  was  the  vizier  of  the  Baby- 
lonian monarch,  and  retained  his  high  post  until  the 
Persian  conquest,  when  he  became  the  first  of  "  tlie  three 
presidents"  of  the  new  empire.  He  therefore  paints 
Nebuchadnezzar  from  the  life.  And  in  his  Book*  we  see 
the  great  king  at  the  head  of  a  magnificent  court,  sur- 
rounded by  "princes,  governors,  and  captains,  judges, 
treasurers,  councillors,  and  sheriffs,"  waited  on  by  "  well- 
favoured"  eunuchs,  attended  by  a  crowd  of  astrologers 
and  "  wise  men  "  who  interpret  to  him  the  will  of  heaven. 
He  is  of  an  absolute  power,  and  disposes  with  a  word  of 
the  lives  and  fortimes  of  his  subjects,  even  the  highest  and 
most  princely.  All  offices  are  in  his  gift.  He  can  raise  a 
slave  to  the  second  place  in  his  Idngdom  (Daniel,  to  wit), 
and  impose  a  foreigner  (again,  Daniel)  on  the  priestly 
college  as  its  head.  Of  so  enormous  a  wealth  that  he 
makes  an  image  of  pure  gold  ninety  feet  high  and  nine 
feet  broad,  he  lavishes  it  on  public  works — on  temples, 
gardens,  canals,  walls — rather  than  on  personal  indulgence. 
Eeligious  after  a  fashion,  he  wavers  between  "  the  God  of 
the  Jews  "  and  the  deity  whom  he  calls  "  Ms  god."  In 
temper  he  is  hasty  and  violent,  but  not  obstinate ;  he 


*  See  Ra'wliiison's  "Five  Monarchies,"  vol.  iii.,  chap,  viii.,  pp.  499 — 501. 


32  INTRODUCTIOX. 


suddenly  repents  of  his  sudden  resolves  ;  he  is  capable  of 
bursts  of  gratitude  and  devotion  no  less  than  of  fierce 
accesses  of  fury,  and  displays  at  times  a  piety  and  self- 
abasement  astonishing  in  an  Oriental  despot.  His 
successors — Evil-Merodach,  JSTeriglissar,  Laborosoarchod, 
Nabonadius,  and  Belshazzar — need  not  detain  us.  Little 
is  known  of  them.  With  one  exception,  that  of  Nabona- 
dius, their  reigns  were  very  short;  and  their  main  task 
seems  to  have  been  the  erection  of  vast  and  sumptuous 
structures  such  as  Nebuchadnezzar  had  been  the  first  to 
rear.  Probably  none  of  them  save  Nebuchadnezzar  made 
any  deep  impression  on  the  Hebrew  mind. 

And  indeed  the  people  of  Babylon  were  much  more 
likely  than  their  despots  to  contribute  to  the  formation  of 
a  new  character  in  their  captives.  For  with  the  people 
the  Jews  would  be  in  daily  contact  and  could  not  fail  to 
be  influenced  by  it.  Now  the  Babylonians  were  marked 
by  great  intellectual  ability.  Keen  to  know,  patient  to 
observe,  exact  and  laborious  in  their  researches,  their 
inferences,  their  conclusions,  they  could  hardly  fail  to 
teach  much  to  subject  races  and  to  inspire  them  with  an 
ardent  desire  for  knowledge.  They  had  carried  the 
sciences  of  astronomy  and  mathematics  to  a  high  pitch  of 
perfection.  By  careful  observations,  by  difficult  and  com- 
plicated calculations,  they  had  succeeded  in  laying  down 
the  Zodiacal  path — the  constellations  through  which  the 
sun  passes — the  courses  of  the  planets,  the  recurrence  and 


INTRODUCTION.  33 


causes  of  eclipses.*  They  determined  -sviniin  two  seconds 
the  exact  length  of  the  solar  year ;  tliey  ^vc^e  not  far 
wrong  in  the  distances  at  which  they  computed  the  sun, 
moon,  and  planets  from  the  earth :  and  they  compiled  a 
serviceable  catalogue  of  the  fixed  stars.  It  is  strongly 
affirmed  that  they  had  discovered  the  moons  of  Jupiter 
and  Saturn,  in  which  case,  as  these  moons  are  not  discern- 
ible even  in  an  Eastern  heaven  by  tlie  naked  eye,  they 
must  have  invented  the  telescope  and  learned  to  use  it 
with  good  effect.  The  sun-dial  is  certainly,  the  astrolabe 
probably,  of  their  invention.  The  Hebrew  prophets  often 
refer  to  their  "  wisdom  and  learning."  The  Greeks  laud 
their  "  inventions  "  and  accept  the  scientific  data  they  had 
laid  down.  And  though  many  of  their  wise  men  fell  from 
astronomy  into  astrology,  and  from  scientific  observers  into 
magi  who  professed  to  cast  nativities,  expound  dreams,  and 
foretell  things  to  come,  yet  even  in  their  study  of  the  dark 
erratic  shadows  cast  by  the  light  of  Science  they,  like 
the  Alchymists  of  the  middle  ages,  often  lit  on  happy 
results. 

The  Babylonians  excelled  in  architecture.  Two  of  their 
vast  structures,  the  Walls  of  Babylon  and  the  Hanging 
Gardens,  were  reckoned  among  the  Seven  Wonders  of  the 


*  IIow  accurately  tliey  observed  the  eclipses  of  the  moon  may  be  mierred 
from  the  fact  that  some  of  their  observations  have  been  recently  tested,  and 
found  "  to  ans-wer  all  the  requirements  of  modem  science." 

3 


34  INTRODUCTION. 


World.  Their  skill  in  manufacturing  and  arranging 
enamelled  bricks*  lias  never  yet  been  equalled  by  any 
other  people  :  we,  who  need  that  art  so  much,  might  well 
learn  of  builders  who  died  two  thousand  five  hundred 
years  ago.  In  all  mechanical  arts  indeed — sucli  as  cutting 
stones  and  gems,  casting  gold  and  silver,  blowing  glass, 
modelling  vases  and  ware,  weaving  carpets  and  muslins  and 
linen, — they  take  a  very  high  place  among  the  nations 
of  antiquity ;  in  some,  the  very  highest ;  their  textile 
fabrics,  for  instance,  being  rated  far  above  those  of  any  of 
their  rivals.  With  manufacturing  skill  they  combined  the 
spirit  of  enterprise  and  adventure  which  leads  men  to 
engage  in  commerce.  They  were  addicted  to  maritime 
pursuits  and  excelled  in  them :  "  the  cry  "  or  joy  "  of  the 
Chaldeans  is  in  their  ships,"  says  Isaiah  ;-f-  and  Ezekielj 
calls  Babylonia  "  a  land  of  traffic,"  and  its  chief  city  "  a 
city  of  merchants." 

But  a  large,  and  ]probably  the  largest,  section  of  the 
people  must  have  been  occupied  with  the  toils  of  agricul- 
ture ;  the  broad  Chaldean  plain,  with  its  magnificent 
rivers,  being  famous,  from  the  time  of  the  patriarchs  to  the 
present  day,  for  a  fertility  unequalled  by  other  lands  and 
well-nigh  incredible.    Wheat,  barley,  millet,  and  sesame 


*  There  is  a  curious  allusion  to  these  enamelled  bricks  and  the  admiration 

Jews  conceived  for  them  in  Ezekiel  xxiii.  14 — 16, 
f  Isaiah  xlii.  14.  J  Ezekiel  xvii.  4. 


INTRODUCTION.  35 


all  flourished  ■with  astonishmg  luxuriance,  the  ground 
commonly  returning  a  hundredfold,  two  hundredfold,  and 
even  ampler  rewards  for  the  toil  of  the  husbandman. 

"With  all  these  abundant  sources  of  wealth  at  their  com- 
mand, the  people  naturally  grew  luxurious  and  dissolute. 
"  The  daughter  of  the  Chaldeans,"  as  we  learn  from  Isaiah,* 
was  "  tender  and  delicate,"  given  to  pleasures,  apt  to  dwell 
carelessly:  her  young  men,  says  Ezekiel,f  made  them- 
selves "  as  princes  to  look  at,  exceeding  in  dyed  attire 
upon  their  heads"  (lofty  fluted  caps  of  many  colours), 
painting  their  faces,  wearing  earrings,  and  clothing  them- 
selves in  soft  and  rich  apparel.  Chastity,  in  our  modern 
sense  of  the  term,  was  unknown;  every  Babylonian  woman, 
however  highborn  and  delicately  reared,  having  to  pros- 
titute herself  once  in  her  life  as  an  act  of  religious  duty 
in  the  temple  of  Beltis-t  The  pleasures  of  the  table 
were  carried  to  excess ;  drunkenness  was  common  and 
customary :  to  gratify  animal  passions  was  to  serve  the 
gods.  Yet,  like  many  other  Eastern  races,  the  Babylonians 
hid  under  their  soft  luxurious  exterior  a  fierceness  very 
formidable  to  their  foes.  The  Hebrew  prophets  §  describe 
them  as  "  a  bitter  and  hasty,"  a  "  terrible  and  dreadful  " 


*  Isaiah  xlvii.  1 — 8.  t  Ezekiel  xxiii.  15. 

X  That  this  "  most  shameful  ciistom  "  really  obtained  among  the  Babylonians 
is  put  beyond  doubt  by  Herodotus  (Book  I.,  chap.  199),  Strabo  (xvi.,  p.  1058), 
and  the  Book  of  Baruch  (chap.  vi.  43). 

§  Habakkuk  i.  6 — 8,  and  Isaiah  xiv.  16. 

3* 


36  INTRODUCTION. 


people,  "  fiercer  than  tlie  evening  -wolves,"  a  people  who 
"  made  the  earth  tremble  and  did  shake  kingdoms  : "  and 
all  the  historians  of  that  time  charge  them  with  a  thirst 
for  blood  which  often  took  the  most  savage  and  inhuman 
forms.  Nor  was  this  fierceness  shown  only  to  subject 
races,  to  captives  and  slaves.  The  highest  nobles  trembled 
for  their  heads  if  by  the  slightest  fault  they  incurred  the 
despot's  displeasure ;  the  whole  college  of  "  wise  men  "  was, 
as  Daniel*  tells  us,  all  but  cut  off  because  they  could  not 
expound  a  dream  which  Nebuchadnezzar  had  dreamed 
and  forgotten.  Death  was  not  considered  a  sufficient 
punishment  for  a  serious  offence  unless  preceded  by 
torture.  Offenders  were  slowly  hacked  to  pieces,  or  cast 
into  a  furnace  of  fire ;  their  whole  family  often  sharing 
their  fate. 

Of  the  horrible  licence  and  cruelty  of  the  Babylonian 
worship)  of  Bel,  Merodach,  and  ISTebo,  which  did  much  to 
foster  the  savage  cruel  temper  of  the  peo]Dle,  it  is  not 
necessary,  it  is  hardly  possible,  to  speak.  Eoughly  taken, 
it  was  the  service  of  the  great  forces  of  Nature  by  a 
frightful  indulgence  of  the  worst  passions  of  man.  It  is 
enough  to  know  that  in  Babylon  idolatry  took  forms 
which  henceforth  made  all  forms  of  idolatry  intolerable  to 
he  Jews  ;  that  now,  once  for  all,  they  renounced  that  wor- 


*  Daniel  ii.  13. 


INTRODUCTION.  37 


ship  of  strange  gods  to  whicli  they  and  their  fathers  had 
always  hitherto  been  prone.  This  of  itseK  was  an  immense 
advance,  a  great  gain.  Nor  was  it  their  only  gain :  for,  if 
by  contact  with  the  idolatrous  Babylonians  the  Jews  were 
driven  back  upon  their  own  Law  and  Scripture,  their  con- 
tact with  a  people  of  so  active  an  intellect  and  a  learning 
so  profound  led  them  to  study  the  Word  of  Jehovah  in  a 
new  and  more  intelligent  spirit,  to  penetrate  more  pro- 
foundly into  its  meaning,  and  prepared  them  to  value  and 
pursue  that  intellectual  culture  which  heretofore  they  had 
too  much  despised.*  Nor  is  it  less  obvious  that  iu  the 
social  and  political  conditions  of  the  Babylonians  we 
have  the  key  to  many  of  the  allusions  to  public  life  con- 
tained in  Ecclesiastes.  The  great  Empire,  indeed,  pre- 
sents precisely  those  elements  which  in  degenerate  times 
and  imder  feeble  despots  must  inevitably  develope  into 
the  disorder  and  misery  and  crime  which  Coheleth 
depicts. 

2.  The  Persian  Period. — The  conquest  of  Babylon  by 
the  Persians  is,  thanks  to  Daniel,  one  of  the  most  fami- 
liar incidents  of  ancient  history.  The  defence  of  that  city 
against    the  open  and  direct  assaults  of  his  troops   had 


*  I  have  described  at  some  length  the  marvellous  outburst  of  litorary  and 
educational  activity  which  followed  the  Exile  in  the  Exposition  of  chap,  sii., 
verses  9  to  12,  and  therefore  need  only  allude  to  it  here. 


38  IXTRODUCTION. 


been  so  skiKul  that  Cyrus  despaired  of  success.  As  a  last 
resource,  lie  ventured  on  a  stratagem  so  hazardous  as  to 
prove  that  he  at  least  did  not  fear 

To  put  his  forttme  to  tlio  toucli, 
And  win  or  lose  it  all. 

Withdrawing  his  forces  from  the  environs  of  the  city,  he 
retired]  to  a  distance  along  the  banks  of  the  Euphrates- 
Here,  selecting  a  suitable  spot,  he  set  his  troops  to  cut 
channels  by  which  the  main  volume  of  its  waters  might  be 
diverted  from  their  course.  When  the  channels  were  cut 
he  waited  for  the  arrival  of  a  great  feast  in  which,  to  pay 
due  honom'  to  their  gods,  the  whole  population  was  wont 
to  indulge  in  dnmken  revelry.  The  feast  came,  and  was 
kept  with  imusual  splendour  and  extravagance.  As  though 
to  mark  his  contempt  for  tlie  enemy,  Belshazzar  aban- 
doned himseK  to  the  spirit  of  the  hour  and  gave  a  drinking 
banquet  to  a  thousand  of  his  lords.  The  whole  city,  with 
steady  loyalty,  followed  the  example  of  the  king,  and 
plunged  into  a  "pious  orgy"  in  which  riot  and  excess 
were  blended  with  religious  frenzy.  The  public  danger 
was  forgotten,  every  precaution  neglected.  The  river  gates 
were  neither  closed  nor  guarded.  A  single  sentinel  might 
have  saved  the  city.  Meantime  the  Persians  opened  their 
sluices  and  let  off  the  water  till  the  river  became  fordable. 
They  marched  on  and  on  for  miles  between  the  lofty  massive 
walls  which  protected  the  banks  of  the  stream,  and  in 


INTRODUCTION.  39 


whicli,  as  Herodotus  remarks  *  liad  they  been  detected, 
they  Avoiild  have  been  caught  "as  in  a  trap"  and  de- 
stroyed man  by  man  without  any  possibility  of  escape  or 
defence.  They  reached  the  unclosed  gates  which  led  up 
from  the  banks  of  the  river  to  the  heart  of  the  city.  They 
rose  like  shadows  in  the  darkness  from  the  stream — formed 
into  column — advanced ;  and  then  commenced  a  slaughter 
grim  and  great.  The  drunken  revellers  could  render  no 
resistance.  The  King  was  paralysed  with  fear  at  the  mi- 
raculous handwritmg  wliich  sprang  from  the  wall  of  his 
banqueting-room  to  announce  that  he  had  been  weighed 
in  the  balance  and  found  wanting.  The  Persians  burst 
into  the  palace,  and  slew  him  and  his  lords  in  the  midst  of 
their  orgy.  They  carried  fire  and  sword  through  the  city. 
When  the  morning  broke,  the  empire  had  passed  from  the 
Babylonian  to  the  Persian  dynasty. 

By  this  conquest  the  heroic  Cyrus — "  the  Shepherd,  the 
^Messiah  of  the  Lord,"  as  Isaiah -f-  terms  him — he  had 
already  conquered  the  King  of  Lydia,  Croesus,  whose  name 
is  a  fable  of  wealth  to  this  day — became  the  undisputed 
master  of  well-nigh  the  whole  known  world.  Nor  does  he 
seem  to  have  been  unworthy  of  his  extraordinary  position. 
Of  all  ancient  Oriental  monarchs,  out  of  the  Hebrew  pale, 
he  bears  the  highest  repute.    Active,  heroically  brave,  with 


*  Herodotus  I.,  191.  f  Isaiah  xliv.  28 ;  xlv.  1. 


40  INTRODUCTION. 


a  capacity  for  military  affairs  seldom  equalled,  lie  was 
simple  in  liis  liabits,  and  of  a  most  just,  humane,  and 
clement  spirit.  For  many  generations  lie  was  fondly  re- 
membered as  "  tlie  father  of  his  people." 

Cyrus  was  sixty  years  of  age  when  he  conquered  Babylon 
(B.C.  539),  and  died  ten  years  after  the  conquest  in  a  petty 
and  obscure  conflict.  He  was  succeeded  (b.c.  529)  by  his  son 
Cambyses,  a  despot  possessed  by  the  lust  of  conquest,  but 
with  neither  his  father's  military  capacity  nor  the  blended 
justice  and  clemency  by  which  C}Tns  attached  conquered 
races  to  his  rule.  One  of  his  earliest  acts  was  the  privy 
murder  of  his  brother  Smerdis.  From  his  sin  sprang  his 
punishment.  So  secretly  was  the  murder  effected  that 
the  very  fact  of  his  brother's  death  was  doubted,  and  thus 
an  opportunity  was  offered  for  personation — a  crime  very 
common  in  the  East.  The  j\Iagi  put  forward  a  ]\Iagus 
who  resembled  the  murdered  Smerdis  in  face  and  person  : 
the  people  hailed  him  as  the  veritable  son  of  the  great  King. 
Cambyses,  who  had  already  alienated  them  by  his  cruel 
despotic  humours,  was  on  his  return  from  the  subjugation 
of  Egypt  when  tidings  of  the  revolt  reached  him;  and, 
rather  than  dare  an  encounter  with  the  rebels,  committed 
an  inglorious  suicide.  The  ]3recautions  of  the  pseudo- 
Smerdis,  however,  his  fear  of  being  seen  and  questioned, 
betrayed  the  imposture  of  the  priests.  The  nobles,  headed 
by  Darius  Hystaspes,  an  heir  of  the  ancient  Acheniffiuian 
dynasty,  rose  against  him,  and  Darius  reigned  in  his 
stead. 


INTRODUCTION.  41 


Darius  was  the  great  statesman  of  the  Persian  dynast}-, 
as  Cyrus  was  its  great  soklier.  He  founded  the  "  Satra- 
pial "  form  of  administration  :  i.e.,  instead  of  governing  the 
various  provinces  of  his  empire  through  native  princes,  he 
placed  a  Persian  as  satrap  over  each,  this  satrap  being 
charged  with  the  collection  of  the  public  revenues,  the 
mamtenance  of  order,  and  the  administration  of  justice  ;  in 
fact,  he  governed  the  whole  Eastern  world  pretty  much  as 
we  govern  India  now.  The  satraps  were  selected  by  the 
King  himself,  and  were  responsible  to  him  alone :  but  as 
checks  on  their  greed  and  ambition,  an  independent  mili- 
tary commander  was  also  appointed  by  the  King  to  each  of 
the  provinces,  and  a  secretary  who  was  the  "  King's  Eye 
and  Ear,"  and  whose  main  function  was  to  kee]3  the  Court 
informed  by  his  despatches  of  all  that  took  place.  So  that 
no  satrap  could  revolt  with  any  prospect  of  success  until 
he  had  gained  over  the  Commander  of  the  forces  and  tlie 
royal  Secretary,  their  interest  being  to  hold  him  in  check. 
By  competent  judges  this  mode  of  administration,  of  whicli 
I  have  given  only  a  bare  outline,  is  admired  as  the  most 
perfect  of  any  devised  in  ancient  times,  as  the  mode  most 
likely  to  preserve  the  stability  and  order  of  the  vast  \m- 
wieldly  empires  which  then  stretched  from  India  to  Europe. 
The  internal  organization  of  the  Empire  was  the  gi'eat 
work  of  Darius  through  his  long  reign  of  six-and-thirty 
years ;  but  the  event  by  which  he  is  best  remembered,  and 
which  proved  to  be  fruitful  in  the  most  disastrous  results 


42  INTRODUCTION. 


to  the  State,  was  the  commencemeut  of  that  fatal  war  with 
the  Greeks  which  at  last  reached  its  close  in  the  downfall 
of  the  Persian  Empire. 

His  son  Xerxes  succeeded  to  the  throne  in  the  year  B.C. 
486,  and  reigned  twenty-one  years.  Saving  for  an  occa- 
sional act  of  generosity,  Xerxes  was  as  contemptible  an  in- 
stance of  the  Oriental  despot  as  can  well  be  found.  Selfish, 
fickle,  boastful,  passionate,  licentious,  cruel,  of  a  weak 
brain  and  a  bad  heart,  he  ran  an  undeviating  career  of  folly 
and  vice.  The  story  of  his  war  with  Greece,  of  the  con- 
quest of  his  millions  by  the  hundreds  of  Athens  and 
Sparta,  is  told  in  our  school-books,  and  need  not  be  re- 
peated here.  The  very  traits  in  his  character  which  the 
Greeks  noted  for  their  contempt  appear,  as  we  shaU  soon 
see,  in  a  picture  of  him  drawn  by  an  inspired  hand. 

Xerxes  was  succeeded  by  Artaxerxes  Longimanus,  to 
whom  Nehemiah  was  cupbearer.  He  reigned  forty  years 
(B.C.  465 — 425) ;  but  though  he  appears  to  have  been  an 
amiable  and  Idudly  man,  he  was,  like  many  other  amiable 
men,  utterly  unfit  to  be  a  Idng.  Feeble  and  irresolute,  the 
mere  tool  of  a  wicked  sister  (Amytis)  and  a  yet  more 
wicked  mother  (Amestris),  the  slack  bands  of  authority 
were  stUl  further  slackened  during  his  long  inglorious 
reign.  At  his  death  there  naturally  occurred  a  period  of 
anarchy  from  which  one  prince  rose  after  another  in  quick 
succession,  some  of  them  reigning  only  for  a  few  months, 


INTRODUCTION.  13 


one  for  only  a  few  days  ;  each,  with  rare  exceptions,  worse 
than  the  last.  The  decay  was  only  once  arrested.  Ochus, 
who  made  some  little  stand  against  it,  if  an  able  ruler, 
was  the  most  cruel,  perhaps  the  only  ferocious  and  blood- 
thirsty, despot  of  the  Persian  dynasty.  We  need  not 
trace  the  various  issues  of  this  "  battle  of  kites  and  crows." 
From  the  accession  of  Xerxes  (b.c.  48G)  down  to  the  con- 
quest of  the  Persians  by  the  Greeks  under  Alexander  the 
Great  {circa  B.C.  330),  the  Empire  was  declining  to  its 
fall.  Its  history  is  a  mere  succession  of  intrigues  and  in- 
surrections, conspiracies  and  revolts.  "Battle,  murder, 
and  sudden  death  "  are  its  staple.  The  restraints  of  law 
and  order  grew  ever  weaker.  The  satraps  w^ere  practi- 
cally supreme  in  their  several  provinces,  and  used  their 
power  to  extort  enormous  wealth  from  their  miserable 
subjects.  Eunuchs  and  concubines  ruled  in  the  palace. 
Manliness  died  out  of  the  national  habits  (the  Persians 
were  no  longer  taught  "to  ride,  to  draw  the  bow,  and 
to  speak  the  truth");  cunning  and  treachery  took  its 
place.  The  scene  grows  more  and  more  pitiful  till  at 
last  the  welcome  darkness  rushes  down  and  hides  the 
ignoble  agony  of  perhaps  the  vastest  and  wealthiest 
empire  the  world  has  ever  seen. 

So  much  for  the  despots.     Let  us  now  attempt  to  form 
some  acquaintance  with  the  people,  the  Persian  people 


41  INTRODUCTION. 


who,  by  the  conquest  of  Cyrus,  became  the  ruling  class  in 
the  Empire ;  always  remembering,  however,  that  the  Baby- 
lonians must  have  remained  by  myriads  both  in  the  capital 
and  in  the  provinces,  and  would  continue  to  exert  their 
influence  on  Hebrew  thought  and  culture. 

In  all  moral  and  religious  qualities  the  Persians  were 
far  in  advance  of  the  Chaldeans,  though  they  were  pro- 
bably behind  them  in  many  civilized  arts.  They  were 
famous  for  their  truth  and  valour.  The  Greeks*  confessed 
the  Persians  to  be  their  equals  in  "  boldness  and  warlike 
spirit" — ^schylusi"  calls  them  a  "valiant-minded  people" — 
while  they  are  lavish  in  praise  of  the  Persian  veracity,  a 
virtue  in  which  they  themselves  never  shone.  To  the 
Persians  God  was  "  the  Father  of  all  truth ;"  to  lie  was 
shameful  and  irreligious.  They  disliked  traffic  because  of 
its  haggling,  equivocation,  and  dishonest  shifts.  They 
were  free  and  open  in  their  speech,  keen  of  wit,  bold  in 
action,  generous,  cordial,  hospitable,  "  Their  chief  faults," 
and  even  these  were  not  fully  developed  till  they  became 
masters  of  the  world,  "  were  an  addiction  to  self-indulgence 
and  luxury,  a  passionate  cibandon  to  the  feeling  of  the 
hour  whatever  it  might  be,  and  a  tameness  and  subservi- 
ence in  all  their  relations  towards  their  princes  which  seem 
to  moderns  incompatible  with  real  self-respect  and  manli- 


*  Herodotus  IX.,  62.  f  -iEschyl.  Pers.  94. 


INTRODUCTION.  45 


ness."     ratriotisni  came  to   mean  mere    loyalty  to  tlio 
monarch :  the  habit  of  unquestioning  submission  to  his 
M-ill,  and  even  to  his  caprice,  became  a  second  nature  to 
them.     The  despotic  humour  natural  in  "  a  ruling  person  " 
was  thus  nourished   till  it  ran    to  the  wildest   excess. 
"  He  was  their  lord  and  master,  absolute    disposer  of 
their  lives,  liberties,  and  property,  the  sole  fountain  of  law 
and  right,  incapable   himself  of  doing  wrong,  irrespon- 
sible, irresistible, — a  sort  of  god  upon  earth ;  one  whose 
favour  was   happiness,   at  whose  frown  men   trembled, 
before  whom  all  bowed  themselves  down  with  the  lowest 
and  humblest  obeisance."*    No  subject  could   enter  his 
presence  save  by  special  permission,  or  without  a  prostra- 
tion like  that  of  worship.     To  come  unbidden  was  to  be 
cut  down  by  the  royal  guards  unless,  as  a  sign  of  grace,  he 
held  out  his  golden  sceptre  to  the  culprit.    To  tread  on  the 
king's  carpet  was  a  grave  offence  :  to  sit,  even  unwittingly, 
on  his  seat  a  capital  crime.    So  slavish  was  the  submission 
both  of  nobles  and  people  that  we  are  required  on  good 
authority  to  accredit  such  stories  as  these  :  wretches  basti- 
nadoed by  the  king's  order  declared  themselves  delighted 
that  his  majesty  had  condescended  to  remember  them :  a 
father,  whose  innocent  son  was  shot  by  the  despot  in  pure 


*  Ra-wlinson,  from  ■whom  I  quote,  gives  abundant  authorities  for  this  almost 
incredible  description.  He  gives  chapter  and  verse  for  every  item  in  it  in  his 
"  Five  Monarchies." 


46  INTRODUCTION. 


wantonness,  had  to  crush  down  his  natural  indignation  and 
grief,  and  to  compliment  the  joyal  archer  on  the  excellence 
of  his  shooting. 

Desi)ising  trade  and  commerce  as  menial  and  degrading, 
the  ruling  class  of  a  vast  empire,  with  a  monopoly  of  office 
and  boundless  means  of  wealth  at  their  command,  accus- 
tomed to  lord  it  over  subject  races,  of  a  high  spirit  and  a 
pure  faith,  their  very  prosperity  was  their  ruin,  as  it  has 
been  that  of  many  a  great  nation.  In  their  earlier  times, 
they  were  noted  for  their  sobriety  and  temperance.  Con- 
tent with  simple  diet,  their  only  drink  was  water  from 
the  pure  mountain  streams ;  their  garb  was  plain,  their 
habits  homely  and  hardy.  But  their  temperance  soon  gave 
place  to  an  immoderate  luxury.*  They  acquired  the  Baby- 
lonian vices,  and  adopted  at  least  the  licence  of  the 
Babylonian  rites.  They  filled  their  harems  with  wives  and 
concubines.  Trom  the  time  of  Xerxes  onwards  they  grew 
nice  and  curious  in  their  appetites,  eager  for  pleasure, 
effeminate,  dissolute.  New  dishes  and  new  sauces  for 
their  table  ;  cosmetics,  paint,  jewelry,  false  hair,  and  costly 
garments  for  their  personal  adornment ;  rich  carpets,  soft 
couches,  sumptuous  furniture  for  their  houses,  became  as 


*  "  There  is  no  nation  -whicli  so  readily  adopts  foreign  customs  as  tlie 
Persians.  ...  As  soon  as  they  hear  of  any  luxury  they  instantly  make  it 
their  own.  .  .  .  Each  of  them  has  several  -wives,  and  a  still  larger  number 
of  concubines." — Serodotus,  Book  I.,  chap.  135. 


INTRODUCTION.  47 


tlio  necessaries  of  life  to  them.  "  A  useless  multitude  ol' 
lazy  menials  was  entertained  in  all  ricli  households,  each 
servant  confining  himself  rigidly  to  a  single  duty,  and 
porters,  brcadmakers,  cooks,  cup-bearers,  water-bearers, 
waiters  at  table,  chamberlains,  '  awakers,'  '  adorners,'  all 
distinct  from  one  another,  crowded  each  noble  mansion,* 
helping  forward  the  general  demoralization." 

With  tliis  growth  of  luxury  on  the  part  of  the-  nobles 
and  the  people,  tlie  fear  of  the  despot  at  whose  mercy  all 
their  acquisitions  stood,  grew  more  intense,  more  harassing, 
more  degrading.  Xerxes  and  his  successors  were  utterly 
reckless  in  their  exercise  of  the  absolute  irresponsible 
power  conceded  to  them,  and  delegated  it  to  favourites  as 
reckless  as  themselves.  No  noble  however  eminent,  no 
servant  of  the  State  however  faithful  or  distinguished, 
could  be  sure  that  he  might  not  at  any  moment  incur  a 
displeasure  which  would  strip  liim  of  all  he  possessed, 
even  if  it  did  not  also  condemn  him  to  a  cruel  and 
lingering  death.  Out  of  mere  sport  and  wantonness,  to 
relieve  the  tedium  of  a  weary  moment,  the  despot  might 
slay  him  with  his  own  hand.  Tor  the  crime,  or  supposed 
crime,  of  one  person,  a  whole  family,  or  class,  or  race, 
mifrht  bo  cut  off  unheard.  Of  the  lengths  to  wliich  his 
cruelty  and  caprice  might  go  we  have  a  sufficient  example 


*  For  a  description  of  sucli  a  household  and  its  crowd  of  servants  see 
Ecclesiastes  xii.  1 — 7,  and  the  Commentary  on  that  passage. 


48  INTRODUCTION. 


in  tlie  Book  of  Esther.  The  Ahasuerus  of  that  remarkable 
narrative  was,  there  can  hardly  be  any  doubt,  the  Xerxes 
of  secular  history, — the  very  names,*  unlike  as  they  sound, 
are  the  same  name  differently  pronounced  by  two  different 
races.  Everything  in  this  Book  is  on  a  colossal  scale, 
down  to  the  caprices  of  the  despot.  Xerxes  calls  a  great 
divan,  summoning  all  the  princes  and  officials  of  the 
empire  to  his  palace;  in  all  probability,  as  Eichhorn  has 
shown,  they  met  to  deliberate  on  the  fatal  war  with 
Greece.  The  consultation  extends  over  a  "hundred  and 
fourscore  days,"  the  nights  of  which  are  given  to  feasting, 
and  winds  up  with  a  seven  days'  carousal.-f  When  his 
heart  was  "  merry  "with  wine,"  the  king  commands  that 
Vashti  his  queen  should  be  brought  into  the  banqueting- 
hall  to  show  her  beauty  to  the  people  and  the  princes. 
Now  to  this  day  it  is  a  gross  indecorum  so  much  as  to  ask 
a  Persian  after  the  health  of  his  wife,  or  in  any  way  to 
allude  to  her  existence.  And  in  the  ancient  Persian 
sculptures  there  is  not  a  single  reference  to  or  representa- 
tion of  a  woman.  The  modern  reserve  is  simply  a  remnant 
of  ancient  custom:  and  therefore  the  command  sent  by 
Xerxes  to  Vashti  was  a  command  to  dishonour  herself  and 


*  Their  common  root  is  tho  Sanscrit  Kshatra,  a  king  ;  in  the  inscriptions  of 
Porsopolis  this  word  appears  as  Kshcrshe :  and  from  this  both  tho  Hebrew 
Achashucrash  (Ahasuerus)  and  the  Greek  Xerxes  ^vould  easily  be  formed. 
Esther  i.  3—5. 


INTRODUCTION.  49 


him.  She  refuses  to  do  him  this  clishonour;  and  for 
crossing  his  caprice  to  save  his  honour  she  is  deposed, 
repudiated.  This  was  in  the  third  year  of  his  reign.* 
And  in  the  seventh  year,  the  year  in  -wliich  he  returned 
defeated  from  the  war  with  Greece  to  console  himself,  as 
Herodotusf  tells  us,  with  the  pleasures  of  the  harem,  we 
learn  from  the  Book  of  Esther  that  he  determined  to  select 
a  successor  to  Vashti.  All  "  the  fair  young  virgins"  of  the 
empire  are  at  his  service ;  even  Mordecai,  the  rigid  Jew, 
seems  to  have  had  no  feeling  for  his  niece  Esther  except 
the  hope  that  she  might  please  the  king.  "VMien  her  turn 
comes,  she  is  fortunate  or  unfortimate  enough  to  find 
"grace  and  favour;"  the  king  "loves  her  above  all  the 
women"  he  has  seen  as  yet,  and  she  is  made  his  queen. :{: 
Mordecai  discovers  the  plot  of  two  eunuchs  of  the  palace 
against  the  king's  life;  Esther  warns  the  king,  and  the 
eunuchs  are  "  hanged  on  a  tree."  Haman,  an  Amalekite— 
a  foreigner  therefore,  and  probably  a  captive — is  vizier, 
and  hates  the  stubborn  Hebrew  who  alone  of  the  king's 
servants  will  not  bow  down  before  him.  AVhat  revenge 
does  he  propose  to  take?  Simply  to  destroy  the  whole 
people  of  the  Jews.     To  secure  his  revenge,  he  offers  the 


*  Comp.  Esther  i.  3,  -vrith  Herodotus  rii.  7  ff. 

t  Comp.  Herodotus  IX.  108,  -vrith  Esther  ii  1 — 4,  and  16. 

X  There  is  only  too  much  reason  to  fear  that  she  degenerated  into  tho  cruel 
and  licentious  Amestris,  the  scourge  of  the  Empire  during  the  reign  of  Artaierxes 
her  son. 

4 


50  INTRODUCTION. 


monarcli  "  ten  thousand  talents  of  silver,"  a  sum  said  to 
be  equal  to  £2,000,000,  if  ouly  he  may  have  his  way. 
And  the  wasteful  lawless  Xerxes  is  glad  to  take  the 
money  and  to  seal  the  decree  of  extermination.  Haman 
goes  home  to  gloat  over  his  revenge  and  to  build  a  gallows 
fifty  cubits  high  from  which  he  hopes  to  see  the  detestable 
Mordecai  swing.  A  royal  caprice  baulks  him  of  his  revenge. 
The  king  can't  sleep ;  the  chronicles  of  his  reign,  fulsome 
enough  no  doubt,  must  be  read  to  him.  The  book  opens 
on  the  story  of  Mordecai's  fidelity.  "  What  has  been  done 
for  him?"  asks  the  king,  who  had  forgotten  the  man  and 
his  service.  "  Nothing,"  is  the  reply.  And  now  Mordecai 
comes  to  honour.  Mordecai  and  Esther  use  their  oppor- 
tunity and  beg  the  lives  of  their  race.  The  king  utters 
an  angry  word  when  Haman  is  banqueting  with  him,  and 
"  as  the  word  went  out  of  the  king's  mouth,"  his  attendants 
"  cover  Haman's  face."  He  is  hanged  on  the  very  gallows 
he  had  built  for  the  Jew,  as  are  also  his  ten  sons.  The 
Jews  are  saved  :  but  how  ?  Instead  of  rescinding  his 
lawless  decree,  the  king  issues  a  decree  stiU  more  lawless. 
He  had  ordered  his  faithful  subjects  to  fall  on  the  Jews  : 
now  he  orders  the  Jews  to  fight  in  their  own  defence. 
Both  decrees  are  obeyed — obeyed  in  his  very  palace,  where 
"five  hundred"  of  his  subjects  are  slain  in  attempting  to 
execute  his  order ;  while  in  the  provinces  no  less  than 
"seventy  and  five  thousand"  find  death  through  their 
loyalty. 


INTRODUCTION. 


Was  there  ever  a  more  •wicked  lawless  tragedy  ?  Such 
a  story  gives  us  our  profoundcst  impression  of  the  im- 
mense force  and  sweep  of  a  tyrant's  lust  and  caprice,  of 
the  frightful  degradation  of  his  subjects,  of  the  utter  inse- 
curity of  life  and  fortune  under  the  dark  shadow  of  which 
the  Jews  had  to  spend  so  many  years.  Yet  this  is  but  a 
sample  of  the  capricious  violence  which  was  habitual  with 
Xerxes.  AU  that  the  Book  of  Esther  relates  of  the  despot 
who  repudiates  a  wife  because  she  will  not  expose  herself 
to  the  drunken  admiration  of  a  crowd  of  revellers,  who 
raises  a  servant  to  the  highest  honours  one  day  and  hangs 
him  the  next,  who  commands  the  massacre  of  an  entire 
race  and  then  bids  them  inflict  a  horrible  carnage  on  the 
officers  who  execute  his  decree,  exactly  accords  with  the 
Greek  narratives  which  depict  him  as  scourging  the  sea 
because  it  breaks  down  his  bridge  over  the  Hellespont, 
beheading  the  engineers  whose  work  was  swept  away  by 
a  storm,  wantonly  putting  to  death  the  sons  of  Pythias, 
liis  oldest  friend,  before  their  father's  eyes ;  as  first  giving 
to  his  mistress  the  splendid  robe  presented  him  by  his 
queen  and  then  giving  up  to  the  queen's  barbarous  ven- 
geance the  mother  of  his  mistress ;  as  shamefully  misusing 
the  body  of  the  brave  Lconidas,  and  after  his  defeat  by  the 
Greeks  giving  himself  up  to  a  criminal  voluptuousness 
and  offeriQg  a  reward  to  the  inventor  of  a  new  pleasure. 

The  Book  Ecclesiastes  was  written  certainly  not  before 

4* 


62  INTRODUCTION. 


the  reigu  of  Xerxes  "(i^-C  486 — 465),  and  probably,  some 
years  after  it,  during  that  long  period  of  anarchy  which 
followed  his   reign;    and    in   which,    bad  as    were  the 
conditions  of  his  time,  the  times  grew  ever  more  lawless, 
despotism  more  intolerable,  the  violence  and  licence  of 
subordinate  officials  more  unblushing.     But  at  whatever 
period  within  these  limits  we  may  place  it,  all  we  have 
now  learned  of  the  Babylonians  and  Persians  during  the 
later  years  of  the  Captivity  is  in  entii-e   correspondence 
with  the  social  and  political  state  depicted  by  the  Preacher. 
The    abler  and  more  kindly  despots — as  Cyrus,  Darius, 
Artaxerxes — showed  a  singular  favour  to  the  Jews.     Cyrus 
published  a  decree  permitting  the  Jews  to  return  to  Jeru- 
salem  and  rebuild   their   temple    and  enjoining  all    the 
officials  of  the  empire  to  further  them  in  their  enterprise : 
Darius  confirmed   that  decree,  despite  the  misrepresenta- 
tions and  the  vindictive  hostility  of  the  Samaritan  colonists. 
Artaxerxes  held  Ezra  and  Nehemiah  in  high  esteem  and 
sent  them    to  restore    order  and    prosx3erity   among  the 
returned  captives.      But  a  large  number,  perhaps  even  a 
majority,  of  the  Jews,  unable  or  disinclined  to  return  to 
the  city  of  their  fathers,  remained  in  the  various  provinces 
of  the  Great  Empire    and  were  subject  to  the  despotic 
caprice  and  violence  from  which  the  Persians  themselves 
were  not  exempt.     "  Vanity  of  vanities,  vanity  of  vanities, 
all  is  vanity ! "  cries  the  Preacher  till  wc  are  well-nigh 
weary  of  hearing  the  mournful  refrain.     ]\Iight  he  not  well 


INTRODUCTION.  63 


take  that  tone  in  a  time  so  horribly  out  of  joint,  so  lower- 
ing,   so   dark  ?      The    Book  is  full  of  allusions  to  tlie 
Persian  luxury,  to  the  Persian  forms  of  administration, 
above  all,  to  the  capricious  despotism  of  the  later  years  of 
the  Persian  Empire  and  the  corruptions  and  miseries  it 
bred.      Coheleth's  elaborate   description*   of  the  infinite 
variety  of  means  by  which  he  sought  to  allure  his  heart  unto 
mirth — his  palaces,  vineyards,  pleasure-grounds,  with  their 
reservoirs  and  fountains,  crowds  of  attendants,  treasures  of 
gold  and  silver,  the  harem  full  of  beauties  of  all  races — 
seems  taken  direct  from  the  ample  state  of  some  Persian 
grandee.      His  picture  of  the  public  administration^f  in 
which  "superior  watcheth  superior,  and  superiors  again 
watch  over  them "  is  a  graphic  delineation  of  the  satra- 
pial  system,  with  its  hierarchy  of  inferior  officers  rising 
grade  above  grade,  which  was  the  work  of  Darius  the 
Statesman.     When  the  animating   spirit  of  that  system 
was  taken    away,    when    weak    foolish    despots   sat  on 
the  throne  and  minor  despots  just  as  foolish  and  weak 
ruled  in  every  provincial  divan,  there  ensued  precisely 
that  political  state  to  which  Coheleth  perpetually  refers.:]: 
Inic|uity  sat  in  the  place  of  judgment,  and  in  the  place 


*  Ecc.  ii.  4—8.  t  Ibi<i-  v.  8,  9. 

X  It  would  bo  possible  to  collect  from  the  Psalms  of  this  date  materials  for  a 
description  of  the  miseries  inflicted  on  the  Jews,  and  their  keen  sense  of  them, 
qxiite  as  graphic  and  intense  as  that  of  tho  Preacher.    Here  are  a  few  phrases 


54  INTRODUCTION. 


of  equity  there  was  iniquity  ;*  kings  grew  cliildisli  and 
princes  spent  their  days  in  revehy  :i-  fools  were  lifted 
to  liigh  places  wliile  nobles  were  degraded,  and  slaves 
rode    on  horses   wliile   their  quondam  masters   walked 


taken  from  these  plaintive  and  pathetic  Psalms.  The  oppressors  of  Israel  are 
described  as  being  "clothed  with  cruelty  as  with  a  garment;"  as  "returning 
evil  for  good,  and  hatred  for  good-will." 

They  smite  down  Thy  people,  O  Jehovah, 

And  trouble  Thine  heritage ; 
They  murder  the  widow  and  the  stranger, 

And  put  the  fatherless  to  death : 
Yet  they  say,  Tush,  Jehovah  shall  not  see, 
Neither  shall  the  God  of  Jacob  regard  it. — (xciv.) 

They  re\ile  me,  and  cease  not. 
With  shameless  mocking,  full  of  lies  ; 

They  gnash  upon  me  with  their  teeth. — (xxxv.) 

I  am  bowed  down,  and  brought  very  low ; 

I  go  mourning  all  the  day  long : 
Truly,  I  am  nigh  unto  falling. 

And  my  heaviness  is  ever  before  me. — (xxxviii.) 

My  days  are  consumed  like  smoke. 

And  my  bones  are  burned  up  Mke  a  firebrand : 

My  heart  is  smitten  down  and  Avithered  like  grass. 
So  that  I  forget  to  eat  my  bread. — (cii.) 

I  am  helpless  and  poor. 
And  my  heart  is  woimded  within  me. — (cix.) 

Most  of  "the  imprecatory  Psalms"  belong  to  this  period;  and  the  terrible 
wrongs  of  the  Capti-^-ity,  though  they  do  not  justify,  in  large  measure  explain 
and  excuse  that  desire  for  vengeance  which  has  given  so  much  offence  to  some 
of  our  modem  critics. 

*  Ecc.  iii.  16.  t  If>ii^-  x-  16. 


INTRODUCTION.  65 


iipou  tliG  ground*  Tlicro  was  no  fair  or  certain  reward 
for  faithful  service :  the  race  was  not  to  the  swift,  nor  the 
battle  to  the  strong,  nor  riches  to  the  intelligent,  nor 
favour  to  the  learncd.f  Death  brooded  in  the  air,  and 
might  fall  suddenly  and  imforeseen  on  any  head  however 
liigh.:{:  To  correct  a  public  abuse  was  like  pulling  down  a 
wall ;  some  of  the  stones  were  sure  to  fall  on  the  reformer's 
feet,  from  some  moss-grown  cranny  a  serpent  was  sure  to 
start  out  and  bite  him.§  To  breathe  a  word  against  a 
ruler  even  to  one's  wife  and  in  the  bedchamber  was  to  run 
the  hazard  of  destruction.  ||  A  resentful  gesture,  much 
more  a  rebellious  word  in  the  divan,  was  enough  to  pro- 
voke the  gravest  outrage.^  In  short,  the  whole  j)olitical 
fabric  was  falling  into  disrepair  and  decay,  the  rain  leak- 
ing through  the  rotting  roof :  while  the  miserable  people 
were  ground  down  with  ruinous  exactions  in  order  that  the 
rulers  mi^ht  revel  on  undisturbed.**  It  is  under  such  a 
pernicious  and  ominous  maladministration  of  public  affairs 
and  the  appalling  miseries  it  breeds,  that  there  springs  up 
in  the  hearts  of  men  that  fatalistic  and  hopeless  temper  to 
wliich  Coheleth  gives  frequent  expression.  Better  never 
to  have  been  born,  than  to  live  'a  life  so  thwarted  and 
cramped,  so  fuU  of  perils  and  fears !  Better  to  snatch  at 
every  pleasure,  however  poor  and  brief,  than  seek  by  self- 


*  Ecc.  X.  6,  7.         t  Ibid.  ix.  11.         J  Ibid.  ix.  12.  §  Ibid.  x.  8,  9. 

II  Ibid.  X.  20.  H  Ibid.  x.  4 ;  viii.  2,  3.  **  Ibid.  x.  18,  19. 


56  INTRODUCTION. 


denial,  by  Aartue,  by  integrity  to  gain  a  store  wliicli  the 
first  petty  tyi-ant  who  gets  mnd  of  it  will  sweep  off, 
or  a  reputation  for  wisdom  and  goodness  whicb  will  be  no 
protection  against  the  despotic  humours  of  men  dressed  in 
a  little  brief  authority  ! 

If  our  own  great  poet,*  in  an  unrestful  and  despairing 
mood  strangely  foreign  to  his  serene  temperament, 
beheld — 

Desert  a  beggar  bom, 

And  needy  notHng  trimmed  in  jollity, 
And  purest  faith  unhappily  forsworn, 
And  gilded  honour  shamefully  misplaced. 
And  maiden  virtue  rudely  strumpeted. 
And  right  perfection  wrongfully  disgraced, 
And  strength  by  limping  sway  disabled. 
And  art  made  tongue-tied  by  authority. 
And  folly,  doctor  like,  controlling  skill. 
And  simple  truth  miscall'd  simplicity, 
And  captive  good  attending  captaia  ill ; 

if,  "  tired  with  all  these,"  he  cried  for  "  restful  death,"  we 
can  hardly  wonder  that  the  Preacher,  who  had  fallen  on 
times  so  evil  that  compared  with  his  Shakespeare's  were 
good,  should  prefer  death  to  life. 

But  there  is  another  side  to  this  sad  Story  of  the  Cap- 


*  Shakespeare's  Sonnets,  Isvi. 


INTRODUCTION.  67 


tivity,  another  and  a  nobler  side.  If  the  Jews  suffered 
much  from  Persian  misrule,  they  learned  much  and  gained 
much  from  the  Persian  faith.  In  its  earliest  form  the 
religious  creed  of  the  Persians,  the  creed  whose  documents 
Zoroaster  afterwards  collected  and  enlarged  in  the  Zend- 
Avesta,  was  the  purest  lalo^vn  to  the  heathen.  Cyrus  and 
Darius  held  to  it  firmly,  and  even  imder  their  successors, 
though  it  was  in  much  corrupted,  it  was  stiU  preserved  in 
Songs  (Gathas)  and  Traditions.  There  can  be  no  reason- 
able doubt  that  it  largely  affected  the  subsequent  faith  of 
the  Hebrews  ;* — not  indeed  teaching  them  any  truth  they 
had  not  been  taught  before,  but  constraining  them  to  recog- 
nize truths  in  their  Scriptures  which  hitherto  they  had  not 
seen  :  and  therefore  we  must  try  to  acquire  some  concep- 
tion of  the  Persian  system  of  doctrine  and  morals. 

In  its  inception  it  was  a  revolt  against  the  sensuous  and 
sensual  worship  of  the  great  forces  of  Nature  into  which 
the  Hindus  had  degraded  the  primitive  faith  still  to  be 
recovered  from  the  sacred  Eig-Veda.  It  acknowledged 
persons, — real  spiritual  intelligences,  in  place  of  mere 
natural  powers:  and  it  drew  moral  distinctions  between 
them,  dividing  these  ruling  intelligences  into  good  and 
bad,  pure  and  impure,  benignant  and  malevolent  —  an 
immense  advance  on  the  mere  admiration  of  whatever  was 


♦  I  apprehend  that  tho  sojourn  in  Babylon  did  for  Hebrew  dogma  vcrj'  much 
•what  the  sojourn  in  Egypt  did  for  the  Hebrew  ritual. 


5S  INTRODUCTION. 


strong.  Nay,  in  some  sense  the  Persian  faith  affirmed 
monotheism  against  polytheism :  for  it  asserted  that  one 
Great  Intelligence  ruled  over  all  other  intelligences,  and 
through  them  over  the  universe.  This  Supreme  Intelli- 
gence, which  the  Persians  called  Ahura-mazda  (Ormazd), 
is  the  true  Creator,  Preserver,  Governor  of  all  spirits,  all 
men,  all  worlds.  He  is  "good,"  "holy,"  "pure,"  "true;" 
"  the  Father  of  all  truth,"  "  the  best  Being  of  aU,"  "  the 
ISIaster  of  purity,"  "  the  Source  and  Fountain  of  all  good." 
On  the  righteous  he  bestows  "  the  good  mind "  and  ever- 
lasting happiness ;  while  he  punishes  and  afflicts  the  evil. 
The  worshippers  of  this  supreme  spiritual  Intelligence 
were  to  the  last  degree  intolerant  of  idolatry.  They 
suffered  no  image  to  profane  their  temples :  their  earliest 
symbol  of  Deity  is  almost  as  pure  and  abstract  as  a  mathe- 
matical sign, — a  circle  with  wings;  the  circle  to  denote  the 
eternity  of  God,  the  wings  His  omnipresence.  Under  this 
supreme  Lord,  "the  God  of  Heaven,"  they  admitted 
inferior  beings,  angels  and  archangels,  whose  names  mark 
them  out  as  personified  Divine  attributes,  or  as  faithful 
servants  who  administer  some  province  of  the  Divine 
government. 

To  win  the  favour  of  the  God  of  Heaven  it  was  requisite 
to  cultivate  the  virtues  of  truthfulness,  purity,  industry, 
and  a  pious  sense  of  the  Divine  presence:  and  these 
virtues  must  spring  from  the  heart,  and  cover  thought  as 
well  as  word  and  deed.     His  worship  consisted  in  the 


INTRODUCTION.  69 


frequent  offering  of  prayers,  praises,  and  thanksgivings ;  in 
the  reiteration  of  certain  sacred  hymns  ;  in  the  occasional 
sacrifice  of  animals  which,  after  being  presented  before 
Ormazd,  furnished  forth  a  feast  for  priest  and  worshipper  : 
and  in  the  performance  of  a  mystic  ceremony  (the  Soma), 
the  gist  of  which  seems  to  have  been  a  grateful  acknow- 
ledgment that  the  fruits  of  the  earth,  typified  by  the 
intoxicating  juice  of  the  Homa  plant,  were  to  be  received 
as  the  gift  of  Heaven.  A  sentence  or  two  from  one  of  the 
Hymns,*  of  which  we  have  many  in  the  Gathas  of  the 
Zendavesta,  will  show  better  than  many  words  to  how  high 
a  pitch  divine  worship  was  carried  among  the  Persians : 
"  "We  worship  Tliee,  Ahura-mazda,  the  pure,  the  master  of 
purity.  We  praise  all  good  thoughts,  all  good  words,  all 
good  deeds  which  are  or  shall  be :  and  we  likewise  keep 
clean  and  pure  all  that  is  good.  0  Ahura-mazda,  thou 
true  happy  Being  !  "We  strive  to  think,  to  speak,  and  to 
do  only  such  things  as  may  be  best  fitted  to  promote  the 
two  lives  "  (i.e.  the  life  of  the  body  and  the  life  of  the 
soul). 

In  this  course  of  well-doing  the  faithful  were  animated 
and  confirmed  by  a  devout  belief  in  the  immortality  of  the 
soul  and  a  conscious  future  existence.  They  were  taught 
that  at  death  the  souls  of  men,  both  good  and  bad,  tra- 


*  I  take  tho  quotation  from  Ilawlinson,  who  ^nvcs  as  lii.s  ftutliority  Ilaug's 
£ssai/s,  pp.  162-3.  Of  course,  there  are  many  sentences  in  tho  Gathas  not  so 
admirable  as  those  cited  above. 


60  INTRODUCTION. 


veiled  along  an  appointetl  path  to  a  narrow  bridge  wMcli 
led  to  Paradise :  over  tliis  bridge  only  pious  souls  could 
pass,  the  wicked  souls  falling  from  it  into  an  awful  gulf 
in  which  they  received  the  due  reward  of  their  deeds.  The 
happy  souls  of  the  good  were  helped  across  the  long  narrow 
arch  by  an  angel,  and  as  they  .entered  Paradise  a  great  arch- 
angel rose  from  his  throne  to  greet  each  of  them  with  the 
words,  "  How  happy  art  thou  who  hast  come  here  to  us 
from  the  mortality  to  the  immortality  !  " 

This  wonderfully  pure  creed  was,  however,  in  process  of 
time  corrupted  in  many  ways.  Pirst  of  all,  "  the  sad  anti- 
thesis of  human  life,"  the  conflict  between  light  and  dark- 
ness, good  and  evil, — the  standing  puzzle  of  the  world — ^led 
the  votaries  of  Ormazd  to  ducdism.  Ormazd  loved  and 
created  only  the  good.  The  evil  in  man  and  in  the  world 
must  be  the  work  of  an  enemy.  This  enemy,  Ahriman 
(Angro-mainyus),  has  been  seeking  from  eternity  to  undo, 
to  mar  and  blast,  the  fair  work  of  the  God  of  Heaven.  He 
is  the  baleful  author  of  all  evil,  and  under  him  are  spirits 
as  malignant  as  himself.  Between  these  good  and  evil 
powers  there  is  incessant  conflict,  a  conflict  which  extends 
to  every  soul  and  every  world.  It  will  never  cease  until 
the  great  Deliverer  arise — and  even  of  Him  the  Persians 
seem  to  have  had  some  dim  conception — who  shall  over- 
master and  destroy  evil  at  its  source,  all  things  then  round- 
ing to  their  final  goal  of  good. 

Another  corrupting  influence  had  its  origin  in  a  too 


INTRODUCTION.  Gl 


literal  interpretation  of  the  Names  given  to  the  Divine 
Being  by  the  founders  of  the  faith.  Ormazd,  for  example, 
had  been  described  as  "  true,  hicid,  shining,  the  originator 
of  all  the  best  things,  of  the  spirit  in  nature  and  of  the 
growth  in  nature,  of  the  luminaries  aiid  of  the  sclf-shininj 
hrightncss  ?vhich  is  in  the  luminaries."  From  these  epithets 
and  ascriptions  there  sprang  in  later  days  the  worship  of 
the  Sun,  then  of  the  fire,  as  a  type  of  God — a  worship  still 
maintained  by  the  disciples  of  Zoroaster,  the  Ghebers  and 
the  Parsees.  And  from  this  point  onward  the  old  sad  story 
repeats  itself;  once  more  we  have  to  trace  a  puye  and  lofty 
primitive  faith  through  the  grades  to  which  it  declines  on 
the  low  base  level  of  a  sensuous  idolatry.  The  Magians, 
always  the  bitter  enemies  of  Zoroastrianism,  held  that  the 
four  elements,  fire,  air,  earth,  and  water  were  the  only 
proper  objects  of  human  reverence.  It  was  not  difficult 
for  them  to  persuade  those  who  already  worshipped  fire, 
and  were  beginning  to  forget  of  AVhom  fire  was  the  symbol, 
to  include  in  their  homage  water  and  earth  and  air.  Divi- 
nation, incantations,  the  interpretation  of  dreams  and 
omens  soon  followed,  with  all  the  dark  shadows  wliich 
science  and  religion  cast  behind  them.  And  then  came 
the  lowest  deep  of  all,  that  worship  of  the  gods  by 
sensual  indulgences  to  which  idolatry  seems  inevitably  to 
gravitate. 

Nevertheless  we  must  remember  that  even  at  their 
worst  the  Persians  preserved  the  sacred  records  of  their 


62  INTRODUCTION. 


earlier  faith,  and  that  their  best  men  always  refused  to 
accept  the  base  additions  to  it  which  the  Magians  proposed. 
Corrupt  as  in  many  respects  many  of  them  became,  the 
conquest  of  Babylon  was  the  death-blow  to  the  sensual 
idol-worship  which  had  reigned  for  twenty  centuries  on  the 
vast  Chaldean  plains  :  it  never  wholly  recovered  from  it, 
though  it  survived  for  a  time.  From  that  date  it  declined 
to  its  fall :  "  Bel  bowed  down ;  Nebo  stooped  •*  Merodach 
was  broken  in  pieces."-|-  As  I  have  said,  the  noblest 
monarchs  of  Persia  were  true  disciples  of  the  primitive 
creed  of  their  race.  And,  beyond  a  doubt,  it  was  similarity 
of  creed  which  won  their  favour  for  the  Hebrew  Captives. 
CjTus,  in  the  decree^  that  enfranchised  them,  expressly 
identifies  Ormazd,  the  God  of  Heaven,  with  Jehovah,  the 
God  of  Israel ;  he  says  :  "  TJie  Lord  God  of  Heaven  hath 
given  me  all  the  kingdoms  of  the  earth,  and  He  hath 
charged  me  to  build  Him  a  house  at  Jerusalem.  Who  is 
there  among  you  of  all  His  people  ?  His  God  be  with 
him,  and  let  him  go  up  to  Jerusalem  and  build  the  house 
of  the  Lord  God  of  Israel — He  is  the  God."§    Nor  was  this 


*  Isaiali  xlvi.  1.  •)•  Jeremiah  1.  2.  J  Ezra  i.  2,  3. 

§  Darius  also  identifies  Jehovat  with  Ormazd  in  the  remarkable  decree  with 
which  he  silenced  the  un-scrupulous  opposition  of  the  Samaritans,  declaring  that 
it  was  for  the  advantage  of  the  Persian  Empire  that  "  the  house  of  God"  should 
be  rebuilt  in  Jerusalem,  since  in  that  temple  "  sacrifices  of  sweet  savours"  would 
be  offered  to  "  the  God  of  Heaven,"  and  prayers  be  uttered  "for  the  life  of  the 
king  and  of  his  sons."— (Ezra  vi.  10.) 


INTRODUCTION.  63 


belief  in  one  God,  whose  temple  was  to  be  defiled  by  no 
image  of  Himself,  the  only  point  in  common  between  the 
better  Persians,  such  as  Cyrus  and  Darius,  and  the  better 
Jews.  There  were  many  such  points.  Both  believed  in 
an  evil  spirit  tempting  and  accusing  men ;  in  m}Tiads  of 
angels,  all  the  host  of  heaven,  who  formed  the  armies  of 
God  and  did  His  pleasure ;  in  a  tree  of  life,  and  a  tree  of 
knowledge,  and  a  serpent  the  enemy  of  man :  both  shared 
an  iconoclastic  hatred  of  idols  and  graven  images,  the  hope 
of  a  coming  Deliverer  from  evil,  the  belief  in  an  immortal 
life  beyond  the  grave  and  a  happy  Paradise  in  which  all 
righteous  souls  would  find  their  home  and  see  their  Father's 
face.  These  common  faiths  and  hopes  would  all  be  points 
of  sympathy  and  attachment  between  the  two  races :  and 
it  is  to  this  agreement  in  religious  doctrine  and  practice 
that  we  must  ascribe  the  striking  fact, — ^that  the  Persians, 
ordinarily  the  most  intolerant  of  men,  never  persecuted  the 
Jews ;  and  that  the  Jews,  ordinarily  so  impatient  of  foreign 
domination,  never  made  a  single  attempt  to  cast  off  the 
Persian  yoke,  nay,  stood  by  the  declining  empire  when  the 
Greeks  were  thunderintr  at  its  cjates. 

On  one  question  all  competent  historians  and  commen- 
tators are  agreed  :  viz.,  that  the  Jews  gained  immensely  in 
the  clearness  and  compass  of  their  religious  faith  during 
the  Captivity.  The  Captivity  which  was  the  punishment 
was  also  the  limit  of  their  idolatry:  into  that  sin  they 
never  afterwards  fell.      Now  first,    too,  they  began  to 


64  INTRODUCTION. 


imderstaud  that  the  bond  of  their  unity  was  not  local,  not 
national  even,  but  spiritual  and  religious :  they  were  spread 
over  every  province  of  a  foreign  empire,  yet  they  were  one 
people  and  a  sacred  people  in  virtue  of  their  common 
service  of  Jehovah  and  their  common  hope  of  Messiah's 
coming.  This  hope  had  been  vaguely  felt  before,  and  just 
previous  to  the  Captivity  Isaiah  had  arrayed  it  in  an 
unrivalled  splendour  of  imagery:  now  it  sunk  into  the 
popular  mind  and  became  a  deep  longing  of  the  national 
heart.  Erom  this  period,  moreover,  the  immortality  of  the 
soul  and  the  life  beyond  death  entered  distinctly  and  pro- 
minently into  the  Hebrew  Creed.  Always  latent  in  their 
Scriptures,  these  truths  disclosed  themselves  to  the  Jews 
as  they  came  in  contact  with  the  Persian  doctrines  of 
judgment  and  future  rewards.  Hitherto  they  had  thought 
mainly,  if  not  exclusively,  of  the  temporal  rewards  and 
punishments  by  which  the  Mosaic  Law  encouraged  the 
good  and  threatened  the  wicked:  henceforth  they  saw 
that  in  time  and  on  earth  human  actions  are  not  carried 
to  their  final  and  due  results;  they  looked  forward  to  a 
judgment  in  which  all  wrongs  should  be  righted,  all  un- 
punished evils  receive  their  recompense,  and  all  the 
sufferings  of  the  good  be  exchanged  for  endless  joy  and 
peace. 

Now  this,  as  we  shall  see,  is  the  very  moral  of  the  Book 
Ecclesiastes,  the  triumphant  climax  to  which  it  mounts. 
The  endeavour  of  Coheleth  is  to  show  how  evil  and  good 


INTRODUCTION.  66 


blended  in  the  human  lot,  evil  so  largely  preponderating 
in  tlie  lot  of  many  of  the  good  as  to  make  life  a  curse 
imless  it  were  sustained  by  hope  ;  to  give  hope  by  assuring 
the  Hebrew  Captives  that  "  God  takes  cognisance  of  all 
things"  and  "will  bring  every  work  to  judgment,"  good  or 
bad ;  and  to  urge  on  them,  as  the  conclusion  of  his  Quest 
of  Good  and  as  the  whole  duty  of  man,  to  prepare  them- 
selves for  that  Divine  Judgment  by  fearing  God  and 
keeping  His  commandments.  This  was  the  light  he  was 
commissioned  to  carry  into  their  great  darkness ;  and  if 
the  lamp  and  the  oil  were  of  God,  it  is  hardly  too  much  to 
say  that  the  spark  which  kindled  the  lamp  was  taken  from 
the  Persian  fire,  since  that  also  was  of  God.  Or,  to  vary  the 
figure  and  to  make  it  more  accurate,  we  may  say,  that  the 
truths  of  the  future  life  lay  hidden  in  the  Hebrew  Scrip- 
tures, and  that  it  was  by  the  light  of  the  Persian  doctrine 
of  the  future  that  the  Jews  discovered  them  in  the  Word. 
It  is  thus  indeed  that  God  has  taught  men  in  all  ages. 
The  Word  remains  ever  the  same,  Init  our  circumstances 
change,  our  mental  posture  varies,  and  with  our  posture 
the  angle  at  which  the  light  of  Heaven  falls  on  the  sacred 
page:  we  are  brought  into  contact  with  new  races,  new 
ideas,  new  discoveries  of  science,  and  the  familiar  Word 
forthwith  teems  with  new  meanings,  witli  new  adaptations 
to  our  needs :  truths  unseen  before,  though  they  were 
always  there,  come  to  sight,  deep  truths  rise  to  the  surface, 
mysterious  truths  grow  simple  and  plain,  truths  that  jangled 

5 


66  INTRODUCTION. 


on  the  ear  melt  into  harmony ;  and  we  are  -svi-apt  in  wonder 
and  admiration  as  we  afresh  discover  the  Bible  to  be  the 
Book  for  all  races  and  for  all  ages,  an  inexhaustible 
fountain  of  truth  and  comfort  and  grace. 


TRANSLATION. 


€ttksmk$ ;  nr,  %  ^rtiicl^cr. 


THE    PEOLOGUE: 

In  which  the  Problem  of  tJic  Book  is  indirectly  stated. 

Chap.  I.,  w.  1  to  11. 


HE  "WORDS  OF  THE  PREACHER,   SON  OF  DAVID,  KING  IN  JERUSALEM. 

Vanity  of  vanities,  saith  the  Preaclier ;  2 

Vanity  of  vanities,  all  is  vanity, 

Since  man  hath  no  profit  from  all  his  labour  3 

^Vllich  he  laboureth  under  the  sun  ! 

For  one  generation  passeth,  and  another  generation  cometh  ;  4 

While  the  earth  abideth  for  ever. 


Veuse  1.  The  PreaeJur.  The  Son  of  David,  whoso  "words"  arc  recorded  in  this 
Book,  is  called  in  the  Hebrew  Cohclcth.  Coheleth  does  not  mean  "the  Preacher,"  but 
"  the  Assembler,"  or  "  the  Gatherer."  The  title  is  descriptive  of  the  author's  object.  It 
probably  signifies  that  just  as  Solomon  gathered  the  Hebrew  people  into  the  Temple  for 
the  worship  of  Jehovah  (1  Kings  viii.),  so  the  author's  endeavour  will  be  to  gather  back 
into  the  holy  fellowship  those  who,  perplexed  and  saddened  by  the  inscrutable  mor.d  pro" 
blems  of  the  time,  were  in  danger  of  renouncing  the  God  and  the  worship  of  their  fathers. 
This,  however,  is  a  main  object  with  every  preacher;  and  therefore  wo  may  retain  the 
rendering  of  the  word  Coheleth  which  long  use  has  made  familiar  and  expressive.  Probably 
"the  Preacher"  is  a  title  which  for  us  carries  more  weight  with  it,  more  even  of  the 
true  meaning  of  the  Hebrew,  than  cither  "the  Gatherer"  or  "the  Assembler"  would 
carry. 


70  ECCLESIASTES ;   OR,  THE  PREACHER. 

The  sun  also  riseth,  and  the  sun  goeth  down ;  5 

And  though  it  panteth  towards  its  place,  it  riseth  there  again. 
The  wind  goeth  toward  tlie  south,  and  veereth  to  the  north ;       6 
It  whirleth  round  and  round. 
Yet  the  wind  returneth  on  its  course. 
All  the  streams  run  into  the  sea,  yet  the  sea  doth  not  overflow  :  7 
To  the  place  whence  the  streams  came,  thither  they  return  again. 
All  words  are  vain.     Man  cannot  utter  it.  8 

The  eye  can  never  be  satisfied  with  seeing, 
Nor  could  the  ear  ever  hear  all. 

What  hath  been,  still  is  ;  9 

And  that  which  hath  been  done,  is  done  still : 
And  there  is  no  new  thing  under  the  sun. 
If  there  be  anything  of  which  it  is  said, '  Behold,  this  is  new  1 '     10 
It  hath  been  long  ago,  in  the  time  which  was  before  us. 

But  there  is  no  remembrance  of  those  who  have  been ;       11 
Nor  will  there  be  any  remembrance  of  men  who  are  to  come 
Among  those  tliat  will  live  after  them. 


Vv.  4 — 7-  The  Persian  Magi  worshipped  the  elements  of  fire,  air,  earth,  and  water  as  the 
only  proper  objects  of  human  reverence  (Herodotus  i.  132 ;  Strabo  xv.  3, 13).  In  these 
verses  therefore  there  may  be,  besides  their  obvious  meaning,  a  latent  reference  to  the 
objects  of  the  Magian  worship. 


FIEST   SECTION. 

The  Quest  of  tlie  Chief  Good  in  Wisdom  and  in  ricasurc. 

Chaqi.  I.  V.  12,  to  Chap.  II.  v.  20. 


THE  PREACHER,  was  king  over  Israel,  in  Jerusalem.  12   ^/'^'  (^"**'  '" 

Wisdom. 

And  I  gave  my  heart  to  search  diligently  into  the  wisdom  13 

Chap.  I., 

Of  all  that  is  done  under  heaven :  vv.  12— is. 

This  sore  task  hath  God  given  to  the  children  of  men. 
To  busy  themselves  therewith, 
1  considered  all  the  works  that  are  done  under  the  sim ;  14 

And,  behold,  they  are  all  vanity  and  vexation  of  spirit : 
For  that  which  is  crooked  cannot  be  set  straight,  15 

And  he  that  is  gone  cannot  be  numbered  again  ! 

I  therefore  spake  to  my  heart,  saying,  16 

'  I,  lo,  I  have  acquired  greater  wisdom 
Than  all  who  were  before  me  in  Jerusalem,' — 


Veuse  14.  Vexation  of  spirit.  Literally,  "  Stri\nng  after  the  wind."  But  the  tiinc- 
himoured  phrase  "  vexation  of  spirit"  sufficiently  expresses  the  Writer's  inclining.  It 
seems  better  therefore  to  retain  it  than  to  introduee  the  Hebrew  metaphor  which,  though 
it  be  very  expressive,  has  a  somewhat  novel  and  foreign  sound. 


72  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  I.  v.  17,  to 


My  heart  having  seen  much  wisdom  and  knowledge ; 

For  I  had  given  my  heart  to  find  knowledge  and  wisdom.  17 
I  perceive  that  even  this  is  vexation  of  spirit : 
For  in  much  wisdom  is  much  sadness,  18 

And  to  multiply  knowledge  is  to  multiply  sorrow. 

^^^  Q"'^*^  "'  THEN  I  said  to  my  heart :  ii.  1 

Pleasure. 

'  Come,  now,  let  me  try  thee  with  mirth. 

Chap.  II., 

w.  1-  11.  And  thou  shalt  see  pleasure :' 

And,  lo,  this  too  is  vanity ! 
To  mirth  I  said, '  Thou  art  mad !'  2 

And  to  pleasure,  '  What  canst  thou  do  ?' 
I  thought  in  my  heart  to  allure  my  body  with  pleasure,  3 


Verse  17.  To  find  knowledge  and  tvisdom.  The  Authorized  Version  renders,  "to  know 
wisdom,  and  to  know  madness  and  folly."  The  latter  clause  violates  both  the  sense  and 
the  grammatical  construction.  The  word  translated  "to  know"  is  not  an  infinitive,  but 
a  noun;  and  should  be  rendered  "knowledge:"  the  word  translated  "foUy"  means 
"prudence,"  and  the  word  translated  "madness"  hardly  means  more  than  "folly." 
Moreover,  the  text  seems  to  be  corrupt.  The  sense  of  the  passage  is  against  it,  I  think,  as 
it  now  stands :  for  the  design  of  Coheleth  is  simply  to  show  the  insufficiency  of  wisdom 
and  knowledge,  not  to  prove  folly  foolish.  On  the  whole  therefore  it  seems  better  to  follow 
the  high  authority  which  arranges  the  text  as  I  have  rendered  it.  The  Hebraist  Avill  find 
the  question  discussed  in  Ginsburg. 
Chap.  II.  Verse  2.  What  canst  thou  do  ?  The  Hebrew  idiom  is,  "  What  can  she  do?" 
Verse  3.  The  brief  day  of  their  life.  Literally,  "  the  numbered  days  of  Iheu"  life," 
that  is,  easily  numbered,  few,  brief. 


Chap.  II.  v.  8.  OR,  THE  rREACIIER.  73 


My  mind  guiding  it  wisely, 
And  to  lay  hold  on  folly. 
Till  I  should  see  what  it  is  good  for  the  sons  of  men  to  do  under 
heaven, 

Through  the  brief  day  of  their  life. 

I  multiplied  my  possessions  therefore ;  4 

I  builded  me  houses,  I  planted  me  vineyards ; 

I  made  me  gardens  and  pleasure-grounds,  5 

And  I  planted  in  them  trees  of  all  sorts  of  fruit ; 

I  made  me  tanks  of  water,  6 

From  which  to  water  the  groves : 
1  bought  me  menservants  and  maidservants,  and  had  homeborn 
servants :  7 

I  had  also  many  herds  of  oxen  and  sheep. 
More  indeed  than  all  who  were  before  me  in  Jerusalem : 

I  heaped  up  silver  and  gold,  8 

And  the  treasures  of  kings  and  of  the  kingdoms  : 
I  got  me  men-singers  and  women-singers ; 
And  the  amorous  delights  of  men  with  many  concubines : 


Vekse  6.     The  groves.    Literally,  "  the  groves  shooting  up  trees." 

Verse  8.    And  the  amorous  delights,  kc.     Littrally,  "  the  doli'rlit.s  of  men,  a  larpc 

uuinber  of  oonoubincs : "    but  the  word  for  "delights"  means  "lunorous  dclighta,"  and 

no  doubt  these  were  taken  "with"  the  concubines. 


74  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  II.  v.  9,  to 

So  that  I  surpassed  all  that  were  before  me  in  Jerusalem,      9 
My  wisdom  helping  me ; 
And  nothing  that  my  eyes  desired  did  I  withhold  from  them ;      10 

I  did  not  keep  back  my  heart  from  any  pleasure ; 
Since  my  heart  was  to  receive  happiness  from  all  my  toil. 

And  this  was  to  be  my  portion  from  all  my  toil. 
But  when  I  turned  to  look  on  all  the  works  which  my  hands  had 
wrought,  11 

And  at  the  labour  which  it  cost  me  to  accomplish  them. 
Behold,  all  was  vanity  and  vexation  of  spirit ; 
For  there  is  no  profit  under  the  sun  ! 

Wisdom  and      THEN  I  turned  to  compare  wisdom  with  madness  and  folly, —    12 
.g^  And  what  is  the  man  that  will  come  after  the  king 

Whom  they  made  king  long  ago  ? — 

Chap.  II.,  vv.  o     a 

I'-i— ^3. .  And  I  saw  that  wisdom  excelleth  folly  13 

As  far  as  light  excelleth  darkness : 
The  wise  man,  his  eyes  are  in  his  head,  14 

While  the  fool  walketh  blindly. 
Nevertheless  I  knew  that  the  same  fate  will  befall  both. 

Therefore  I  spake  with  my  heart :  15 

'  A  fate  like  that  of  tlie  fool  will  also  befall  me,  even  me ; 
Why  then  am  I  wiser?' 


Chai'.  II.  V.  22.  OR,  THE  PREACHER.  75 

And  I  said  to  my  heart : 
'  This  too  is  vanity, 
ISiucc  there  is  no  remembrance  of  the  wise  man  nor  of  the  fool ;  1 G 
For  both  will  be  forgotten 
As  in  time  past  so  also  in  days  to  come  : 
And,  alas,  the  wise  man  dieth  like  the  fool ! ' 
Tlierefore  I  hated  life,  for  a  sore  burden  was  upon  me,  17 

Even  the  labour  which  I  wrought  under  the  sun ; 
Since  all  is  vanity  and  vexation  of  spirit : 
Yea,  I  hated  all  the  gain  which  I  had  gained  under  the  sun,         18 

Because  I  must  leave  it  to  the  man  who  shall  come  after  me. 
And  who  can  tell  whether  he  will  be  a  wise  man  or  a  fool  ?         19 
Yet  shall  he  have  power  over  all  my  gain 
Which  I  have  wisely  gained  under  the  sun : 

This  too  is  vanity. 
Then  I  turned  to  cause  my  heart  to  despair  20 

Of  all  the  gain  which  I  gained  under  the  sun : 
For  here  is  a  man  who  hath  laboured  wisely  and  prudently  and 

dexterously,  21 

And  he  must  leave  it  as  a  portion  to  a  man  who  hath  not  laboured 
therein  ; 

This  also  is  vanity  and  a  great  evil : 
For  man  hath  nothing  of  all  his  heavy  labour  22 


76  ECCLESIASTES ;  OR,  THE  PREACHER. 

And  the  vexation  of  his  heart  under  the  sun, 
Since  his  task  grieveth  and  vexeth  him  all  his  days,        23 
And  even  at  night  his  heart  hath  no  rest : 
This  too  is  vanity. 

TheConciusion.       THEEE  is  nothing  better  for  man  than  to  eat  and  to  drink,     24 
Chap.  II.,  vv.  And  to  let  his  soul  take  pleasure  in  his  labour — 

But  even  this,  I  saw,  cometh  from  God — 

For  who  should  eat,  25 

And  who  should  hasten  thereunto  more  than  he  ? 

For  to  the  man  who  is  good  before  Him,  26 

He  giveth  wisdom  and  knowledge  and  joy ; 
But  to  the  sinner  He  giveth  the  task  to  gather  and  to  heap  up. 
And  to  give  it  to  him  who  is  good  before  God : 
Tliis  also  is  vanity  and  vexation  of  spirit. 


24— 2G. 


Verse  25.  More  than  he  ?  The  Hebrew  is  "  more  than  I  ?"  The  sense  is, — "Who  has  a 
clearer  right  to  enjoy  the  fruit  of  his  toil  than  ho  who  has  wrought  at  it  ?  And  to  express 
the  thought  more  vividly,  Coheleth,  adopting  a  common  Hebrew  idiom,  throws  himself 
into  the  labourer's  place,  speaks  in  his  person:  says  "more  than  7"  instead  of  "more 
than  he.'"  But  to  retain  this  idiom  in  our  English  Version  would  be  to  confuse  the 
meaning  of  the  verse  rather  than  to  make  it  more  clear. 


SECOND  SECTION. 

Thr  Quest  of  tlie  Chief  Good  in  Devotion  to  the  Affairs  of  Business. 

Chap.  III.  v.l,to  Chaj).  V.  v.  20. 


IIEIIE  is  a  season  for  all  things,  ill.  1   nc  Quest 

obstructed  hi/ 

And  an  appointed  time  for  every  undertaking  under  Uiviue  Ordi- 


tuinces  ; 


heaven : 
A  time  to  be  born,  and  a  time  to  die :  2  c^"*?-  ^^^■'  ^'^• 

1—15. 

A  time  to  plant,  and  a  time  to  pluck  up  plants ; 

A  time  to  kill,  and  a  time  to  save  ;  3 

A  time  to  pull  down  houses,  and  a  time  to  build  them  up  ; 

A  time  to  weep,  and  a  time  to  laugh  ;  4 

A  time  to  mourn,  and  a  time  to  rejoice  ; 
A  time  to  cast  away  stones,  and  a  time  to  gather  up  stones  ;      5 
A  time  to  embrace,  and  a  time  to  refrain  from  embracing ; 

A  time  to  seek,  and  a  time  to  lose  ;  6 

A  time  to  keep,  and  a  time  to  throw  away  ; 
A  time  to  rend  garments,  and  a  time  to  sew  them  together;        7 

A  time  to  be  silent,  and  a  time  to  speak ; 


78  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  III.  v.  8,  to 

A  time  to  love,  and  a  time  to  hate ;  8 

A  time  of  war,  and  a  time  of  peace: 
He  who  laboureth  hath  therefore  no  profit  from  his  labours.  9 

I  have  considered  the  task  which  God  hath  given  to  the  sons     10 
of  men, 

To  busy  themselves  withal : 
He  hath  made  it  all  beautiful  in  its  season  ;  11 

He  hath  also  put  eternity  into  their  heart ; 
Only  they  understand  not  the  work  of  God  from  beginning  to 
end. 
I  found  that  there  was  no  good  for  them  but  to  rejoice  12 

And  to  do  themselves  good  all  their  life  ; 

And  also  that  if  a  man  eat  and  drink  13 

And  take  pleasure  in  all  his  labour, 
It  is  a  gift  of  God. 
I  found  too  that  whatever  God  hath  ordained  continueth  for        14 
ever; 


Chap.  III.  Verse  11.  Only  they  understand  not,  &c.  Literally,  "only  man  under- 
standeth  not  the  work  which  God  hath  made" — man  being  coUeetivo  here,  a  noun  of 
multitude,  and  equivalent  to  "  the  sons  of  men"  of  the  previous  verso. 

Verse  12.  I  found,  &c.  Literally,  "I  know."  But  the  verb  is  used  in  the  sense  of 
"  I  camo  to  know,"  I  discovered,  I  found  out.  The  same  verb  is  used  in  the  opening 
clause  of  verse  14. 


Chap.  III.  v.  20. 


OR,  THE  PREACHER. 


79 


Nothing  can  be  added  to  it, 
And  nothing  can  be  taken  from  it : 
And  (Jod  hath  so  ordered  it  that  men  may  fear  before  Ilini. 
That  which  hath  been  was  long  ago, 
And  that  which  is  to  be  was  long  a^o ; 
For  God  recalleth  the  past. 

MOEEOVER,  I  saw  under  the  sun, 
That  there  was  iniquity  in  the  place  of  justice. 
And  in  the  place  of  equity  there  was  iniquity. 
I  said  to  mine  heart : 
'  God  will  judge  tlie  righteous  and  the  wicked, 
For  there  is  a  time  for  everything  and  for  every  deed  with  Him.' 
Yet  I  said  to  my  heart  of  the  children  of  men  : 

'  God  hath  chosen  them 
To  show  that  they,  even  they,  are  as  beasts. 
For  a  mere  chance  is  man,  and  the  beast  a  mere  chance. 

And  they  are  both  subject  to  the  same  chance  ; 
As  is  the  death  of  the  one  so  is  the  death  of  the  other ; 
And  both  have  the  same  spirit : 
And  the  man  hath  no  advantage  over  the  beast, 
For  both  are  vanity : 
Both  go  to  the  same  place ; 


\C)    -^ "^^ ^'!/ Human 
Injustice  ami 
Vurversity. 

Chap.  III., 

1 1T    V.  IG,  to  Chap. 

IV.,  V.  .3. 


18 


ly 


20 


80  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  III.  v.  21,  to 

Both  sprang  from  dust,  and  both  turn  into  dust : 
And  who  knoweth  whether  the  si)irit  of  man  goeth  upward,         21 
Or  the  spirit  of  the  beast  goeth  downward  to  the  earth  ? ' 

Wherefore  I  saw  that  there  is  notliing  better  for  man  22 

Than  to  rejoice  in  his  labours  ; 
For  this  is  his  portion  : 
And  who  shall  give  him  to  see  what  will  be  after  him  ? 

Then  I  turned  and  saw  iv.  1 

All  the  oppressed  who  are  suffering  under  the  sun : 
I  beheld  the  tears  of  the  oppressed, 

And  they  had  no  comforter ; 
And  their  oppressors  were  violent, 
Yet  had  they  no  comforter  : 
And  I  accounted  the  dead  who  died  long  ago  2 

Happier  than  the  living  who  are  still  alive ; 
Wliile  happier  than  either  is  he  who  hath  not  been  born,        3 
Who  liath  not  seen  the  evil  doings  which  are  done  under  the 
sun. 


Verse  21.  The  question  is  here,  as  so  often  in  Hebrew,  the  strongest  form  of  negation. 
As  in  V.  19  the  Preacher  affirms  of  man  and  beast  that  •'  both  have  the  same  spirit,"  and 
in  V.  20,  that  "both  go  to  the  same  place,"  so,  in  this  verse,  he  emphatically  denies  that 
there  is  any  diflference  in  their  destination  at  death. 


Chap.  IV.  v.  9 


OR,  THE  PREACHER. 


81 


THEN  too  I  saw  that  all  this  toil, 
And  all  this  dexterity  in  toil, 
Spring  from  the  jealous  rivalry  of  one  with  the  other  : 
This  also  is  vanity  and  vexation  of  spirit. 
The  sluggard  foldeth  his  hands  ; 
Yet  he  eateth  his  meat : 
Better  a  handful  of  quiet 
Than  two  handsful  of  labour  with  vexation  of  spirit. 
And  again  I  turned  and  saw  a  vanity  under  the  sun  : 
Here  is  a  man  who  hath  no  one  with  him, 
Not  even  a  son  or  a  brother ; 
And  yet  there  is  no  end  to  all  his  labour, 
Neither  are  his  eyes  satisfied  with  riches  : 
For  whom  then  doth  he  labour  and  deny  his  soul  any  of 
his  wealth  ? 

This  too  is  vanity  and  an  evil  work. 


4    It  is  rendtrcd 
hopvlfsii  by  the 
bd.sf  Or  11/ in  of 
If  Kill  (III  In- 
ditstricH. 

Chap.  IV., 
vv.  4—8. 


TWO  are  better  than  one. 
Because  they  have  a  good  reward  for  their  labour : 


9    Tet  these  are 
capable  of  a 
nobler  Motive 
and  Mode. 

Chap.  IV., 
w.  9—16. 


Chap.  IV.  Verse  8.  For  whom  doth  he,  &c.  Literally,  "  for  whom  do  /labour  and  deny 
myself  any  of  my  wc:ilth?"  As  in  Chap.  II.  v.  25,  Cohclcth  suddenly  assumes  the 
labourer's  place,  so  here,  and  for  the  same  reason,  he  assiuucs  that  of  the  lonely  miser. 


82  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  IV.  v.  10,  to 


For  if  one  fall,  the  other  will  lift  up  his  fellow  ;  10 

But  woe  to  the  lonely  one  who  falleth 
And  hath  no  fellow  to  help  him  up  ! 
Moreover,  if  two  sleep  together,  they  are  warm ;  1 1 

But  he  that  is  alone,  how  can  he  he  warm  ? 
And  if  an  enemy  overpower  the  one,  two  will  withstand  him.       12 
And  a  threefold  cord  is  not  easily  broken. 

Happier  is  a  poor  and  wise  youth  13 

Than  an  old  and  foolish  king 
Who  even  yet  has  not  learned  to  be  admonished  : 
For  a  prisoner  may  go  from  a  prison  to  a  throne,  14 

Whilst  a  king  may  become  a  beggar  in  his  own  kingdom. 

I  see  all  the  living  who  walk  under  the  sun  15 

Flocking  to  the  sociable  youth  who  standeth  up  in  his  place  ; 
There  is  no  end  to  the  multitude  of  the  people  over  whom  he 

ruleth :  16 

Nevertheless  those  who  live  after  him  will  not  rejoice  in  him  ; 
For  even  this  is  vanity  and  vexation  of  spirit. 


Verse  12.     The  one:  i.e.  "the  lonely  one"  of  the  previous  verse. 
Verse  15.    Flocking  to  the  sociable  youth.    Literally,  "  with  the  sociable  youth :"  i.e. 
ivith  him  in  the  sense  of  coming  to  his  help,  joining  his  faction  in  the  State. 


Chap.  V.  v.  6. 


OR,  THE  PREACHER. 


83 


KEEP  thy  foot  when  tliou  goest  to  the  House  of  God  ; 
Fur  it  is  better  to  obey  than  to  offer  the  sacrifices  of  the 
disobedient, 

Since  they  who  obey  cannot  do  evil. 
Do  not  hurry  on  thy  mouth, 
And  do  not  urge  thy  heart  to  utter  words  before  God  ; 
For  God  is  in  heaven,  and  thou  upon  earth : 
Therefore  let  thy  words  be  few. 
Moreover  a  dream  cometh  through  the  multitude  of  affairs. 
And  foolish  talk  through  the  multitude  of  words. 
When  thou  vowest  a  vow  unt(j  God, 

Do  not  hesitate  to  pay  it : 
For  fools  have  no  steadfast  will. 
Pay  that  which  thou  hast  vowed. 
Better  that  thou  shouldest  not  vow 
Than  that  thou  shouldest  vow  and  not  pay. 
Suffer  not  thy  mouth  to  cause  thy  flesh  to  sin. 


V_    \     So  a  ho  a  nobler 
and  happier 
Mode  of  If'or- 
sh  ip  in  open  to 
men : 


Chap,  v., 
2    vv.  1—7. 


Chap.  V.  Ytise  1.  It  is  better.  Literally,  "It  is  nearer  :"  that  is  to  say.  To  keep  in 
the  path  of  obedience  is  a  nciirer  way  of  coming  to  God,  brings  us  more  .speedily  and 
happily  into  His  presence,  than  the  roundabout  and  dubious  path  of  sinning  and  then 
bringing  sin-oflferings.     Cannot  do  evil.    Literally,  "  Know  not  to  do  evil." 

Verse  6.  Before  the  Angel.  That  is,  before  the  Angel  who,  to  the  Hebrew  thought, 
presided  over  the  altar  of  worship,  and  who  was  present  even  when  only  two  or  three  met 
for  the  study  of  the  Law :  to  study  the  Law  being  in  some  sort  an  act  of  worship. 


84 


ECCLESIASTES; 


CuAr.  V.  V.  7,  TO 


And  say  not  before  the  Angel,  '  It  was  an  error  :' 
For  why  should  God  be  angry  at  thine  idle  talk 
And  destroy  the  work  of  thy  hands  ? 
For  all  this  is  through  the  multitude  of  idle  thoughts  and 
vanities  and  much  talking  : 

But  fear  thou  God. 


And  a  more 
helpful  and 
consolatory 
Trust  in  the 
Divine 
Frovidcncc. 

Chap,  v., 
vv.  8—17. 


IF  THOU  seest  oppression  of  the  poor,  8 

And  the  perversion  of  justice  and  equity  in  the  land, 
Be  not  dismayed  at  it ; 
For  superior  watcheth  superior, 
And  superiors  again  watch  over  them  : 
And  the  advantage  for  the  people  is,  that  it  extendeth  to  all,     9 
For  even  the  king  is  a  servant  to  the  field. 
He  that  loveth  silver  is  never  satisfied  with  silver,        10 
Nor  he  that  loveth  riches  with  what  they  yield  ; 
This  too  is  vanity. 
For  when  riches  increase  they  increase  that  consume  them  :     1 1 


Veiise  7.  All  tJtis.  Literally,  "  It  is."  That  is  to  say,  All  the  evils  which  Cobolcth  has 
jiLst  deprecated — iiTOvcrent  prayers,  luiatuning  sacrifices,  rash  vows,  and  the  punishment 
these  provoke — spring  from  the  multitude  of  idle  thoughts  and  words. 


Chap.  V.  v  17.  OR,  THE  PREACHER.  86 

\Vliat  advantage  then  hath  the  owner  thereof 
Save  the  looking  thereupon  with  his  eyes  ? 

The  sleep  of  the  husbandman  is  sweet  1 2 

Whether  he  eat  little  or  much ; 
While  abundance  suffereth  not  the  rich  to  sleep. 
There  is  a  great  evil  which  I  have  seen  under  the  sun —       1 3 
Eiches  have  been  hoarded  up  by  the  rich 
To  the  hurt  of  the  next  owner  thereof : 
For  the  riches  perish  iu  an  unlucky  enteiprise,  14 

And  he  begetteth  a  sou  when  he  hath  nothing  iu  his  hand  : 
As  he  cometh  forth  from  the  womb  of  his  mother,  1  ^> 

Even  as  he  cometh  naked. 
So  also  he  returneth  again, 
And  taketh  nothing  from  his  labour 
Wliich  he  may  carry  away  in  his  hand. 

Tliis  also  is  a  great  evil,  1^ 

That  just  as  he  cometh  so  he  must  go : 
And  what  advantage  hath  he  who  laboureth  for  the  wind  ( 

Yet  all  his  days  he  eateth  in  darkness,  17 

And  is  much  perturbed  and  hath  vexation  and  grief. 


Verse  14.    An  unlucky  mterprise.     Literally,  "  iin  cuiployiucnt  of  evil : ''  i.e.  ii  project 
wtli  evil  or  unfortuuatc  roaults. 


86  ECCLESIASTES;  OR,  THE  PREACHER. 


ne Conclusion.  BEHOLD,  that  wliicli  I  have  said  holds  good—  18 

Chap,  v.,  That  it  is  well  for  man  to  eat  and  to  drink 

And  to  enjoy  the  good  of  all  his  labours  which  he  laboureth 

imder  the  sun, 
Through  the  brief  day  of  his  life  which  God  hath  given  him : 
For  this  is  his  portion. 

And  I  have  also  said,  19 

That  a  man  to  whom  God  hath  given  riches  and  wealth, 
If  He  hath  also  enabled  him  to  eat  thereof 
And  to  take  his  portion  and  to  rejoice  in  his  labour  ; — 
This  is  a  gift  of  God  : 
He  shoidd  remember  that  the  days  of  his  life  are  not  many,     20 
And  that  God  meant  liim  to  work  for  the  enjoyment  of  his 
heart. 


Veuse  18.  T7ial  tvhichlhavcfiaid.  Literally,  "that  which  I  hoYC seen ;"  but  the  meaning 
is,  "  that  which  I  asserted  before — that  which  I  have  seen  and  have  said  that  I  had  seen." 


THIIID  SECTION. 

Tlic  Quest  in  Wealth  and  in  the  Golden  Mean. 

Chaps.  VI.,  VII.  and  VIIL  vv.  1  to  15. 


IIEPtE   is   another   evil   which   T   have   seen  under    the  '^,!''^T^'" 

0  Wealth. 

sun,  VI.    1   jie  ^viiQ  makes 

And  it  weigheth  heavily  upon  men  :  ciitf  Goi  i^ 

Here  is  a  man  to  whom  God  hath  given  riches  and  wealth  and  Ij^^"^*®^  ^J 

°  r  ears  and 

abundance,  2  I'l^rpiexities : 

So  that  his  soul  lacketh  nothing  of  all  that  it  desireth ;  chap.  vi., 

w,  1 — G. 

And  God  hath  not  given  him  the  power  of  enjoying  it, 
But  a  stranger  enjoy eth  it : 
This  is  vanity  and  a  great  evil. 
Though  one  beget  a  hundred  children  3 

And  live  many  years, 
Yea,  many  as  may  be  the  days  of  liis  years. 
Yet  if  his  soul  is  not  satisfied  with  good ; 


Chap.  VI.  Verso  I.    Another  evil.     LiteniUy,  "nn  evil." 


ECCLESIASTES  ;  Chap.  YI.  v.  4,  to 


Even  though  the  grave  did  not  wait  for  him, 
Yet  better  is  an  abortion  than  he  : 
For  this  cometh  in  nothingness  and  goeth  in  darkness,         4 
And  its  memory  is  covered  with  darkness ; 
It  doth  not  even  see,  and  doth  not  know  the  sun  :     5 
It  hath  more  rest  than  he. 
And  if  he  live  a  thousand  years  and  see  no  good  : —  6 

Do  not  both  go  to  the  same  place  ? 
For  God  has  _421  the  labour  of  this  man  is  for  his  mouth ;  7 

put  Etirnity 

into  his  Heart ;  Therefore  the  soul  Cannot  be  satisfied: 

Chap.  VI.,  ^or  what  advantage  hath  the  wise  man  over  the  fool,  8 

^^' '~   ■  Or  what  the  poor  man  over  the  magnate  ? 

It  is  better  indeed  to  enjoy  the  good  we  have  9 

Than  to  crave  a  good  beyond  our  reach : 
Yet  even  this  is  vanity  and  vexation  of  spirit. 
That  which  hath  been  was  long  since  ordained  ;  10 

And  it  is  very  certain  that  even  the  greatest  is  but  a  man, 

Verse  3.     Yet  better.    Literally,  '^  I  say  better." 

Verse  4.    For  this  ;  viz.  "  the  abortion  "  of  the  previous  verse. 

Verse  8.  The  magnate.  Literally,  "he  who  knoweth  to  walk  before  the  living;"  a 
man  of  eminent  station  who  is  much  in  the  eye  of  the  public. 

Verse  9.  To  enjoy  the  good  we  have,  &c.  Literally,  "  Better  is  that  wliich  is  seen  by 
the  eyes  (the  i^retsent  good)  than  thrit  which  is  pursued  by  the  soul  (the  distant  and  uncer- 
tain good)." 


Chap.  VII.  v.  6.  OR,  THE  PREACHER. 


And  cannot  contend  with  Him  who  is  mightier  than  he. 

Moreover  there  are  many  things  which  increase  vanity  :  11  hcgai„»o}ihf 

f(t(h  raiiifi/ ; 

"What  advantage  then  hath  man  ?  <-'ii"p-  vi., 

V.  11. 

And  who  knoweth  what  is  good  for  man  in  life,  12  Nor  can  he  tcu 

uhat  will 

The  brief  day  of  his  vain  life  which  he  spendeth  as  a  shadow  ?         *^|^/|'^^  <'/^'» 
And  who  can  tell  man  what  shall  be  after  him  under  the  sun  ?        v.  i'l.'      ' 

A  GOOD  NAME  is  better  than  sweet  perfume,        vn.  1  ^Yr^.S  "* 
And  the  day  of  death  better  than  the  day  of  one's  birth  :       ,j,^^  Method 
It  is  better  to  go  the  house  of  mourning  2  ^ho  pursues  u. 

Than  to  the  house  of  feasting,  vv."i— ii.  ' 

Because  this  is  the  end  of  all  men, 
And  the  living  should  lay  it  to  heart  : 
Better  is  serious  thought  than  wanton  mirth,  3 

For  by  a  sad  countenance  the  heart  is  bettered  : 
The  heart  of  the  wise  therefore  is  in  the  house  of  mourning,      4 
But  in  the  house  of  mirth  is  the  heart  of  fools. 
It  is  better  for  a  man  to  listen  to  the  reproof  of  the  wise  5 

Than  to  listen  to  the  song  of  fools  ; 


Veuse  12.     The  brief  day.    Literally,  "  the  numbered  days,"  i.e.  easily  numbered,  few. 
Chap.  VII.  Verse  2.    Because  this  is  the  end:  i.e.,  the  death  bewailed  in  (he  house  of 
mouminf,'. 
Veiise  3.     The  heart  is  bettered ;  or,  ixirhapij,  "  the  hcait  is  made  good." 


90  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  VII.  v.  6,  to 

For  the  laughter  of  fools  is  like  the  crackling  of  thorns  under 

a  pot :  6 

Til  is  also  is  vanity. 

Wrong-doing  maketh  the  wise  man  foolish,  7 

And  corrupteth  a  gentle  heart. 

The  end  of  a  reproof  is  better  than  its  beginning,  8 

And  patience  is  better  than  pride : 
Therefore  hurry  not  on  thy  spirit  to  be  angry;  9 

For  anger  is  nursed  in  the  bosom  of  fools. 
Do  not  say,    '  How  was  it  that  former  days  were  better  than 
these  ?'  10 

For  that  is  not  the  part  of  wisdom. 

Wisdom  is  as  good  as  wealth,  11 

And  even  hath  an  advantage  over  it  for  those  who  lead  an  active 
life: 

For  to  be  under  the  shelter  of  wisdom  12 

Is  to  be  under  the  shelter  of  wealth  ; 


Verse  11  Those  who  lead  an  active  life.  Literally,  "  those  wlio  see  the  sun ;"  i.e.  those 
who  are  much  in  the  sun,  who  lead  a  busy  active  life,  are  much  occupied  with  traffic  or 
public  affairs. 

Verse  12.  Fortifieth  the  heart :  i.e.  keeps  the  heart  tranquil  and  serene  under  all 
chances  and  changes. 


CiiAi-.  VII.  V.  18.  OR,  THE  PREACHER.  91 

And  the  advaiitage  of  wisdom  is. 
That  it  fortifieth  the  heart  of  the  possessor  thereof. 

Consider  moreover  the  work  of  God :  13 

Since  no  man  can  straighten  that  which  He  hath  made  crooked. 

In  the  day  of  prosperity  be  thou  content ;  14 

And  in  the  day  of  adversity, 
Eemember  that  God  hath  made  this  as  well  as  that, 
In  order  that  man  should  not  be  able  to  foresee  that  which  is  to 
come. 

IN  MY  fleeting  days  I  have  seen  15   The  Perils  to 

.  which  it  exposes 

Both  the  righteous  die  m  his  righteousness,  him. 

And  the  wicked  live  long  in  his  wickedness  :  to  comp'roiIiiL^ 


Be  not  very  righteous  therefore ;  1 6 


Conscience  ; 


Nor  make  thyself  too  wise  lest  thou  be  forsaken  :  ^^^•'*p-  '^'^^•» 

vv.  15—20. 

Be  not  very  %vicked,  nor  yet  very  foolish,  17 

Lest  thou  die  before  thy  time  : 
It  is  better  that  thou  shouldest  lay  hold  of  this,         18 


Verse  14.  This  as  well  as  that :  i.e.  adversity  as  well  as  prosperity.  God  sends  both 
that,  not  foreseeing  what  may  come  to  pass,  we  may  live  in  a  constant  and  hmiiblc 
dependence  on  Him. 

Verse  18.  This  .  .  .  and  (hat.  This  refers  to  the  folly  and  wickedness  of  verse  17; 
and  that  to  the  wisdom  and  righteousness  of  verse  16.  Take  hold  on  both.  Literally,  "  go 
along  with  both." 


92  ECCLESIASTES :  Chap.  VII  v.  19,  to 

And  also  not  let  go  of  that ; 
For  whoso  feareth  God  will  take  hold  on  both. 

Tliis  wisdom  alone  is  greater  strength  to  the  wise      19 

Than  an  army  to  a  beleaguered  city ; 
For  there  is  not  a  righteous  man  on  earth  20 

Who  doeth  good  and  sinneth  not. 
,2>.  -p^  ^g  Moreover  seek  not  to  know  all  that  is  said  of  thee,  21 

inJifferent  to  j^gg^  ^j-^q^  -^q^^  ^^ly  Servant  speak  evil  of  thee : 

Censure ; 

For  thou  knowest  in  thine  heart  22 

Chap.  VII., 

vv.  21, 22.  That  thou  also  hast  many  times  spoken  evil  of  others. 

All  this  wisdom  have  I  tried.  23 

I  desired  a  higher  wisdom,  but  it  was  far  from  me  : 
That  which  was  far  off  remaineth  far  off,  24 

And  deep  remaineth  deep : 
Who  can  find  it  out  ? 

Then  I  and  my  heart  turned  to  know  this  wisdom  2  5 

And  diligently  examine  it — 


Vekse  19.  This  wisdom  :  viz.  the  moderate  cominon-sense  view  of  life  which  has  been 
described.  Than  an  armi/,  &c.  LiteitiUy,  "  than  many  mighty  men  who  have  been  in 
the  city." 

Vekse  21.  Sevk  not  to  know,  &c.  Literally,  "  Give  not  thy  heart  to  all  words  that  are 
uttered." 


Chai-.  VIII.  V.  1.  OR,  THE  PREACHER.  93 

To  discover  the  cause  of  wickedness,  vice,  (3)  i""  despise 

Women  ; 

And  that  folly  which  is  madness  ;  dj     yjj^ 

And  I  found  woman  more  bitter  than  death  :  26  ^^' 

She  is  a  net ; 
Her  heart  is  a  snare,  and  her  hands  are  chains : 
Whoso  is  good  before  God  shall  escape  her, 

But  the  sinner  shall  bo  taken  by  her. 
Behold  what  I  have  found,  saith  the  Preacher —  27 

Taking  things  one  by  one  to  reach  the  result — 
And  what  my  soul  is  still  seeking  and  I  have  not  found  : 

I  have  found  one  man  among  a  thousand,  28 

But  in  all  that  number  a  woman  have  I  not  found  : 

Lo,  this  only  have  I  found,  29 

That  God  made  man  upright, 
But  that  they  seek  out  many  devices. 

Who  is  like  the  wise  man  ?  viii.  1   ,^.  j^^^  ^^  ,^ 

And  who  like  him  that  understandeth  the  interpretation  of  tliis       '°dificrcnt  to 
matter  ? 


Public  Wronirs. 


The  wisdom  of  this  man  raaketh  his  face  bright 
And  his  sad  countenance  is  changed. 


Chap.  VIII.  verso  1.     This  matUr.     Literully,   "the  thing,"  i.e.  the  thing  or  matter 
hero  in  question :  viz.  this  practical  prudent  view  of  human  life. 


Chap.  VIII., 
w.  1—13. 


94  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  VIII.  v.  2,  to 

I  say  then.  Obey  the  King's  commandment,  2 

And  the  rather  because  of  the  oath  of  fealty  : 

Do  not  throw  off  thine  allegiance,  3 

Nor  resent  an  evil  word. 
For  he  can  do  whatsoever  he  please : 
For  the  word  of  a  king  is  mighty ;  4 

And  who  shall  say  to  him,  '  What  doest  thou  ? ' 
Whoso  keepeth  his  commandment  will  not  know  an  evil  word.    5 
Moreover  the  heart  of  the  wise  man  foreseeth  a  time  of  retribu- 
tion— 

For  there  is  a  time  of  retribution  for  all  things —  6 

When  the  tyranny  of  man  is  heavy  upon  him  : 

Because  he  knoweth  not  what  will  be,  7 

And  because  no  one  can  tell  him  when  it  will  be. 

No  man  is  ruler  over  his  own  spirit,  8 


Verse  2.  The  oath  of  fealty.  Literally,  "the  oath  by  God."  The  Babylonian  and 
Persian  despots  exacted  an  oath  of  loyalty  from  conquered  races.  Each  had  to  swear  by  the 
god  he  wor.shipped. 

Verse  3.  Bo  not  throw  ojjr,  &c.  Literally,  "  Do  not  hurry  from  his  presence  or  even 
stand  up  because  of  an  e%'il  word."  To  stand  up  in  the  divan  of  an  eastern  despot  is  a 
sign  of  resentment ;  to  rush  from  it,  a  sign  of  disloyalty  and  rebellion. 

Verse  7.  Because  he  hioweth  not :  i.e.  the  tyrant  does  not  know.  The  sense  seems  to 
bo :  Retribution  is  all  the  more  certain  because,  in  his  infatuation,  the  despot  docs  not 
foresee  the  disastrous  results  of  his  tyranny,  and  because  no  one  can  tell  him  when  or  how 
they  wiD  disclose  themselves. 


Chap.  VIII.  v.  11.  OR,  THE  TREACHER.  95 

To  retain  the  spirit, 
Nor  has  he  any  power  over  the  day  of  his  death  ; 
And  there  is  no  furlough  in  this  battle, 
And  no  craft  will  save  the  wicked. 

All  this  have  I  seen,  9 

Having  given  my  heart  to  all  that  is  done  under  the  sun. 
But  there  is  a  time  when  a  man  ruleth  over  men  to  their  hurt.    10 
Thus  I  have  seen  wicked  men  buried 
And  come  again, 
And  those  who  did  right  depart  from  the  place  of  the  holy 
And  be  forgotten  in  the  city  : 
This  also  is  vanity. 
Because  sentence  against  an  evil  deed  is  not  executed  forthwith,  1 1 
The  heart  of  the  sons  of  men  is  set  in  them  to  do  evil — 
Because  a  sinner  doeth  evil  a  hundred  years, 
And  hath  a  son  to  perpetuate  his  evil. 


Veuse  9.  All  this  have  I  seen :  i.e.  all  this  retribution  on  tjTants  and  the  consequent 
deliverance  of  the  oppressed. 

Verse  10.  But  the  Preacher  has  also  seen  times  when  retributive  justice  did  not 
overtake  the  oppressors,  when  they  came  again  in  the  person  of  children  as  wicked  and 
tyrannical  as  themselves. 

Verse  U.  And  hath  a  son  to  jjcrpctuate  his  evil.  Literally,  "And  there  is  ii 
perpetuator  to  him." 


06  ECCLESIASTES ;  OR,  THE  PREACHER. 

But  I  know  that  it  shall  be  well  with  those  who  fear  God,       12 
Who  truly  fear  before  Him  : 
And  it  shall  not  be  well  with  the  wicked,  13 

But,  like  a  shadow,  he  shall  not  prolong  his  days, 
Because  he  doth  not  fear  before  God, 


nv'r'o/-"*        That  there  are  righteous  men  who  have  a  wao;e  like  that  of  the 


Therefore  the  NEVEETHELESS  this  vanity  dotli  happen  on  the  earth,    14 

there  are 
wicked, 
bhere  an 
righteous : 


Preacher  con 
(hmnn  thin 
I  'icir  of 
lilt »i fin  Life. 


vi^i^lH''     -Ajid  there  are  wicked  men  who  have  a  wage  like  that  of  the 


This  too,  I  said,  is  vanity. 
And  I  commended  mirth,  15 

Because  there  is  nothing  better  for  man  under  the  sun 
Than  to  eat  and  drink  and  rejoice ; 
And  this  will  go  with  him  to  liis  work 
Through  the  days  of  his  life. 
Which  God  giveth  him  under  the  sun. 


Vekse  15.     And  this  will  go  with  him :  viz.  this  clear  enjoying  temper  than  which, 
as  yet,  the  Preacher  haa  found  "  nothing  better." 


FOURTH  SECTION. 

Tlie  Quest  of  the  Chief  Good  Aehicved. 

Chap.  VIII.  V.  16,  to  Chap.  XII.  v.  7. 


S  THEN  I  gave  my  heart  to  acquire  wisdom,       viii.     16  The  Chief  Good 

not  to  be  found 

And  to  see  the  work  which  is  done  under  the  sun,  in  msdom  : 

How  that  one  seeth  no  sleep  with  his  eyes  by  day  or  by  night ;  chap,  viii., 

I  saw  that  man  cannot  find  out  all  the  work  of  God  ^ ^  i x  V  "c   * *'' 

Which  is  done  under  the  sun  ; 
Though  man  labour  to  discover  it, 
He  cannot  find  it  out ; 

And  though  the  wise  man  say  he  understandeth  it. 
Nevertheless  he  hath  not  found  it  out. 
For  all  this  have  I  taken  to  lieart  and  proved  it,  ix.     1 

That  the  righteous,  and  the  wise,  and  their  labours  are  in  the 
hand  of  God  : 

7 


98  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  IX.  v.  2,  to 


They  know  not  whether  they  shall  meet  love  or  hatred ; 

Both  are  before  them  as  before  all  others. 
The  .same  fate  befalleth  to  the  righteous  and  to  the  wicked,         2 
To  the  good  and  pure  and  to  the  impure, 
To  him  that  sacrificeth  and  to  him  that  sacrificeth  not ; 

As  is  the  good  so  is  the  sinner, 
And  he  that  sweareth  as  he  who  feareth  an  oath. 
This  is  the  greatest  evil  of  all  that  is  done  under  the  sun, —       3 

That  there  is  one  fate  for  all : 
And  that,  although  the  heart  of  the  sons  of  men  is  full  of  evil. 
And  madness  is  in  their  hearts  through  life. 
Yet,  after  it,  they  go  to  the  dead  : 

For  who  is  exempted  ?  4 

To  all  the  living  there  is  hope. 
For  a  living  dog  is  better  than  a  dead  lion ; 


Chap.  IX.  Verse  1.  They  know  not  whether  they  shall  meet  love  or  hatred  may  mean 
tliat  the  wi.sest  and  the  best  of  men  cannot  tell  whether  they  .tihall  meet  (1)  the  love  or  the 
enmity  of  God,  as  sho\vn  in  adverse  or  favom-able  providences ;  or  (2)  the  things  which 
they  love  or  hate ;  or  (3)  the  lovo  or  the  hatred  of  their  fellows.  Of  these  interpretations, 
I  prefer  the  last. 

Verse  3.  The  words  of  this  verse  do  not,  as  they  stand,  seem  to  carry  on  the  logical 
connexion  of  thought.  The  Preacher's  complaint  is,  that  even  the  wise  and  the  good  are 
not  exempted  from  the  common  fate,  not  that  the  foolish  and  reckless  are  exposed  to  it. 
The  text  may  be  corrupt :  but,  more  probably,  the  true  exegesis  of  it  is  still  to  seek. 
Ginsbmg  however  is  content  with  the  passage  as  it  is  hero  given. _ 


Chap.  IX.  v.  9..  OR,  THE  PREACHER.  »y 


For  thn  living  know  that  they  shall  die,  5 

But  the  dead  know  not  anything  ; 
And  there  is  no  more  any  compensation  to  them. 
For  their  memory  is  gone  : 
rUeir  love  too,  no  less  than  their  hatred  and  zeal,  hath  perished  ;  0 
And  there  is  no  more  any  portion  for  them  in  aught  that  is  done 
under  the  sun. 

GO,  THEN,  eat  thy  bread  with  gladness,  7  ^^'«'-  '"  ^''"'- 

Slot  : 

And  drink  thy  wine  with  a  cheerful  heart, 

Chap,  ix., 

Since  God  hath  long  been  pleased  with  thy  works  :  vv.  7—12. 

Let  thy  garments  be  always  white  ;  i> 

Let  no  perfume  be  lacking  to  thy  head  : 
And  enjoy  thyself  with  any  woman  whom  thou  lovest  *J 

All  the  days  of  thy  life 
Which  He  giveth  thee  under  the  sun, 

All  thy  Hceting  days  : 
For  tliis  is  thy  portion  in  life. 
And  in  the  labour  which  thou  labourest  under  the  sun. 


Vekse  9.  Enjoy  thyself  uith  any  woman.  The  word  here  rcndrrcd  "  woman"  docs 
not  mean  "  wife."  Not  only  is  the  whole  drift  of  the  context  aj^ainst  that  moaning,  but 
the  absence  of  the  article  in  the  Hebrew  s^hows  that  Cohelethmust  have  meant  "  a  woman  " 
in  the  sense  of  "aw;/  woman." 

7* 


100  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  IX.  v.  10,  to 

Whatsoever  thine  hand  findeth  to  do,  10 

Do  it  whilst  thou  art  able  ; 
For  there  is  no  work,  nor  device,  nor  knowledge,  nor  wisdom  in 
Hades, 

Whither  thou  goest. 
Then  I  turned  and  saw  under  the  sun,  1 1 

That  the  race  is  not  to  the  swift, 
Nor  the  battle  to  the  strong ; 
Nor  yet  bread  to  the  wise. 
Nor  riches  to  the  intelligent, 
Nor  favour  to  the  learned  : 
But  that  the  time  of  calamity  cometh  to  all,  12 

And  that  man  doth  not  even  know  his  time  ; 
Like  lish  taken  in  a  fatal  net, 
And  like  sparrows  caught  in  a  snare, 
So  are  the  sons  of  men  entrapped  in  the  time  of  their  calamity 
When  it  faUeth  suddenly  upon  them. 


Nor   in  Devo- 
tion  to  Public 

Affairs  and  its  And  it  seemed  great  to  me  : — 

Retcards  : 


THIS  wisdom  also  have  I  seen,  13 

it  seemed  great  to  me  : — 
There  was  a  little  city  14 

And  few  men  in  it. 
Chap.  X.,  V.  ^^^j  ^  great  king  came  against  it  and  besieged  it. 


Chap.  IX.,  K      ^  p  •      -L 

^,  j3  ^^  And  lew  men  in  it. 


CHAr.  X.  V.  3.  OR,  THE  PREACHER.  101 

And  threw  up  a  military  causeway  before  it : 

Now  there  was  found  in  it  a  poor  wise  man,  1 5 

And  he  saved  that  city  by  his  wisdom  : 
Yet  no  one  remembered  that  same  poor  man. 

Therefore  say  I,  10 

Though  wisdom  is  better  than  strength, 
Yet  the  wisdom  of  the  poor  is  despised, 
And  his  words  are  not  listened  to  : 
Though  the  words  of  the  wise  are  listened  to  17 

With  more  pleasure  than  the  loud  behests  of  a  foolish  ruler, 
And  wisdom  is  better  than  weapons  of  war, 
Yet  one  fool  destroyeth  much  good  : 
As  a  dead  fly  maketh  sweet  ointment  to  stink,  x.     1 

So  a  little  folly  overpowereth  (much)  honourable  wisdom. 
Nevertheless  the  mind  of  the  wise  man  is  at  his  right  hand,       2 

But  the  mind  of  the  fool  at  his  left : 
For  so  soon  as  the  fool  setteth  his  foot  in  the  street  3 

lie  betrayeth  his  lack  of  understanding  ; 
Yet  he  saith  of  every  one  (Jie  meeteth), '  He  is  a  fool ! ' 

CiiAr.  X.  Ver.sc  3.  Setteth  his  foot  in  the  street.  Literally,  "Wulketh  on  the  road." 
The  sentence  seems  (o  be  a  proverb  used  to  express  the  extreme  stupidity  of  the  fix)l,  who, 
the  very  moment  he  leaves  his  house,  is  bewildered,  and  cimnot  even  find  his  way  from 

one  familiar  spot  to  another. 


102  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  X.  v.  4,  to 

Tf  the  anger  of  thy  ruler  be  kindled  against  thee,         4 

Resent  it  not ; 
For  submission  will  prevent  a  graver  outrage. 
There  is  an  evil  which  I  have  seen  under  the  sun,  5 

,        An  outrage  which  only  a  ruler  can  commit : 

A  great  fool  is  lifted  to  high  places,  6 

While  the  noble  sit  degraded  : 
I  have  seen  servants  upon  horses,  7 

And  masters  walking  like  servants  upon  the  ground. 

Yet  he  that  diggeth  a  pit  shall  fall  into  it ;  8 

And  whoso  breaketli  down  a  wall  a  serpent  shall  bite  him ; 
He  who  Y)ulleth  down  stones  shall  be  hurt  therewith ;  9 

And  whoso  cleaveth  wood  shall  be  cut. 

If  the  axe  be  blunt  10 

And  he  do  not  sharpen  it  beforehand, 


Verse  4.  Resent  it  not.  Literally,  "  Quit  not  thy  place. "  See  Note  on  Chap.  VIII. 
Verse  3. 

Verse  7.  To  ride  upon  a  horse  is  still  a  mark  of  distinction  in  many  Eastern  States. 
In  Turkish  cities,  till  of  late,  no  Christian  was  pernaitted  to  ride  any  nobler  beast  than  an 
ass  or  a  mule :  so  neither  were  the  Jews,  during-  the  middle  ages,  in  any  Christian  city. 

Verse  10.  Ginsburg  renders  this  difficult  and  much-disputed  passage  thus :  "  If 
the  axe  bo  blunt,  and  he  do  not  sharjien  it  bcforihand,  he  shall  only  increase  the  army  ; 
the  advantage  of  repairing  hath  wisdom,"  and  explains  it  as  moaning :  "  If  any 
insulted  subject  lift  a  blunt  axe  against  the  trunk  of  despotism,  he  will  only  make  the 


Chap.  X.  v.  lo.  OR,  TlIK  TREACHER.  108 


He  must  put  on  more  strength ; 
But  wisdom  should  teach  him  to  repair  it. 
If  the  serpent  bite  because  it  is  not  charmed,  1 1 

There  is  no  advantage  to  the  charmer. 
The  words  of  the  wise  man's  mouth  win  him  favour ;  12 

But  the  lips  of  the  fool  destroy  him : 
For  the  words  of  his  mouth  are  folly  and  mischief  13 

From  beginning  to  end. 

The  fool  also  speaketh  much,  14 

Though  no  man  knoweth  or  can  know  what  shall  be. 
Either  here  or  hereafter  : 
And  who  can  tell  him  ? 
The  work  of  a  fool  wearieth  him,  15 

For  he  cannot  even  find  his  way  to  the  city. 


tjTant  increase  his  army,  and  thereby  augment  his  own  sufforing-s :  but  it  is  the  prerogative 
of  wisdom  to  repair  the  mischief  which  such  precipitate  folly  occasions."  I  have  offered 
what  seems  a  simpler  explanation  in  the  comment  on  this  passjig-e,  and  have  tried  to  give  a 
simpler,  yet  not  less  accurate,  rendering  in  the  text.  But  there  are  almost  as  many  readings 
as  critics ;  and  it  is  impossible  to  do  more  than  make  a  hesitating  choice  among  them. 

Verse  11.  The  charmer.  Literally,  "  The  master  of  the  tongue."  The  allusion  of  this 
graphic  phrase  is  of  course  to  the  subtle  cantillations  by  which  the  charmer  drew,  or  was 
thought  to  draw,  serpents  from  their  '  lurk.'    * 

Verse  15.  JJc  rauiiot  tren  find  hin  ivuy  to  the  city:  a  proverbial  saying.  II  dcnntes 
that  the  fool  has  not  wit  enough  even  to  keep  a  high  road,  lo  walk  in  (he  lieatcn  i)a(hs 
which  lead  to  a  capital  city. 


104  ECCLESIASTES ;  Chap.  X.  v.  16,  to 

Woe  to  thee,  0  land,  when  thy  king  is  childish,  16 

And  thy  princes  feast  in  the  morning ! 
Happy  art  thou,  0  land,  when  thy  king  is  noble,  17 

And  thy  princes  eat  at  due  hours. 
For  strength  and  not  for  revelry ! 
Through  slothful  hands  the  roof  falleth  in,  18 

And  through  lazy  hands  the  house  leaketh. 
They  turn  Lread  and  wine,  which  cheereth  life,  into  revelry :    1 9 
And  the  money  of — (the  people  ?) — is  made  to  supply  both. 
Nevertheless  do  not  revile  the  king  even  in  thy  thoughts,        20 
And  do  not  revile  the  prince  even  in  thy  bed-chamber. 
Lest  the  bird  of  the  air  carry  the  report 
And  the  winged  tribes  tell  the  story. 

But  in  a  wiac 

Use  and  a  wise  CAST  thy  bread  upon  the  waters,  xi.     1 

Etijoytnent  of 

the  Present  For  in  proccss  of  time  thou  mayest  find  the  good  of  it : 

life  : 

Chap.  XI., 
vv.  1—8. 


Give  a  portion  to  seven,  and  even  to  eight, 


Verses  18,  19.  The  slothful  prodigal  rulers,  under  whoso  mal-administration  the 
whole  fabric  of  the  State  was  fast  falling  into  decay,  extorted  the  means  for  their  profligate 
revelry  from  their  toilwom  and  oppressed  suJbjccts.  It  is  significtmt  of  the  caution  induced 
by  the  extreme  tyranny  of  the  time,  that  the  whole  description  is  conveyed  in  proverbs 
capable  of  being  interpreted  in  more  senses  than  one ;  and  that,  in  verse  19,  the  writer 
leaves  a  blank,  a  hiatus,  which  we  have  to  fill  up  with  "the  people"  or  some  kindred 
phrase. 


Chap.  XI.  v.  8.  OR,  THE  PREACHER.  106 

For  thou  knowest  not  what  calamity  may  come  upon  the  earth. 
When  the  clouds  are  full  of  rain  3 

They  empty  it  upon  the  earth  ; 
And  when  the  tree  falleth,  in  South  or  North, 
In  the  place  wliere  the  tree  falleth  there  doth  it  lie: 
Whoso  therefore  watcheth  the  wind  shall  not  sow,  4 

And  he  who  observeth  the  clouds  shall  not  reap ; 

As  thou  knowest  the  course  of  the  wind  5 

As  little  as  that  of  the  fcetus  in  the  womb  of  the  pregnant. 
So  thou  knowest  not  the  work  of  God 

Who  worketh  all  things  : 
Sow  then  thy  seed  in  the  morning,  6 

And  stay  not  thy  hand  in  the  evening, 
Since  thou  knowest  not  which  shall  prosper,  this  or  that, 
Or  whether  both  shall  prove  good ; 
And  the  light  shall  be  sweet  to  thee  7 

And  it  shall  be  pleasant  to  thine  eyes  to  behold  the  sun  : 
For  even  if  a  man  should  live  many  years,  8 

He  ought  to  rejoice  in  them  all, 
And  to  remember  that  there  will  be  many  dark  days  ; 
Yea,  that  all  tliat  is  coming  is  vanity. 


106 


ECCLESIASTES ; 


Chap.  XI.  v.  9,  to 


Combined  with 
a  steadfast 
Faith  in  the 
Life  to  come. 

Chap.  XL, 
V.  9,  to 
Chap.  XII., 
V.  7. 


EEJOICE,  0  young  man,  in  thy  youth,  9 

And  let  thy  heart  cheer  thee  in  the  days  of  thy  youth ; 
And  pursue  the  ways  of  thine  heart 
And  that  which  thine  eyes  desire  : 
And  know  that  in  respect  of  all  these 
God  will  bring  thee  into  judgment : 
Banish  therefore  care  from  thy  mind,  10 

And  put  away  sadness  from  thy  body  ; 
For  youth  and  manhood  are  vanity  : 
And  remember  thy  Creator  in  the  days  of  thy  youth,        xii.  1 
Before  the  evil  days  come, 
And  the  years  of  which  thou  shalt  say, 
'  I  have  no  pleasure  in  them  : ' 
Before  the  sun  becometh  dark  2 

And  the  light,  and  the  moon,  and  the  stars  ; 

And  the  clouds  return  after  the  rain  : 
When  the  keepers  of  the  house  shall  quake,  3 

And  the  men  of  power  shall  writhe  ; 
When  the  grinding-maids  shall  stop  because  they  are  greatly 

diminished, 
And  the  women  who  look  out  of  the  windows  shall  be  shrouded 
in  darkness. 

And  the  door  shall  be  closed  on  the  street : 


Chap.  XII.  v.  7.  OR,  THE  PREACHER.  107 


When  the  noise  of  the  mills  shall  grow  faint,  4 

And  the  swallow  shall  fly  shrieking  to  and  fro. 
And  all  the  song-birds  drop  into  their  nests : 
The  very  people  shall  be  affrighted  at  that  which  is  coming  from 
the  height,  5 

And  at  the  terrors  which  are  on  their  way  : 
The  almond  also  shall  be  despised, 
And  the  locust  be  loathed, 
And  the  caper-berry  provoke  no  appetite  ; 
Because  man  goeth  to  his  long  home, 
And  the  mourners  pace  up  and  down  the  street : — 

Before  the  silver  cord  snappeth  asunder,  G 

And  the  golden  bowl  escapeth  ; 
Defore  the  bucket  breaketh  upon  the  fountain, 

And  the  wheel  is  shattered  at  the  well ; 
And  the  body  is  cast  upon  the  earth  from  which  it  came,        7 
And  the  spirit  returneth  to  God  who  gave  it. 


Chap.  XII.  Verso  4.  The  swallow,  &c.  Literally,  "  (he  bird  shall  arise  for  a  noise," 
i.e.,  the  bird  which  flies  abroad  and  makes  a  noise  at  the  approach  of  a  tempest ;  viz., 
the  swallow.  All  the  song-birds.  Literally,  "all  the  daughters  of  song " — a  Hebraism 
for  "  birds." 

Verse  5.     From  ihe  height,  i.e.,  from  heaven. 


THE  EPILOGUE. 

In  which  Vie  Problem  oftJie  Book  is  conclusively  solved. 

Chap.  XII.  vv.  8  to  14. 


^ 


ANTTY  of  vanities  saitli  the  Preacher,  8 

All  is  vanity ! 
And  not  only  was  the  Preacher  wise ;  9 

He  also  tanght  the  people  wisdom, 
And  composed  many  parables  with  care  and  thought. 

The  Preacher  sought  out  comfortable  words,  1 0 

And  wrote  down  the  words  of  truth  with  uprightness. 

The  words  of  the  Wise  are  like  goads,  1 1 

And  those  of  the  Masters  of  the  Assemblies  like  fixed  stakes, 
Given  by  the  same  Shepherd. 
And  of  what  is  more  than  these,  my  son,  beware :  1 2 

For  of  making  of  many  books  tlicre  is  no  end, 
And  much  study  is  a  weariness  to  the  flesh. 


ECCLESIASTES ;  OR,  THE  PREACHER.  109 

THE  CONCLUSION  of  the  matter  is  this  :—  i:j 

That  God  taketh  cognizance  of  all  things  : 
Fear  God  therefore  and  keep  His  commandments  ; 

For  this  it  behoveth  all  men  to  do, 
Since  God  will  bring  every  deed  to  the  judgment  14 

Appointed  for  every  secret  thing, 
Whether  it  be  good  or  whether  it  be  bad. 


Verse  13.  God  taketh  cognizance  of  all  things.  Literally,  "  Everything  is  noted  "  or 
"noticed,"  i.e.  by  God  the  Judge.  Gin.sburg  conjectures,  and  with  reason,  that  the 
Sacred  Name  wa.s  omitted  from  this  cLiuse  of  the  verse,  .simply  becau.se  the  Author 
wished  to  reserve  it  for  the  more  emphatic  clau.so  which  follow.*  it. 


EXPOSITION. 


THE   rilOLOGUE: 

III  Which  the  rroUcm  of  the  Book  is  Indirectly  Stated. 

CJmp.  I.,  vv.  1 — 11. 


TIE  search  for  the  Summum  BoniLiii,  the  Quest  of  the 
Chief  Good,  is  the  theme  of  the  Book  Ecclesi- 
astes.  Naturally  we  look  to  find  this  theme,  this 
problem,  this  "  riddle  of  the  painful  earth,"  distinctly  stated 
in  the  opening  verses  of  the  Book.  It  is  stated,  but  not  dis- 
tinctly. For  the  Book  is  a  drama,  not  an  essay  or  a  treatise. 
And  a  dramatist  conveys  his  conceptions  of  human  charac- 
ter and  circumstance  and  action,  not  by  direct  picturesque 
descriptions,  but,  placing  men  before  us,  he  makes  them 
speak  to  us,  and  leaves  us  to  infer  their  character  and  con- 
dition from  their  words.  In  strict  accordance  with  the  niles 
of  his  art,  the  dramatic  Prcaclicr  brings  men  upon  the  stage 
of  his  poem,  permits  us  to  hear  their  most  secret  charac- 
teristic utterances,  and  thus  enables  us  to  conceive  and 
judge  them.  He  is  true  to  liis  artistic  canons  from  the 
very  outset.  His  Prologue,  unlike  that  of  the  Book  of 
Job,  is  cast  m  the  di-amatic  form.  Instead  of  inirotUicing 
the  drama  with  a  brief  nairativc,  or  a  clear  statement  of 

8 


114  THE    PROLOGUE.  CwAr.  I. 

the  moral  problem  he  is  about  to  discuss,  he  opens  with 
the  characteristic  utterances  of  the  man  who,  wearied  with 
many  futile  endeavours,  gathers  up  his  remaining  strength 
for  a  last  attempt  to  discover  the  Chief  Good  of  Life. 
Like  Browning,  one  of  the  most  dramatic  of  modern  poets, 
he  plunges  at  once  into  his  theme,  and  speaks  to  us  from 
the  first  through  "  feigned  lips."  Just  as  in  reading  one 
of  Browning's  most  perfect  poems,  we  have  first  to  glance 
through  it  in  order  to  collect  the  scattered  hints  which  in- 
dicate the  speaker  and  the  time,  and  then  laboriously  to 
think  ourselves  back,  by  their  help,  into  the  time  and 
the  conditions  of  the  speaker ;  so  also  with  tliis  Hebrew 
Poem.  It  opens  abruptly  with  "  words  of  the  Preacher  " 
who  is  at  once  the  author  and  the  hero  of  the  drama.  A 
voice  breaks  the  silence  of  the  distant  Past  to  cry  to  us 
Vanity  of  vanities,  vanity  of  vanities,  all  is  vanity  !  "  For 
what  intent  does  it  break  the  silence  ?  Of  what  moral 
mood  is  this  pathetic  note  the  expression  ?  Wliat  compels 
this  perturbed  spirit  to  revisit  the  glimpses  of  the  moon 
and  raise  its  warning  voice  ? 

It  is  the  old  contrast — old  as  literature,  old  as  man — 
between  the  ordered  steadfastness  of  nature  and  tlie  dis- 
order and  brevity  of  hun^an  life.  The  Preacher  stands 
crazing  out  on  the  imiverse  above  and  around  him.  The 
ancient  earth  is  strong  and  firm  beneath  his  feet.  The 
sun  runs  its  race  with  joy,  sinks  exhausted  into  its  ocean- 
bed,  but  rises  on  the  morrow,  like  a  giant  refreshed  with 


vv.  1-11.  THE    PROLOGUE.  116 


old  wiiio,  to  renew  its  course.  The  variable  and  incon- 
stant wind,  which  bloweth  where  it  listctli,  blows  from  the 
same  quarters,  veers  through  the  very  circuit,  it  haunted  in 
the  time  of  the  world's  grey  fathers.  The  streams  which  ebb 
and  flow,  which  go  and  come,  run  along  time-worn  beds  and 
are  fed  from  their  ancient  source.  But  man,  "  to  one  point 
constant  never,"  shifts  from  change  to  change,  from  dis- 
order to  disorder.  As  compared  with  the  calm  order  and 
uniformity  of  nature,  his  life  is  a  mere  phantasy,  passing  for 
ever  through  a  limited  and  tedious  range  of  forms,  each  of 
which  is  unsubstantial  as  the  fabric  of  a  vision,  many  of 
which  are  as  base  as  they  are  unreal,  and  all  of  which,  for 
ever  in  a  flux,  elude  the  grasp  of  those  who  pursue  them, 
or  disappoint  those  who  hold  them  in  their  hands.  "  All 
is  vanity;  for  man  has  no  profit,"  no  adequate  and  enduring 
reward,  "for  all  his  labour:"  less  happy,  because  less 
stable,  than  the  earth  on  which  he  dwells,  he  comes  and 
goes,  while  the  earth  goes  on  for  ever  (verses  2 — 4). 

This  painful  contrast  between  the  ordered  stability  of 
nature  and  the  changeful  disorder  of  human  life  is  empha- 
sized by  a  detailed  reference  to  the  large  natural  forces 
which  rule  the  world,  and  which  abide  unchanged,  although 
to  us  they  seem  the  very  types  of  change.  The  figure  of 
the  fifth  verse  is,  of  course,  that  of  the  racer.  Tlie  sun 
rises  every  morning  to  run  its  course,  pursues  it  through 
the  day,  "  pants  "  as  one  wellnigh  breathless  towards  its 
goal,  and  sinks  at  night  into  its  subterraneous  bed  in  the 

8* 


/ 


116  THE  PROLOGUE.  Chap.  I. 

sea ;  but,  thougli  exhausted  and  breathless  at  night,  it  rises 
again  on  the  morrow  refreshed,  and  eager,  like  a  strong 
swift  man,  to  renew  its  daily  race.  In  the  sixth  verse,  the 
wind  is  represented  as  having  a  regular  law  and  circuit, 
thoudi  it  now  blows  South  and  now  veers  round  to  the 
North.  The  East  and  West  are  not  mentioned,  probably 
because  they  are  tacitly  referred  to  in  the  rising  and  set- 
ting sun  of  the  previous  verse :  all  the  four  quarters  arc 
included  between  the  two.  In  the  seventh  verse,  the 
streams  are  described  as  returning  on  their  sources :  but 
there  is  no  allusion  here,  as  we  might  suppose,  to  tides — 
and  indeed  tidal  rivers  are  rare.  The  reference  is  to  an 
ancient  conception  of  the  physical  order  of  nature  held  by 
the  Hebrew  as  by  other  races,  according  to  which  the 
ocean,  fed  by  the  streams,  sent  back  a  constant  supply, 
through  subterraneous  passages  and  channels  :  through 
these  they  supposed  the  rivers  to  return  to  the  place 
whence  they  came.  The  ruling  sentiment  of  these  verses 
is  that,  while  all  the  natural  elements  and  forces,  even  the 
most  variable  and  inconstant,  renew  their  strength  and 
return  upon  their  course,  for  frail  man  there  is  no  return : 
permanence  and  uniformity  characterize  them,  while  tran- 
sitoriuess  and  instability  mark  him  for  their  own.  They 
seem  to  vanish  and  disappear :  the  sun  sinks,  the  winds 
lull,  the  streams  run  dry  ;  but  they  all  come  back  again  : 
for  him  there  is  no  coming  back ;  once  gone,  he  is  gone 
for  ever. 


vv.  1—11.  THE  PROLOGUE.  117 

But  it  is  vain  to  talk  of  these  or  other  instances  of  the 
steadfast  order  of  the  universe :  "  Man  cannot  utter  it." 
For,  besides  these  elemental  illustrations,  the  world  is 
crowded  with  illustrations  and  proofs  of  the  stability  of 
nature,  the  stability  which  underlies  all  surface  changes. 
So  numerous  are  they,  so  innumerable,  that  the  curious 
eye  and  inquisitive  ear  of  man  would  be  worn  out  before 
they  had  completed  the  tale  ;  and  if  eye  and  ear  could 
never  be  satisfied  with  hearing  and  seeing,  how  much  less 
the  slower  tongue  with  speaking  (verse  8)  ?  All  through 
the  universe  what  has  been  still  is :  what  was  done  is  done 
still :  the  sun  is  still  running  the  same  race,  the  winds 
are  still  blowing  from  the  old  points,  the  streams  are 
still  flowing  between  the  same  banks  and  returning  by 
the  same  channels.  If  any  man  suppose  that  he  has 
discovered  new  phenomena,  any  natural  fact  which  has 
not  been  repeating  itself  from  the  beginning,  it  is  only 
because  he  is  ignorant  of  that  which  took  place  from  of 
old,  long  years  before  he  was  bom  (verses  9,  10).  Yet, 
wliile  in  nature  all  things  return  on  their  course  and  abide 
for  ever,  man's  day  is  soon  spent,  his  force  soon  exhausted. 
He  does  not  return  :  nay,  he  is  not  so  much  as  remembered 
by  those  who  come  after  him.  Just  as  we  have  forgotten 
those  who  were  before  us,  so  those  who  live  after  us  will 
forget  us  (verse  11).  The  burden  of  all  this  unintelligible 
life  lies  heavily  on  the  Preacher's  soul.  The  miseries  and 
confusions   of  our  lot  bafUe   and   oppress   his  thoughts. 


118  THE  PROLOGUE.  Chap.  I. 

Above  all,  the  contrast  between  Nature  and  Man,  between 
its  massive  and  stately  permanence  and  the  iVailty  and 
brevity  of  our  existence,  breeds  in  him  the  despairing 
mood  of  which  we  have  the  key-note  in  his  cry,  "  Vanity  of 
vanities,  vanity  of  vanities ;  all  is  vanity ! " 

Yet  this  is  not  the  only,  not  the  inevitable,  mood  of  the 
mind  as  it  ponders  that  great  contrast.  Wc  have  learned 
to  look  on  it  with  other,  perhaps  with  wider,  eyes.  We 
say  :  "  How  grand,  how  soothing,  how  hopefully  prophetic 
is  the  spectacle  of  Nature's  uniformity !  How  it  raises  us 
above  the  fluctuations  of  inward  thought  and  gladdens 
us  with  a  sense  of  stability  and  repose  !  As  we  see  the 
ancient  inviolable  laws  working  out  into  the  same  beautiful 
and  gracious  results  day  after  day  and  year  by  year, 
and  reflect  that  "  what  hath  been  still  is,  and  that  which 
hath  been  done  is  done  still,"  we  are  redeemed  from  our 
bondage  to  vanity  and  corruption :  we  look  up  with  com- 
posed and  reverent  trust  to  Him  who  is  our  God  and 
Father,  and  onwards  to  the  stable  and  glorious  immortality 
we  are  to  spend  with  Him.  '  Art  not  Thou  from  ever- 
lasting, 0  Lord  our  God,  our  Holy  One  ?*  We  shall  not 
die,  but  live.' " 

But  if  we  did  not  know  the  Euler  of  great  nature's 
frame  to  be  our  God  and  Father;  if  our  thoughts  had 


Habakkuk  I.,  12. 


VT.  1—11.  THE  PROLOGUE.  119 


still  "  to  jump  the  life  to  come,"  or  to  leap  at  it  with  a 
mere  guess  ;  if  we  had  to  cross  the  dark  deep  gulf  of  death 
on  no  stronger  bridge  than  a  Peradventure :  if ,  in  short, 
our  life  were  infinitely  more  troubled  than  it  is,  and  the 
tnic  good  of  life  and  its  bright  hope  were  still  to  seek, — 
iiow  would  it  be  with  us  then  ?  Then,  like  the  Preacher, 
we  might  feel  the  steadfastness  and  uniformity  of  nature 
as  an  affront  to  our  vanity  and  weakness.  In  place  of 
drinking  in  hope  and  composure  from  the  fair  visage  and 
unbroken  order  of  the  universe,  we  might  deem  that  its 
face  were  darkened  by  a  malignant  frown  or  writhed  in 
bitter  irony.  Then,  instead  of  finding  in  its  inviolable 
order  and  permanence  a  hopeful  prophecy  of  oiir  recovery 
into  an  unbroken  order  and  an  enduring  peace,  we  might 
passionately  demand  why,  on  an  abiding  earth  and  under 
an  unchanging  heaven,  we  should  die  and  be  forgotten  ; 
why,  more  inconstant  than  the  variable  wind,  more  evanes- 
cent than  the  parching  stream,  one  generation  should  go 
never  to  return,  and  another  generation  come  to  enjoy  the 
gains  of  those  who  were  before  them,  and  to  blot  their 
memory  from  the  earth. 

This  indeed  has  been  the  impassioned  protest  and  out- 
cry of  man  in  every  age.  All  literature  is  full  of  it.  The 
contrast  between  the  peaceful  unchanging  sky,  with  its 
myriads  of  calm  lustrous  stars,  which  are  always  there 
and  always  in  a  happy  concert,  and  the  frailty  of  man 
rushing  blindly  througli  his  brief  and    perturbed    course 


120  THE  PROLOGUE.  CiiAr.  1. 

has  lent  its  ground  tones  to  the  poetry  of  all  races.     Wc 
meet  it  everywhere.     It  is  the  oldest  of  old  songs.     In  all 
the  languages  of  the  divided  earth  we  hear  how  the  genera- 
tions of  men  pass  swifty  and  stornifully  across  its  bosom, 
"searching  the  serene  heavens  with  the  inquest  of  their 
beseeching  looks,"  but  winning  no  response ;  asking  always, 
and  always  in  vain,  "  Why  are  we  thus  ?    why  are  wc 
thus  ?  frail  as  the  moth  and  of  few  days  as  the  flower  ?" 
It  is  this  contrast  between  the  serenity  and  stability  of 
nature   and   the   frailty   and   turbulence   of    man   which 
afflicts  Coheleth  and  drives  him  to  conclusions  of  despair. 
Here  is  man,  "  so  noble  in  reason,  so  infinite  in  faculty, 
in  apprehension  so  like   a  god,"  longing  with  a   divine 
intensity  for  the  peace  which  results  from  the  equipoise 
and  happy  occupation  of  his  various  powers :  yet,  see,  his 
whole  life  is  wasted  in  labours  and  tumults  and  sorrowful 
perplexities;  he  goes  to  his  grave  with  his  cravings  un- 
satisfied, his  powers  untrained,  unharmonised,  knowing  no 
rest  till  he   lies   in   the  naiTow  bed   from  which   is   no 
uprising !     What  wonder  if  to  such  an   one   as   he,  "  this 
goodly  frame,  the  earth,  seems  but  a  sterile  promontory," 
stretching  out  a  little  space  into  the  dark  infinite  void  ; 
"  this  most  excellent  canopy,  the  air     .     .     .     this  brave 
o'erhanging  firmament,  this   majestical  roof  fretted   with 
golden  fire,"  nothing  but  "  a  foul  pestilential  congregation 
of  vapours  "  ?     What  wonder  if,  for  him,  the  very  beauty 
of  nature  should  change  into  a  repulsive  hideousncss,  and 


vv.  1—11.  THE  PROLOGUE.  121 

its   steadfast  iinclianging  order  be  held  a  satire   on   tlic 
disorder  and  vanity  of  his  life  ? 

Solomon  moreover — and  it  is  Solomon  in  his  old  age, 
sated  and  weary,  whom  the  Preacher  sets  before  us — liad 
had  largo  experience  of  life,  had  tried  its  ambitions,  its 
lusts,  its  pleasures  :  he  had  tested  every  promise  of  good 
which  it  held  forth,  and  found  them  all  lies  :  he  had 
drunk  of  every  stream  and  found  no  pure  living  water 
that  could  slake  his  thirst.  And  men  such  as  he,  sated 
but  not  satisfied,  jaded  with  voluptuous  delights  and  with- 
out the  peace  of  faith,  commonly  look  out  upon  the  world 
with  haggard  eyes.  They  feed  their  despair  on  the 
natural  order  and  purity  which  they  feel  to  be  a  rebuke 
to  the  impurity  of  their  own  restless  and  perturbed  hearts. 
Many  of  us  have  no  doubt  stood  on  Eichmond  Hill,  and 
looked  with  softening  eyes  on  the  rich  pastures  dotted 
with  cattle,  broken  with  clumps  of  trees,  through  which 
shoot  up  village-spires,  while  the  placid  Thames  winds  in 
many  a  curve  through  pasture  and  wood.  It  is  not  a 
grand  or  romantic  scene  ;  but  on  a  quiet  evening,  in  the 
long  level  rays  of  the  setting  sun,  it  is  a  scene  to  inspire 
content  and  lowly  peaceful  thoughts.  Wilberforce  tells 
us  that  he  once  stood  on  the  balcony  of  a  villa  looking 
down  on  this  scene.  Beside  him  stood  the  owner  of  the 
villa,  a  duke  notorious  for  his  profligacy  in  a  profligate 
age ;  and  as  they  looked  across  the  stream,  the  duke  cried 
out,  "0  that  river!  there  it  runs,   <jn  and  on,  and   I  .so 


122  THE   PROLOGUE.  Chap.  1. 

weary  of  it ! "  And  there  you  liavn  the  very  mood  of 
Ecclesiastes ;  the  mood  in  which  the  fair  smiling  heavens 
and  the  gracious  bountiful  earth  carry  no  benediction  of 
peace,  because  they  are  reflected  from  a  heart  all  tossed 
into  crossing  and  impure  waves. 

All  things  depend  on  the  heart  we  bring  to  them.  This 
very  contrast  between  Nature  and  Man  has  no  despair  in 
it,  breeds  no  dispeace  or  anger  in  the  heart  at  leisure 
from  itself  and  at  peace  with  God.  Tennyson,  for  instance, 
makes  a  merry  musical  brook  sing  to  us  on  this  theme. 
Listen  as  I  touch  a  note  or  two  of  its  song  : — 

I  como  from  haiuits  of  coot  and  horn., 

I  make  a  sudden  sally 
And  sparkle  out  among  the  fern, 

To  bicker  down  a  valley. 

I  chatter  over  stonj'  ways 

In  little  sharps  and  trebles, 
I  bubble  into  eddying  bays, 

I  babble  on  the  pebbles. 

I  chatter,  chatter  as  I  flow 

To  join  the  brimming  river ; 
For  men  may  come  and  men  may  go. 

But  I  (JO  on  for  ever. 

I  steal  by  lawns  and  grassy  plots, 

1  slide  by  hazol  covers  ; 
1  move  the  sweet  forget-me-nots 

That  grow  for  happy  lovers. 


vv.  1—11.  THE  PROLOGUE.  123 

I  slip,  I  slide,  I  gloom,  I  glance 

Among  my  skimming  swallows  ; 
I  make  the  netted  sunbeams  danco 

Against  my  sandy  shallows. 

I  mmmur  under  moon  and  stars 

In  brambly  wildernesses ; 
I  linger  by  my  shingly  bars  ; 

I  loiter  round  my  crosses ; 

And  oiit  again  I  curve  and  flow 

To  join  the  brimming  river  ; 
For  men  may  come  and  men  may  go, 

But  I  go  on  for  ever. 

Vou  son ;  it  is  the  very  plaint  of  the  Preacher  set  to  sweet 
music.  He  murmurs, "  One  generation  cometh,  and  another 
generation  goeth,  but  the  earth  abideth  for  ever ; "  while 
the  refrain  of  the  Brook  is — 

For  men  may  come  and  men  may  go, 
But  I  go  on  for  ever. 

Yet  we  do  not  feel  that  the  Brook  is  exulting  over  us,  or 
that  its  song  should  feed  any  mood  of  grief  or  d('S]iair. 
The  tune  that  it  sings  to  the  sleeping  woods  all  night  is 
"  a  cheerful  tune."  By  some  subtle  process  we  are  made 
to  share  its  bright  tender  hilarity.  Into  what  a  fume 
would  the  Hebrew  Preacher  have  been  thrown  had  any 
little  "  babbling  brook  "  dared  to  sing  this  saucy  song  to 
him  !  He  would  have  f(;lt  it  as  an  insult,  and  thought  that 
the  meny  innocent  creature  a\  as  "  crowing  "  over  the  swiftly 


124  THE  PROLOGUE.  Chat.  I. 

passing  generations  of  men.  But  for  the  Christian  Poet 
the  Brook  sings  a  song  whose  blithe  dulcet  strain  attunes 
his  heart  to  the  quiet  harmonies  of  peace  and  goodwill. 

Again,  I  say,  all  depends  on  the  heart  we  turn  to  nature. 
It  was  because  his  heart  was  heavy  with  the  memory  of 
many  sins,  because  too  the  lofty  Christian  hopes  were 
beyond  his  reach,  that  "  the  Son  of  David  "  grew  mournful 
and  bitter,  or  is  thus  represented  in  our  Drama,  as  he 
looked  at  the  strong  ancient  heavens  and  the  stable 
bountiful  earth,  and  thought  of  the  weariness  and  brevity 
of  human  life. 

This,  then,  is  the  mood  in  which  the  Preacher  commences 
his  Quest  of  the  Chief  Good.  He  is  driven  to  it  by  the 
need  of  finding  that  in  which  he  can  rest.  As  a  rule  it  is 
only  on  the  stringent  compulsions  of  need  that  this  high 
Quest  is  undertaken.  Of  their  own  profound  need  of  a 
Chief  Good  the  vast  majority  of  men  are  but  seldom  and 
faintly  conscious ;  but  to  the  favoured  few,  who  are  to 
lead  and  mould  the  public  thought,  it  comes  with  a  force 
which  will  let  them  know  no  peace  till  the  Quest  be 
achieved.  It  was  thus  with  Coheleth.  He  could  not 
endure  to  think  that  those  who  have  "  all  tilings  put 
under  their  feet "  should  lie  at  the  mercy  of  accidents  from 
which  their  realm  is  exempt ;  that  they  should  be  the  mere 
fools  of  Change,  while  that  abideth  unchanged  for  ever. 
And  therefore  he  set  out  to  discover  the  condition  in  which 
thoy  might  become  partakers  of  the  order  and  stability  and 


vv.  1—11.  THE  PROLOGUE.  126 

peace  of  nature — the  condition  in  which,  raised  above  all 
tides  and  storms  of  Change,  they  might  sit  calm  antl 
serene  even  though  the  strong  ancient  heavens  and  the  solid 
earth  should  vanish  away.  This,  and  only  this,  will  he 
recognise  as  the  Chief  Good,  the  Good  appropriate  to  the 
nature  of  man,  because  capable  of  satisfying  his  deepest 
cravings  and  supplying  all  his  wants. 


FlliST    SECTION. 

The  Quest  of  tlte  Chief  Good  in  Wisdom  and  Pleasure. 
Chap.  I.,  V.  12,  to  Chap.  II.,  v.  26. 


rniESSED  by  his  profound  sense  of  the  vanity 
of  the  life  which  man  lives  amid  the  play  of 
permanent  natural  forces,  Coheleth  sets  out  to 
search  for  that  true  and  supreme  Good  which  it  will  be 
well  for  the  sons  of  men  to  pursue  through  the  brief  day 
of  their  life;  the  Good  which  will  make  them  happy 
under  all  their  toils,  and  be  "  a  portion  "  so  large  and 
enduring  as  to  satisfy  tlieir  vast  desires. 
rr,   n     ,  •    iir-  ^         1    Aud,  as  was  natural  in  so  wise  a  man,  he  turns  first 

Ihc  Quest  tn  Wisdom.      ^'   -"-^^^^  ""-"  ' 

cii;,i).  I.,  vv.  12-it).  to  Wisdom.  He  gives  himself  diligently  to  inquire  into 
all  the  actions  and  toils  of  men.  He  will  see  whether 
a  larger  acquaintance  with  their  conditions,  a  juster  and 
completer  estimate  of  their  lot,  will  remove  the  depression 
under  which  he  labours.  He  devotes  himself  heartily  to 
this  Quest,  and  acquires  a  "  greater  wisdom  than  all  who 
were  before  him."  This  wisdom  is  not  a  scientific  know- 
ledge of  social  and  political  huvs,  nor  is  it  the  result  of 


TIIK  (iUKST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD.  127 


philosophical  speculations  on  "  the  first  good  and  the  first 
fair,"  or  on  the  moral  nature  and  constitution  of  man.  It 
is  the  wisdom  that  is  born  of  wide  and  varied  experience, 
not  of  abstract  study.  He  acquaints  himself  with  the 
lacts  of  human  life,  with  the  circumstances,  thoughts,  feel- 
ings, hopes,  and  aims  of  all  sorts  and  conditions  of  men. 
He  is  fain  to  know  "  all  that  men  do  under  the  sun,"  "  all 
that  is  done  under  heaven."  Like  the  good  Caliph  of 
Arabian  story,  "the  good  Haroun  Alraschid,"  we  may  sup- 
pose that  Coheleth  goes  forth  in  disguise  to  visit  all 
quarters  of  the  city  ;  to  talk  with  barbers,  druggists,  calen-  ^ 
ders,  with  merchants  and  mariners,  husbandmen  and 
tradesmen,  mechanics  and  artisans ;  to  try  conclusions 
with  travellers  and  with  the  blunt  wits  of  homekeeping 
men.  He  will  look  with  his  own  eyes  and  learn  for  him-  - 
self  what  their  lives  are  like,  how  they  conceive  of  the 
human  lot,  and  what,  if  any,  are  the  mysteries  whicli 
sadden  and  perplex  them.  He  will  ascertain  whether  they 
have  any  key  that  will  unlock  his  perplexities,  any  wisdom 
that  will  solve  his  problems  or  help  him  to  bear  his  burden 
with  a  more  cheerful  heart  Because  his  depression  was 
fed  by  every  fresh  contemplation  of  the  order  of  the 
universe,  he  tunis  from  nature  to  the  study  of  man.  But 
this  also  he  finds  a  heavy  and  disappointing  task.  After 
a  complete  and  dispassionate  scrutiny,  when  he  has  "  seen 
miu'li  wisdom  and  knowledge,"  he  concludes  that  jnan  has 
no  fair  reward  "for  all  his  labours  that  he  labourelh  under 


128  THE  QUEST  Chap.  I.  v.  12  to 

the  sun,"  that  no  wisdom  avails  to  set  straight  that  which 
is  crooked  in  human  affairs  or  to  bring  back  into  the 
number  of  the  living  those  who  have  "  gone."  The  sense 
of  vanity  bred  by  his  contemplation  of  the  stedfast  order 
of  nature  only  grows  more  profound  as  he  reflects  on  the 
numberless  and  manifold  disorders  which  afflict  humanity. 
And  therefore,  before  he  ventures  on  a  new  experiment,  he 
makes  a  pathetic  appeal  to  the  heart  which  he  had  so 
earnestly  applied  to  the  search,  and  in  which  he  had  stored 
up  so  large  and  various  a  knowledge,  and  confesses  that 
"even  this  is  vexation  of  spirit,"  that  "  in  much  wisdom  is 
much  sadness,"  and  that  "to  multiply  knowledge  is  to 
multiply  sorrow." 

Now  whether  we  consider  the  nature  of  the  case  or  the 
conditions  of  the  time  in  which  this  Book  was  written,  we 
shall  not  be  surprised  at  the  mournful  conclusion  to  which 
he  conies.  For  the  time  was  full  of  oppressions  and  cruel 
wrongs.  Life  was  insecure.  To  acquire  property  was  to 
court  extortion.  The  captive  Hebrews,  and  even  the  con- 
quering race  which  ruled  them,  were  slaves  to  the  caprice 
of  satraps  and  magistrates  whose  days  were  wasted  in 
revelry  and  in  the  unbridled  indulgence  of  their  lusts. 
And  to  go  among  the  various  conditions  of  men  groaning 
under  a  despotism  so  terrible,  to  see  all  the  fair  rewards  of 
honest  toil  withheld,  the  noble  degraded  and  the  foolish 
exalted,  the  righteous  trodden  down  by  the  feet  of  the 
wicked  :  all  this  was  not  likely  to  quicken  cheerfvd  thoughts 


Chap.  I.  v.  18.  IN  WISDOM.  129 

in  a  wise  man's  heart ;  instead  of  solving,  it  conld  but 
complicate  and  darken  the  problems  over  wliicli  he  was 
already  brooding  in  despair. 

And  apart  from  the  special  wrongs  and  oppressions  oi' 
the  time,  it  is  inevitable  in  all  times  that  the  thoughtful 
student  of  men  and  manners  should  liecome  a  sadder  as  he 
becomes  a  wiser  man.  To  multiply  knowledge,  at  least  of  ^ 
this  kind,  is  to  multiply  sorrow.  We  need  not  be  cynics 
and  leave  our  tub  only  to  reflect  on  the  dishonesty  of  ^ 
our  neighbours ;  we  need  only  go  through  the  world 
with  open  observant  eyes  in  order  to  learn  that  "  in 
much  wisdom  is  much  sadness."  liecall  the  wisest  of 
modern  times,  those  who  have  had  the  most  intimate 
acquaintance  with  man  and  men, —  Goethe,  Carlyle, 
Thackeray,  for  example  ;  are  tliey  not  all  touched  witli  a 
profound  sadness  ?  *     Do  they  not  look  with  some  scorn 


*  POro  Lacordaire  has  a  fino  passage  on  this  theme.  "  Weak  and  littlo  minds 
find  hero  below  a  nourishment  which  suffices  for  their  intellect  and  satisfies 
their  love.  They  do  not  discover  the  emptiness  of  visible  things  because  they 
are  incapable  of  sounding  them  to  the  bottom.  But  a  soul  whom  God  has 
drawn  nearer  to  the  Infinite  very  soon  feels  the  narrow  limits  within  whicli  it 
is  pent ;  it  experiences  moments  of  inexpressible  sadness,  the  cause  of  which  for 
a  long  time  remains  a  mystery :  it  even  seems  as  though  some  strange  con- 
currence of  events  must  have  chanced  in  order  thus  to  disturb  its  life,  and  all 
the  while  the  trouble  comes  from  a  higher  source.  In  reading  th(!  lives  of  tlic 
saints,  we  find  that  nearly  all  of  them  have  felt  that  sweet  melancholy  of  which 
the  ancients  said  that  there  was  no  genius  without  it.  In  fact,  melancholy  is 
inseparable  from  every  mind  th-at  looks  below  the  surface  and  evcrj-  heart  that 
feels  profoundly.  Not  that  we  should  take  complacency  in  it,  for  it  is  a  malady 
that  enervates  wlu-n  we  Jo  not  shake  it  off;  and  it  has  but  two  remedies — 

9 


^ 


\-  *' 


130  THE  QUEST  Chap.  II.  v.  1,  to 

on  the  common  life  of  the  mass  of  men,  with  its  base 
passions  and  pleasures,  struggles  and  rewards  ?  and,  in 
proportion  as  they  have  the  spirit  of  Christ,  is  not  their 
very  scorn  kindly,  springing  from  a  pity  which  lies  deeper 
than  itself?  Did  not  even  the  Master  Himself,  though 
full  of  ruth  and  grace,  share  their  feeling  as  He  saw 
publicans  growing  rich  by  extortion,  hj'pocrites  mounting 
to  Moses'  chair,  subtle  cruel  foxes  couched  on  thrones, 
and  the  blind  multitude  following  their  blind  leaders 
into  the  ditch  ?  In  His  pure  and  awful  eyes  did  not  the 
great  bulk  of  His  generation  assume  the  form  of  a  hideous 
struggling  "  knot  of  vipers,"  stinging  and  being  stung  ? 
Nay,  if  we  look  out  upon  the  world  of  to-day,  can  we  say 
that  the  majority  of  men  are  wise  and  pure  ?  Is  it  always 
tlie  swift  who  win  the  race,  and  the  strong  who  carry 
off  the  honours  of  the  battle  ?  Do  none  of  our  "  intelli- 
gent lack  bread,"  nor  any  of  the  learned  favour?  Are 
there  no  fools  lifted  to  high  places  to  show  with  how 
little  wisdom  the  world  is  governed,  and  no  noble  heroic 
breasts  dinted  by  the  blows  of  hostile  circumstance  or 
wounded  by  the  slings  and  arrows  of  outrageous  fortune  ? 
Are  all  our  workmen  diligent,  and  all  our  masters  fair  ? 
In   our  Trade  Unions  are  there  no  tyrants  as  dastardly 


Death  or  God."  Elsewhere,  still  quite  in  the  spirit  of  the  Preacher,  he  says  : 
"  Every  day  I  feel  more  and  more  that  all  is  vanity.  /  cannot  kare  my 
heart  in  this  heap  of  mud." 


Chap.  II.  V.  11.  IN    PLEASURE.  131 


and  oppressive  as  any  who  sit  on  thrones  ?  Are  no  false 
balances  and  false  measures  known  in  our  shops,  and  no 
frauds  on  our  exchanges  ?  Are  no  homes  dungeons,  with 
fathers  and  husbands  for  jailors  ?  Do  we  never  hear,  as 
we  stand  -svithout,  the  sound  of  cruel  blows  and  the  shrieks 
of  tortured  captives  ?  Are  there  no  hypocrites  in  our 
churches,  none  "that  with  devotion's  visage  sugar  o'er" 
an  evil  heart  ?  and  do  the  best  men  always  rise  to  the 
highest  place  and  honour  ?  Are  there  none  in  our 
midst  who  have  to  bear 

tho  whips  and  scorns  of  timo, 
The  oppressor's  wrong,  the  proud  man's  contumely, 
The  pangs  of  despised  love,  the  law's  delay, 
Tlie  insolence  of  office,  and  the  spurns 
That  patient  merit  of  the  unworthy  takes  ? 

Alas,  if  we  think  to  find  the  true  Good  in  a  wide  and  varied  ^  "^ 
knowledge  of  the  conditions  of  men,  their  hopes  and  fears* 
their  struggles  and  successes,  their  loves  and  hates,  their 
rights  and  wrongs,  their  pleasures  and  their  pains,  we  shall 
but  share  the  defeat  of  the  Preacher,  and  repeat  his  bitter 
cry,  "  Vanity  of  vanities,  vanity  of  vanities  ;  all  is  vanity  ! " 

2.  But  if  we  cannot  reach  the  object  of  our  Quest  in   The  Qtust  in  ruasure. 
Wisdom,  we  may  perchance  find  it  in  Pleasure :  mirthful  ^^''P'  "•'  ^^-  ^~"" 
enjoyment  may  have  a  charm  for  the  sorrows  which  wis- 
dom has  bred.     This  experiment  has  also  been  tried,  tried    _ 
on  the  largest  scale  and  under  the  most  favourable  condi- 
tions.    Wisdom  failing  to  satisfy  the  large  desires  of   his    ^ 

9* 


132  THE  QUEST  Chap.  II.v.1,to 

soul,  or  even  to  lift  it  from  its  depression,  the  Preacher 
turns  to  mirth.  Once  more,  as  he  forthwith  announces, 
he  is  disappointed  in  the  result.  He  pronounces  mirtli  a 
brief  madness :  in  itself,  like  wisdom,  a  good,  it  is  not  the 
Chief  Good  ;  to  make  it  supremo  is  to  rob  it  of  its  natural 
charm. 

Not  content  however  with  this  general  verdict,  Cohc- 
leth  recounts  the  details  of  his  experiment.  Speaking  in 
the  person  of  Solomon,  he  claims  to  have  started  on  this 
quest  with  the  greatest  advantages  ;  for  "  what  is  the  man 
that  Cometh  after  the  king  whom  they  made  king  long 
ago  ? "  He  surrounded  himseK  with  all  the  luxuries  of 
an  Oriental  prince.  He  built  himself  new  costly  palaces, 
as  the  Sultan  of  Turkey  does,  or  did,  almost  every  year. 
He  laid  out  paradises,  planted  them  with  vines  and  fruit- 
trees  of  every  sort,  and  large  shady  groves  to  screen  off 
and  attemper  the  heat  of  the  sun.  He  dug  great  tanks 
and  reservoirs  of  water,  and  cut  channels  which  carried 
the  cool  vital  stream  through  the  gardens  and  to  the  roots 
of  the  trees.  He  bought  men  and  maids,  and  surrounded 
himself  with  the  retinue  of  servants  and  slaves  requisite 
to  keep  his  magnificent  palaces  and  paradises  in  order, 
to  serve  his  sumptuous  tables,  to  swell  the  pomp  of  his 
public  appearances  :  in  fact,  he  gathered  together  such  a 
train  of  ministers,  attendants,  domestics,  indoor  and  out- 
door slaves,  as  is  still  thought  necessary  to  the  dignity  of 
an  Oriental  "  lord."     His  herds  and  Hocks,  a  main  source 


Chap.  II.  v.  11.  IN  PLEASURE.  133 

of  Orieutal  wealth,  were  of  finer  strain  and  larger  in 
number  than  had  been  known  before.  Ho  amassed 
enormous  treasures  of  silver  and  gold,  tlie  connnon 
Orieutal  hoard.  He  collected  the  peculiar  treasures  of 
kings  and  of  the  kingdoms  ;*  whatever  special  commodity 
was  yielded  by  any  foreign  land  was  caught  up  for  his 
use  by  his  olUcers  or  presented  him  by  his  allies.  He 
hired  eminent  musicians  and  singers,  and  gave  himseK  to 
those  delights  of  harmony  which  have  had  a  peculiar  charm 
for  the  Hebrews  of  all  ages.  He  crowded  his  harem  with 
the  beauties  of  his  own  and  foreign  lands.  He  withheld 
nothing  from  them  that  his  eyes  desired,  and  kept  not  his 
heart  from  any  pleasure.  He  set  himself  seriously  to 
make  happiness  his  portion  ;  and  while  alluring  his  body' 
with  pleasures,  he  did  not  rush  into  them  with  the  blind 
eagerness  "  whose  violent  property  foredoes  itself"  and  de- 
feats its  own  ends.  His  "  mind  guided  him  wisely  " 
amid  his  delights;  his  "wisdom  helped  liim"  to  select 
and  combine  and  vary  them,  to  enhance  and  prolong  their 
power  Ijy  a  certain  art  and  temperance  in  the  enjoyment 
of  them. 

IIo  biiilt  bis  soul  a  lordly  ploasiiirc-houao, 

^V^lOl•cin  at  case  for  aj'c  to  dwoll ; 
IIo  said,  '  Oh  SoUl,  mako  uiorry  and  carouso, 

Dear  Soul,  for  all  is  well.' 


•  In   spciikiui?  of  the  Persian  Revenue,    Rawlinson   siiys  thiit  besides   a 
(letinite  inoucy  piiymcut,  "n  payment,  the  nature  and  amount  of  which  wiu> 


134  THE  QUEST  CHAr.  II.  v.  12  to 

Alas,  all  was  not  well,  though  he  took  much  pains  to 
make  and  think  it  well.  Even  his  choice  delights  soon 
palled  upon  his  taste,  and  brought  on  conclusions  of 
disgust.  Even  in  his  lordly  pleasure -house  he  was 
haunted  by  the  grim  menacing  spectres  which  had 
troubled  him  before  it  was  built ;  they  "flitted"  with  him 
when  he  went  up  to  dwell  in  it.  In  the  harem,  in  the 
paradise  he  had  planted,  under  the  groves,  beside  the 
fountains,  at  tlie  sumptuous  banquet — a  bursting  bubble, 
a  falling  leaf,  an  empty  wine  cup,  a  passing  blush  sufficed 
to  bring  back  the  thought  of  the  brevity  of  life.  Wlien 
he  had  run  the  full  career  of  pleasure  and  turned  to  con- 
template his  delights  and  the  labour  it  had  cost  him  to 
obtain  them,  he  found  that  these  also  were  vanity   and 

\    vexation  of  spirit,  that  there  was  no  "  profit "  in  them, 

j    that  they  could  not  satisfy  the  deep  incessant  craving  of 

'    the  soul  for  a  true  and  lasting  Good. 

Is  not  his  sad  verdict  as  true  as  it  is  sad  ?     We  have 

''     not  his  wealth  of  resources.     Nevertheless  our  hearts  may 

have  been  as  intent  on  pleasure  as  was  his.     We  may  have 

'  pursued  whatever  sensual,  intellectual,  or  assthetic  excite- 
ments were  open  to  us  with  a  growing  eagerness  till  we 
have  lived  in  a  craving  whirl  of  stimulated  desire,  in  which 


also  fixed,  had  to  bo  made  in  kind,  each  province  being  required  to  furnish 
that  commodity,  or  those  comiiiudifics,  for  which  it  was  most  ccdebratud  : "  as, 
for  examjilc,  ^rain,  sheci),  mules,  (ino  breeds  of  horses,  beautiful  slaves. — The 
yjvc  Great  Monarchies,  Vol.  iv.  chaji.  vii.  p.  421. 


Chap.  II.  V.  23.  IN  WISDOM  AND  PLEASURE.  135 

the  claims  of  duty  have  been  neglected  and  the  rebukes  of 
conscience  unheeded.  And  if  we  have  passed  through 
this  experience,  if  we  have  been  carried  for  a  time  into  this 
giddying  round ;  have  we  not  come  out  of  it  jaded,  ex-  '^ 
hausted,  despising  ourselves  for  our  folly,  disgusted  with 
wliat  once  seemed  the  very  top  and  crown  of  delight  ? 
Do  wo  not  mourn,  our  after  life  through,  over  energies 
wasted  and  opportunities  lost?  Are  we  not  sadder,  if  -^ 
wiser  men,  for  our  brief  frenzy  ?  As  we  return  to  the 
sober  duties  and  simple  joys  of  life,  do  not  we  say  to  Mirth, 
"  Thou  art  mad  ! "  and  to  Pleasure, "  What  canst  thou  do  ? " 
Ah,  yes ;  our  verdict  is  that  of  the  Preacher,  "  Lo,  this 
too  is  vanity  ! " 

3.  It  is  characteristic  of  the  philosophic  temper  of  our  nindom  and  Muth 
Author,    I  think,  that    after    pronouncing   Wisdom    and  ^'^''^pa'cd. 
Mirth  vanities  in  which  the  true  Good  is  not  to  be  found,  Chap,  ii.,  w.  12—23. 
he  does  not   at  once  proceed   to  try  a  new    experiment, 
but  pauses  to  compare  these  two  "  vanities,"  and  to  reason 
out  his  preference  of  one  over  the  other.     His  vanity  is 
wisdom.     For   it  is   only  in   one    respect  that   he    puts     / 
niirtli  and  wisdom  on  an  equality,  viz.  that  they  neither 
of  them    are,   or   contain,  the    supreme    Good.      In   all 
other  respects  he  affirms  wisdom   to  be  as  much  better 
than  pleasure    as    light  is    better    than     darkness,  as   u 
much  better  as  it  is  to  have  eyes  that  see  the  light  than 
to  be  blind  and  walk  in  a  constant  gloom  (vv,  12 — 14). 


X 


1/ 


136  THE  QUEST  Chap.II.v.12,to 

It  is  because  wisdom  is  a  light  and  enables  men  to  see 
that  he  accords  it  his  preference.  It  is  by  the  light  of 
wisdom  that  he  has  learned  the  vanity  of  mirth,  nay 
the  insufficiency  of  wisdom  itself.  But  for  that  light 
he  might  still  be  pursuing  pleasures  which  could  not 
satisfy,  or  laboriously  acquiring  a  knowledge  wliich  would 
only  deepen  his  sadness.  Wisdom  had  opened  his  eyes 
to  see  that  he  must  seek  the  Good  which  gives  rest 
and  peace  in  other  regions.  He  no  longer  goes  on  his 
Quest  in  utter  blindness,  with  all  the  world  before  liim 
where  to  choose,  but  with  no  indications  of  the  course 
he  should,  or  should  not,  take.  He  has  already  learned 
that  two  large  provinces  of  himian  life  will  not  yield 
him  what  he  seeks,  that  he  must  expend  no  more  of 
his  brief  day  and  failing  energies  on  these. 

Therefore  wisdom  is  better  than  mirth.  Nevertheless  it 
v  is  not  best,  nor  can  it  remove  the  dejection  of  a  thoughtful 
heart.  Somewhere  there  is,  there  must  be,  thatwlrich  is  better 
stilL  For  wisdom  cannot  explain  to  him  why  the  same  fate 
shoidd  befall  both  the  sage  and  the  fool  (v.  15),  nor  can  it 
abate  the  anger  that  burns  within  him  against  so  potent 
and  flagrant  an  injustice.*      Wisdom  cannot  even  explain 


Compare  Psalm  xlix.  10,  11  : — 

Wibe  men  ulao  die, 
And  ijriests  together,  as  well  a«  the  iguoi'aut  aud  the  foolish, 
Aud  leave  their  riches  for  others  ; 


C'liAi'.  II.  V.  23.       IN  WISDOM  AND  rLEAKURE.  137 

why,  even  if  tlic  sage  must  die  no  less  than  the  fool,. both 
must  be  forgotten  well-nigh  as  soon  as  they  are  gone 
(vv.  IG,  17)  ;  nor  can  it  soften  the  hatred  of  life  and  its 
labours  which  this  lesser  yet  obvious  injustice  has 
kindled  in  his  heart.  Nay,  wisdom,  for  all  so  brightly 
as  it  sliines,  throws  no  light  on  an  injustice  which,  if  of 
lower  degree,  frets  and  perplexes  his  thoughts ; — why  a 
man  who  has  laboured  prudently  and  dexterously  and 
acquired  great  gains  should,  when  he  dies,  leave  all  to 
one  who  has  not  laboured  therein,  without  even  the  poor 
consolation  of  knowing  whether  he  will  be  a  wise  man 
or  a  fool  (w.  19 — 21).  In  short,  the  whole  skein  of  life 
is  in  a  dismal  tangle,  which  wisdom  itseK,  dearly  as  he 
loves  it,  cannot  imravel ;  and  the  tangle  is  this,  that  man 
has  no  fair  "profit"  from  his  labours,  "since  his  task 
grieveth  and  vexeth  him  all  his  days,  and  even  at  night 
his  heart  hath  no  rest ;"  and  when  he  dies  he  loses  all 
his  gains  for  ever,  and  cannot  so  nmch  as  be  sure  that 
his  heir  wiU  have  any  good  of  them.  This,  then,  is  vanity 
(vv.  22,  23). 

And   yet — and    yet,  good  things  are  surely  good,  and       '^^^^  CouiIumou. 
there  is  a  wise  gracious  enjoyment  of  earthly  delights  !   It    chup.  ii.  w.  21—0. 
is  right  that  man  should  eat  and  drink  and  take  a  natural 


Nay,  tlio  gTttvo  is  their  everlasting  habitation, 
Their  dwclluij^-placc  from  f^cutratiou  to  gtiioratiou, 
Thuy  who  were  had  in  houoiu'  thi'oughout  the  laud  I 


ly^ 


138  THE  QUE8T  Chap.  II.  v.  24,  to 

pleasure  in  his  toils.  Who  indeed  has  a  stronger  claim 
than  the  labourer  himself  to  eat  and  enjoy  the  fruit  of  his 
labours  ?  Still,  even  this  natural  enjoyment  is  the  gift  of 
God ;  apart  from  His  blessing  the  heaviest  toils  will  pro- 
duce but  a  scanty  harvest  and  the  faculty  of  enjoying  it 
may  be  lacking.  It  is  lacking  to  the  sinner:  his  task  is  to 
heap  up  gains  which  the  good  will  inherit.  But  he  that 
is  good  before  God  will  have  the  gains  of  the  sinner 
added  to  his  own,  and  wisdom  to  enjoy  both.  This,  what- 
ever appearance  may  sometimes  suggest,  is  the  law  of 
God's  giving :  that  the  good  shall  have  abundance  while 
the  bad  lack ;  that  more  shall  be  given  to  him  that  hath, 
while  from  him  who  hath  not  shall  be  taken  away  even 
that  which  he  hath.  Nevertheless  even  this  wise  enjoy- 
ment of  temporal  good  does  not  and  cannot  satisfy  the 
craving  heart  of  man:  even  this,  when  it  is  made  the 
ruling  aim  and  chief  good  of  life,  is  vexation  of  spirit. 

Thus  the  first  Act  of  the  Drama  closes  with  a  negation. 
The  moral  problem  is  as  far  from  being  solved  as  at  the 
outset.  All  we  have  learned  is  that  one  or  two  avenues 
along  which  we  urge  the  Quest  will  not  lead  us  to  the 
true  and  enduring  Good.  As  yet  the  Preacher  has  only 
the  ad  iiiterim  conclusion  to  offer  us,  that  both  Wisdom 
and  Mirth  are  good,  though  neither  is  the  supreme  Good  ; 
that  we  are  therefore  to  acquire  wisdom  and  knowledge 
and  to  blend  pleasure  with  our  toils  :  that  we  are  to  be- 


Chap.  II.  V. 26.  IN  WISDOM  AND  PLEASURE.  139 

lieve  pleasure  and  wisdom  to  be  the  gifts  of  God,  to  believe 
also  that  they  are  bestowed,  not  by  caprice,  but  according 
to  the  law  which  deals  out  good  to  the  good  and  evil  to 
the  evil.  Wo  shall  have  other  opportunities  of  weighing 
and  appraising  this  counsel — it  is  often  repeated — and  of 
seeing  how  it  works  into  and  forms  part  of  Cohelcth's 
tiual  solution  of  the  painful  riddle  of  the  earth,  the  per- 
plexing mystery  of  life. 


SECOND     SECTION. 


21iG  Quest  uf  the  Chief  Good  in  Devotion  to  tJix  Affairs  of 
Biisiness. 


Chap.  HI.  V.  1,  to  Chap.  V.  v.  20. 


The  Quest  obstructed 
by  Divine  Ordinances; 

Chap.  III.,  vv.  1—15. 


F  the  true  Good  of  Man  is  not  to  be  found  in 
the  School  where  Wisdom  utters  her  voice, 
nor  in  the  Garden  in  which  Pleasure  spreads 
her  lures  :  may  it  not  be  found  in  tlie  Market,  in  devotion 
to  Busmess  and  Public  Affairs  ?  The  Preacher  will  try 
this  experiment  also.  He  gives  himself  to  study  and 
consider  it.  But  at  the  very  outset  he  discovers  that 
he  is  in  the  iron  grip  of  immutable  divine  ordinances,  by 
which  "  seasons "  are  appointed  for  every  imdertaking 
under  heaven  (v.  1),  ordinances  which  derange  man's 
best-laid  schemes,  and  "  shape  his  ends  rough-hew 
them  how  he  will."  The  time  of  birth  for  instance,  and 
the  time  of  death,  are  ordained  by  a  Power  over  wliich 
men  have  no  control ;  they  begin  to  be,  and  they  cease  to 
be,  at  hours  whose  stroke  they  can  neither  hasten  nor 
retard.  The  season  for  sowing  and  the  season  for  reaping 
are  fixed  without  any  reference  to  their  wish ;  they  must 


THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD.         Hi 

plant  aud  gather  in  when  the  unchangeable  laws  of  Nature 
Avill  perniit  (v.  2).  Even  thosi;  violent  deaths,  and  those 
narrow  escapes  from  death,  which  seem  most  purely  fortui- 
tous, are  pre-determined ;  as  are  also  all  the  accidents  whicli 
befall  our  abodes  (v.  3).  So,  again,  if  only  because  deter- 
mined by  these  accidents,  are  the  feelings  with  which  we 
regard  them,  our  weeping  aud  our  laughter,  our  mourning 
and  our  rejoicing  (v.  4).  If  we  only  clear  a  plot  of  ground 
from  stones  in  order  that  we  may  cultivate  it,  or  that  we 
may  fence  it  with  a  wall ;  or  if  an  enemy  cast  stones  over 
our  arable  land  to  unfit  it  for  uses  of  husbandry — a 
malignant  act  frequent  in  the  East — and  we  have  pain- 
fully to  gather  them  out  again  :  even  this,  which  seems  so 
purely  within  the  scope  of  human  freewill,  is  also  within 
the  scope  of  the  divine  decrees,  as  are  the  very  embraces 
we  bestow  on  those  who  are  dear  to  us,  or  withhold  from 
them  (v.  5).  The  varying  and  unstable  desires  M-hicli 
prompt  us  to  seek  this  object  or  that  as  earnestly  as  mo 
afterwards  carelessly  cast  it  away,  and  the  passions  which 
impel  us  to  rend  our  garments  over  our  losses,  and  by-and- 
by  to  sew  up  the  rents  not  without  some  little  wonder 
that  we  should  ever  have  been  so  deeply  moved  by  that 
which  now  sits  so  lightly  on  us  ;  these  passions  and  desires, 
which  at  one  time  strike  us  dumb  with  grief  and  so  soon 
after  make  us  voluble  with  joy,  with  all  our  lleeting  and 
easily-moved  hates  and  loves,  strifes  and  reconciliations, 
all  move  within  the  circle  of  law,  although  they  wear  so 


142  THE  QUEST  Chap.  III.  v.  1,  to 


lawless  a  look,  and  are  obsequious  to  the  ordinances  and 
canons  of  Heaven  (vv.  6 — 8).  They  travel  their  cycles ; 
tliey  return  in  their  appointed  order.  The  uniformity  of 
Nature  is  reproduced  in  the  uniform  recurrence  of  the 
chances  and  changes  of  human  life ;  for  in  this  as  in  that 
God  repeats  Himself,  recalling  the  past  (v.  15).  The 
thing  that  hath  been  is  that  which  is  and  will  be.  Social 
laws  are  as  constant  and  as  inflexible  as  natural  laws. 
The  social  generalizations  of  Modern  Science — as  given, 
for  instance  in  Buckle's  "  History  " — are  but  a  methodical 
elaboration  of  the  conclusion  at  which  the  Preacher  here 
arrives. 

Of  what  use,  then,  was  it  for  men  to  "  kick  against  the 
pricks,"  to  attempt  to  modify  immutable  ordinances  ? 
"  Whatever  God  hath  ordained  contiuueth  for  ever;  nothing 
can  be  added  to  it,  and  nothing  can  be  taken  from  it"(v.  14). 
Nay,  more :  why  should  we  care  to  alter  or  modify  the 
social  order  ?  Everything  is  beautiful  and  appropr^ite  in 
its  time,  from  birth  to  death,  from  war  to  peace  (v.  11). 
If  we  cannot  find  the  satisfying  Good  in  the  events  and 
affairs  of  life,  in  its  recurring  times  and  seasons,  that  is  not 
because  we  could  devise  a  happier  order  for  them,  but 
because  God  "  hath  put  eternity  into  our  hearts,"  as  well  as 
time,  and  did  not  intend  that  we  should  be  satisfied  till  we 
attain  an  eternal  good.  If  only  we  "understood"  that, 
if  only  we  knew  God's  design  for  us  "  from  beginning  to 
end,"  and  suffered  eternity  no  less  than  time  to  have  its 


Chap.  IV.  V.  3.         IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  143 

duo  of  US,  we  should  not  fret  ourselves  in  vain  endeavours 
to  change  the  unchangeable,  or  to  find  an  enduring  good 
in  tliat  which  is  perishable  and  fugitive.  We  should 
rejoice  and  do  ourselves  good  all  our  brief  life  (v.  12) ;  we 
should  eat  and  drink  and  take  pleasure  in  our  labours 
(v.  13) ;  we  should  feel  that  this  faculty  of  innocently 
enjoying  simple  pleasures  and  wholesome  toils  is  "  a  gift 
of  God  :"  we  should  conclude  that  God  had  ordained  that 
regidar  cycle  and  order  of  events  which  so  often  frustrates 
the  wish  and  endeavour  of  the  moment,  in  order  that  we 
should  fear  Him  in  place  of  relying  on  ourselves  (v.  14), 
and  trust  our  future  to  Him  who  so  wisely  and  graciously 
recalls  the  past. 

But  not  only  are  our  endeavours  to  find  the  true  Good  ^^^  ^'"^  *'^  ^^"'""^ 

Injustice  and  I'er- 

thwarted  by  the  gracious  inflexible  laws  of  the  just  God :  remVy. 

they  are  often  baffled  by  the  injustice  of  ungracious  men.  chap.  in.,  v.  if.,  to 

In  the  days  of  Coheleth,  Iniquity  sat  in  the  seat  of  justice,  Chap,  iv.,  v.  3. 

wresting  all  rules  of  equity  to  its  base  private  ends  (v.  16). 

Unjust  judges  and  rapacious  satraps  put  the  fair  rewards 

of  labour  and  skill  and  integrity  in  jeopardy ;  insomuch 

that  if  a  man  by  industry  and  thrift,  by  a  wise  observance 

of  the   divine  laws  and  seasons,  had   acquired  affluence, 

he  was  too  often,  in  the  expressive  Eastern  phrase,  but 

as  a  sponge  which  any  petty  despot  might  squeeze.     The 

frightful  oppressions  of  the  time  were  a  heavy  burden  to 

the  Hebrew  Preacher.    He  brooded  over  them,  seeking  for 

"  aids  to  faith"  and  comfortabh.'  words  wherewith  to  solace 


144  THE  QUEST  CiiAr.  III.  v.  16,  to 

the  oppressed.  For  a  moment  he  thought  he  had  lit  on 
the  true  comfort.  "  Well,  well,"  he  said  within  himself, 
"  God  will  judge  the  righteous  and  the  wicked ;  for  there 
is  a  time  for  everything  and  for  every  deed  with  Him" 
(v.  17).  Could  he  have  rested  in  this  thought  it  would  have 
been  "  a  sovereign  balm"  to  him,  or  indeed  to  any  other 
Hebrew ;  although  to  us,  who  have  learned  to  desire  the 
redemption  rather  than  the  punishment  of  the  wicked, 
their  redemption  through  their  inevitable  punishments,  the 
true  comfort  would  still  have  been  wanting.  But  he  could 
not  rest  in  it,  could  not  hold  it  fast,  and  confesses  that  he 
could  not.  He  lays  his  heart  bare  before  us.  We  are 
permitted  to  trace  the  fluctuations  of  his  thought  and 
feeling.  No  sooner  has  he  whispered  to  his  heart  that 
God,  who  is  at  leisure  from  Hunself  and  has  endless  time 
at  His  command,  will  visit  the  oppressors  and  avenge  the 
oppressed,  than  his  thoughts  take  a  new  turn,  and  he 
adds  :  "  And  yet,  God  may  have  chosen  the  children  of  men 
only  to  show  them  that  they  are  no  better  than  the  beasts" 
(v.  18).  *  Eepugnant  as  the  thought  is,  it  nevertheless 
fascinates  him  for  the  instant.  He  yields  to  its  wasting 
and  degrading  magic.     He  not  only  suspects,  fears,  thinks 


*  Compare  the  refrain  of  Psalm  xlix.  as  given  in  Verse  12,  and  apain  in 
Verso  20— 

And  man  in  his  frlory,  so  he  have  no  miderslandinp. 

Is  like  unto  the  beasts  that  are  slaughtei'od  and  perish. 


Chap.  IV.  v.  3.         IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  145 

iliat  man  is  no  better  than  a  beast ;  he  is  quite  sure  of  it, 
and  proceeds  to  argue  it  out.  His  argument  is  very  sweep- 
ing, very  sombre.  "  A  mere  chance  is  man,  and  the  beast 
a  mere  chance."  Both  spring  from  a  mere  accident,  no 
one  can  tell  how,  and  have  a  blind  hazard  for  creator  ;  and 
both  are  "  subject  to  the  same  chance  "  throughout  tlieir 
lives,  all  the  decisions  of  their  intelligence  and  will  being 
overruled  by  the  decrees  of  an  inscrutable  fate.  Both 
perish  under  the  same  power  of  death,  suffer  the  same 
pangs  of  dissolution,  are  taken  at  unawares  by  an  invisiljlc 
yet  resistless  force.  The  bodies  of  both  spring  from  the 
same  dust,  and  moulder  back  into  dust.  Nay,  "  both  have 
the  same  spirit;"  and  though  vain  man  sometimes  boasts 
that  at  death  his  spirit  goeth  upward,  while  that  of  the 
beast  goeth  downward,  yet  who  can  prove  it  ?  For  himself, 
Coheleth  doubts,  and  even  denies  it.  He  is  absolutely 
convinced  that  in  birth  and  life  and  death,  in  body  and 
spirit  and  final  fate,  man  is  as  the  beast  is,  and  hath  no 
advantage  over  the  beast  (vv.  19—21).  And  therefore  he 
falls  back  on  his  old  conclusion,  though  now  with  a  sadder 
heart  than  ever,  that  man  wiU  do  wisely,  that,  being  so 
blind  and  having  so  dark  a  prospect,  he  cannot  do  more 
wisely  than,  to  take  what  pleasure  and  enjoy  what  good  he 
can  amid  his  labours.  If  he  is  a  beast,  nay,  as  he  is  a 
beast,  let  him  at  least  learn  of  the  beasts  that  simple 
tranquil  enjoyment  of  the  good  of  the  passing  moment, 
untroubled  by  any  vexing  presage  of  what  is  to  come,  in 

10 


146  THE  QUEST  Chap.  III.  v.  IG,  to 


wliich  it  must  be  allowed  they  are  greater  proficients  than 
he  (v.  22). 

Thus,  after  rising,  in  the  first  fifteen  verses  of  this  Third 
Chapter,  to  an  almost  Christian  height  of  patience  and 
resignation  and  holy  trust  in  the  providence  of  God, 
Coheleth  is  smitten  by  the  injustice  and  oppressions  of 
man  into  the  depths  and  despairs  of  a  blank  materialism. 

But  now  a  new  question  arises.  The  Preacher's  survey 
of  Human  Life  has  shaken  his  faith  even  in  the  conclusion 
which  lie  has  announced  from  the  first,  viz. :  that  there  is 
nothing  better  for  a  man  than  a  quiet  content,  a  busy 
cheerfulness,  a  tranquil  enjoyment  of  the  fruit  of  his  toils. 
This  at  least  he  had  supposed  to  be  possible :  but  is  it  ? 
All  the  activities,  industries,  tranquilities  of  life  are  jeo- 
pardized now  by  the  inflexible  ordinances  of  Heaven  and 
again  by  the  capricious  tyranny  of  man.  To  this  tyranny 
his  countrymen  are  now  exposed.  They  groan  imder  its 
heaviest  oppressions.  As  he  turns  and  looks  (chap.  iv. 
V.  1)  on  their  unalleviated  and  unfriended  misery,  he  doubts 
whether  content  or  even  resignation  can  be  expected 
of  them.  With  a  tender  sympathy  that  lingers  on  the 
details  of  their  unhappy  lot  and  deepens  into  a  passionate 
despairing  melancholy,  he  witnesses  their  sufferings,  and 
counts  "  the  tears  of  the  oppressed."  With  the  emphasis 
of  a  Hebrew  and  an  Oriental,  he  dwells  on  the  fact  that 
"  they  had  no  comforter"   that   though  "  their  oppressors 


Chap.  IV.  v.  3.         IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  147 

wevc  violent,  yet  had  they  no  comforter."  For  throughout 
the  East,  and  among  the  Jews  to  this  day,  the  manifesta- 
tion of  sympatliy  with  those  who  suffer  is  far  more 
common  a. id  formal  than  it  is  with  us.  Neighbours 
and  acquaintance  are  expected  to  pay  long  visits  of 
condolence ;  friends  and  kinsfolk  will  travel  long  tlis- 
tances  to  pay  them.  Their  respective  places  and  duties  in 
the  house  of  mourning,  their  dress,  words,  bearing,  prece- 
dence, are  regulated  by  an  elaborate  etiquette.  And, 
strange  as  it  may  seem  to  us,  these  visits  are  regarded  not 
only  as  gratifying  tokens  of  respect,  but  as  a  singular  relief 
and  consolation  to  the  alllicted  or  bereaved.  To  the 
Preacher  and  his  fellow-captives,  therefore,  it  would  be  a 
bitter  aggravation  of  their  grief  that,  while  suffering  under 
the  most  violent  oppressions  of  misfortune,  they  were 
compelled  to  forego  the  solace  of  these  customary  tokens  of 
respect  and  sympathy.  As  he  pondered  their  sad  and 
unfriended  condition,  Coheleth,  like  Job  when  his  com- 
forters failed  him,  is  moved  to  curse  his  day.  The  dead, 
he  affirms,  are  happier  than  the  living* — even  the  dead  who 


*  Xerxes,  in  his  invasion  of  Greece,  conceived  the  wish  "  to  look  upon  all  his 
host."  A  throne  was  erected  for  him  on  a  hill  near  Abydos,  sitting  on  which 
ho  looked  doMm  and  saw  the  Hellespont  covered  with  his  ships,  and  the  vast 
plain  swarming  with  his  troops.  As  ho  looked,  he  wept;  and  when  his  uncle 
Artabanus  asked  him  the  cause  of  his  tears,  he  replied  :  "  There  camo  upon  me 
a  sudden  pity  when  I  thought  of  tho  shortness  of  iiiun's  life,  and  considered 
that  of  all  this  host,  so  numerous  as  it  is,  not  one  will  be  alive  when  a  hundred 
years  are  gone  by."     This  is  one  of  the  most  striking  and  best-known  incidents 

10* 


148  THE  QUEST  Chap.  IV.  v.  4,  to 

died  so  long  ago,  that  the  fate  most  dreaded  in  the  East 
had  befallen  them,  and  the  very  memory  of  them  had 
perished  from  the  earth :  while  happier  thar-  either  the 
dead,  who  had  had  to  suffer  in  their  time,  or  tha>i  the  living, 
whose  doom  had  still  to  be  borne,  were  those  who  had 
never  seen  the  light,  never  been  born  into  a  world  all 
disordered  and  out  of  course  (w.  2,  3). 
It  is  rendered  hopeless  This  stinging  sense  of  the  miserable  estate  of  his  race 
y  t  e   ase    ngin  o    j^^^  however,  diverted  the  Preacher  from  the  conduct  of 

Human  Industnes.  '  ' 

the  main  argument  he  had  in  hand  :  to  that  he  now 
Chap,  iv.,  vv.  4— 8.  rctums  (v.  4).  And  now  he  argues:  "You  cannot  hope 
to  get  good  fruit  from  a  bad  root.  But  the  several  in- 
dustries in  which  you  are  tempted  to  seek  '  the  chief  good 
and  market  of  your  time  '  have  a  most  base  and  evil  origin: 
they '  spring  from  the  jealous  rivalry  of  one  with  the  other.' 
Every  man  tries  to  outdo  and  to  outsell  his  neighbour ; 
to  secure  a  larger  business,  to  surround  himseK  with  a 
wealthier  luxury,  or  to  amass  an  ampler  hoard  of  gold. 
This  business-life  of  yours  is  utterly  selfish  and  therefore 


in  the  life  of  the  Persian  despot;  but  the  rejoinder  of  Artabanus,  though  in  a 
far  hifrher  strain,  is  less  generally  kno\\Ti.  I  quote  it  here  as  an  illustration  of 
the  Preacher's  mood.  Said  Artabanus :  "  And  yet  there  arc  sadder  things  in 
life  than  that.  Short  as  our  time  is,  there  is  no  man,  whether  it  be  here  among 
this  multitude  or  elsewhere,  who  is  so  happy  as  not  to  have  felt  the  wish — I 
will  not  say  once,  but  full  many  a  time — that  he  were  dead  rather  than  alive. 
Calamities  fall  upon  us,  sicknesses  vex  and  harass  us,  and  make  life,  short 
though  it  be,  to  appear  long.  Ho  dvatJi,  through  the  ivretchcdncssof  our  life,  is 
n  most  sweet  refuge  to  our  race." — Herodotus,  Eook  vii.,  c.  4G. 


Chap.  IV.  v.  8.         IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  149 

utterly  base.     You  are  not  content  with  a  sufficient  pro- 
vision for  simple  wants.  You  do  not  seek  your  neighbour's 
•food.     You  have  no  noble  or  patriotic  aim.     Your  ruling 
intention  is  to  enrich  yourselves  at  the  expense  of  your 
neighbours,  who  are  your  rivals  rather  than  your  neigh- 
bours, and  who  try  to  get  the  better  of  you  just  as  you  try 
to  get  the  better  of  them.     Can  you  hope  to  find  the  true 
Good  in  a  life  whose  aims  are  so  sordid,  whose  motives  so 
selfish  ?     Why,  the  very  sluggard  who  folds  his  hands  in 
indolence  so  long  as  he  has  bread  to  eat  is  a  wiser  man 
than  you ;  for  he  has  at  least  his  '  handful  of  quiet,'  knows 
some  little  enjoyment  of  his  life ;  while  you,  driven  on  by 
jealous  competition  and  the  eager  cravings  of  insatiable 
desires,  have  no  leisure  and  no  appetite  for  enjoyment : 
both  your  hands  are  full,  indeed,  instead  of  one,  but  there 
is  no  quiet  in  them,   only   labour,  labour,  labour,   with 
vexation  of  spirit "  (vv.  5,  6). 

So  intense  and  selfish  was  this  rivalry,  increase  of 
appetite  growing  by  what  it  fed  upon,  so  keen  grew  the 
mere  desire  to  amass,  that  the  Preacher  paints  a  portrait  of 
a  man  for  which  no  doubt  many  a  Hebrew  might  have  sat — 
of  a  man  ?  nay,  rather  of  a  miser — who,  though  solitary 
and  kinless,  with  not  even  a  son  or  a  brother  to  inherit  his 
wealth,  nevertheless  hoards  up  riches  to  the  close  of  his 
life  ;  there  is  no  end  to  his  labours ;  he  never  can  be  rich 
enough  to  allow  himself  any  enjoyment  of  his  gains 
(w.  7,  8). 


150  THE  QUEST  Chap.  IV.  v.  y,  tc 


Yet  these  nre  cnpabie         NoNv  a  jealous  rivalry  Culminating  in  mere  avarice, — 
of  a  nobler  Motive       ^j^^t  siirelv  is  not  the  wiscst  or  noblest  spirit  of  which 

aud  Mode. 

those  are  capable  who  devote  themselves  to  affairs.  Even 
Chap,  iv.,  vv.  9—16.  « the  idols  of  the  market "  may  have  a  purer  cnlt  than 
that.  Business,  like  Wisdom  and  Mirth,  may  neither  be 
nor  contain  the  supreme  Good  :  still,  like  them,  it  is  not  in 
itself  and  of  necessity  an  evil.  There  must  be  a  better 
mode  of  devotion  to  it  than  this  selfish  greedy  one ;  and  such 
a  mode  Coheleth,  before  he  pursues  his  argument  to  its  close, 
pauses  to  point  out.  As  if  anticipating  a  modern  theory 
which  daily  grows  in  favour  with  the  wiser  sort  of  mer- 
cantile men,  he  suggests  that  co-operation*  should  be 
substituted  for  competition.  "  Two  are  better  than  one," 
he  argues  ;  "  Union  is  better  than  isolation;  conjoint 
labour  brings  the  larger  reward  "  (v.  9).  To  bring  his 
suggestion  home  to  the  business-bosom  of  men,  he  uses 
five  illustrations,  four  of  which  have  a  strong  Oriental 
colouring. 

The  first  is  that  of  two  pedestrians  (v.  10):  if  one  should 
fall — aud  such  an  accident,  owing  to  the  bad  roads  and 
long  cumbrous  robes  common  in  the  East,  was  by  no  means 
infrequent, — the  other  is   ready  to  set  him  on  his  feet : 


*  It  may  save  a  misconception  if  I  say  that  I  use  this  word  in  its  ety- 
mological rather  than  in  its  modern  technical  .sense,  as  indicating  the  sjiirit 
that  should  animate  Chi-istian  commerce  rather  than  as  defining  special  modes 
of  conducting  it. 


Chap.  IV.  v.  16.      IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS. 


161 


while  if  he  is  alone,  the  least  that  can  befall  him  is  that 
his  robes  will  be  sadly  trampled  and  bcmired  before  he 
can  gather  himself  up  again.     In  the  second  illustration 
(v.  11),  our  two  travellers,  wearied  by  their  journey,  sleep 
together  at  its  close.     Now  in  Syria  the  nights  are  often 
keen  and  frosty,  and  the  heat  of  the  day  makes  men  more 
susceptible  to  the  nightly  cold.     The  sleeping-chambers, 
moreover,   have  only  unglazed  lattices  which  let  in  the 
frosty  air  as  well  as  the  welcome  light ;  the  bed  is  com- 
monly a   simple  mat,  the  bedclothes  only  the  garments 
worn  through  the  day.     And  therefore  the  natives  huddle 
together  for  the  sake  of  warmth.     To  lie  alone  was  to  lie 
shivering  in  the  chill  night  air.     The   third   illustration 
(v.   12)  is  also  taken  from  the  East.     Our  two  travellers, 
lying  snug  and  warm  on  their   common  mat,  buried  in 
slumber — that  "  dear  repose  for  limbs  with  travel  tired," 
were  very  likely  to  be  disturbed  by  thieves  who  had  dug  a 
hole  into  the  house,  or  crept  under  the  tent,  to  carry  off 
what  they  could.     These  thieves,  always  on  the  alert  for 
travellers,   are  marvellously  supple,  rapid,  and  silent  in 
their  movements :  but  as  the  traveller,  aware  of  his  dancer, 
commonly  puts  his  "  bag  of  needments  "  or  valuables  under 
his  head,  it  docs  sometimes  happen  that  the  deftest  thief 
will   rouse  him    by  withdrawing  it.     If  one  of  our  two 
wayfarers  was  thus  aroused,  he  would  call  on  his  comrade 
for  help,  and  between  them  the  thief  would  stand  a  poor 
chance  ;  but  the  solitary  traveller,  suddenly  roused  froui 


152  THE  QUEST  CiiAr.  IV.  v.  9,  to 

sleep,  with  no  helper  at  hand,  would  stand  a  worse  chance 
than  the  thief.  The  fourth  illustration  (v.  12)  is  that  of 
the  threefold  cord — three  strands  twisted  into  one,  which, 
as  we  all  know,  English  no  less  than  Hebrew,  is  much 
more  than  three  times  as  strong  as  any  one  of  the  separate 
strands. 

But  in  the  fifth  and  most  elaborate  illustration  (vv,  13, 
14),  we  are  once  more  carried  back  to  the   East.     The 
slightest  acquaintance  with  Oriental  history  will  teach  us 
how  uncertain  is  the  tenure  of  royal  power ;  how  often  it 
has  happened  that  a  prisoner  has  been  led  from  a  dungeon 
to  a  throne,  and  a  prince  suddenly  reduced  to  penury. 
Coheleth  supposes  such  a  case.     On  the  one  hand,  we  have 
a  king  old  but  not  venerable,  since,  long  as  he  has  lived, 
he  has  not  "  even  yet  learned  to  be  admonished  :  "  he  has 
led  a  solitary,  selfish,  suspicious  life,  secluded  himself  in 
his  harem,  surrounded  himself  with  a  troop  of  flattering 
freedmen  and  slaves.     On  the  other  hand,  we  have  "  the 
poor  sociable  youth "  who  has  lived  with  all  sorts  and 
conditions  of  men,  acquainted  himself  with  their  habits 
and  wants  and  desires,  and  conciliated  their  regard.     His 
growing  popularity  alarms  the  old  despot  and  his  minions. 
He  is  cast  into  prison.     His  wrongs  and  sufferings  endear 
him  to  the  wronged  suffering  people.     By  a  sudden  out- 
break of  popular  wrath,  by  a  revolution   such  as  often 
sweeps  through  Eastern  states,  he  is  set  free — led  from  the 
prison  to  the  throne ;  while  the  dethroned  tyrant  becomes 


Chap.  IV.  v.  16.       IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  163 

a  pensioner  on  his  bounty,  or  wanders  through  the  land  a 
beggar  asking  an  alms.  This  is  the  picture  in  the  mind's 
eye  of  the  Preacher ;  and,  as  he  contemplates  it,  he  rises 
into  a  kind  of  prophetic  rapture :  he  cries,  "  I  see — I  see 
all  the  living  who  walk  under  the  sun  flocking  to  the 
sociable  youth  as  he  standeth  up  in  his  place :  there  is 
no  end  to  the  multitude  of  the  people  over  whom  he 
ruleth!"  (v.  15.) 

By  these  graphic  illustrations  Coheleth  sets  forth  the 
superiority  of  the  sociable  over  the  solitary  and  selfish 
temper,  of  union  over  isolation,  of  the  neighbourly  goodwill 
which  leads  men  to  combine  for  their  common  weal  over 
the  jealous  rivalry  wliich  prompts  them  to  take  advantage 
of  each  other  and  to  labour  each  for  himself  alone. 

But  even  as  he  urges  this  better  happier  temper  on  men 
occupied  with  the  business  and  politics  of  the  State,  even 
as  he  contemplates  its  brightest  illustration  in  the  youthful 
prisoner  whose  winning  sociable  qualities  have  lifted  him  to 
a  throne,  the  old  mood  of  melancholy  comes  back  upon  him  ; 
there  is  the  familiar  pathetic  break  in  his  voice  as  he  con- 
cludes (v.  16),  that  even  the  bright  sociable  youth  who 
wins  all  hearts  for  a  time  will  soon  be  forgotten,  that 
"  even  this,"  for  all  so  hopeful  as  it  looks,  "  is  vanity  and 
vexation  of  spirit," 

A  profound  gloom  rests  on  the  Second  Act  or  Section  of 
this  Drama.     It  has  already  taught  us  that  we  are  helpless 


154  THE  QUEST  Chai>.  V.  v.  1,  to 

in  the  iron  grip  of  laws  wliich  we  had  no  voice  in  making  ; 
that  we  often  lie  at  the  mercy  of  men  whose  mercy  is  but 
a  caprice ;  that  in  our  origin  and  end,  in  body  and  spirit, 
in  faculty  and  prospect,  in  our  lives  and  pleasures  we  are 
no  better  than  the  beasts  which  perish :  that  the  avo- 
cations into  %vhich  we  plunge,  and  amid  which  we  seek  to 
forget  our  sad  estate,  spring  from  our  jealousy  the  one  of 
the  other,  and  tend  to  a  lonely  miserliness  without  an  use 
or  a  charm.  The  Preacher's  familiar  conclusion, — "Be 
tranquil;  be  content;  enjoy  as  much  as  you  can:"  even 
this  has  grown  doubtful  to  him.  He  has  seen  the  brightest 
promise  come  to  nought.  In  a  new  and  profounder  sense, 
"  All  is  vanity  and  vexation  of  spirit." 

But  though  passing  through  a  great  darkness,  the 
Preacher  sees,  and  reflects,  some  little  light.  Even  when 
facts  seem  flatly  to  contradict  it,  he  holds  fast  to  the  con- 
clusion that  wisdom  is  better  than'  folly,  and  kindness 
better  than  selfishness,  and  to  do  good  even  though  you 
lose  by  it  better  than  to  do  evil  and  gain  by  it.  His  faith 
wavers  only  for  a  moment ;  it  never  altogether  lets  go  its 
hold.  And  in  the  Fifth  Chapter  the  light  grows,  though 
even  here  the  darkness  does  not  wholly  disappear.  We  are 
sensible  that  the  twilight  in  which  we  stand  is  not  that  of 
evening,  which  will  deepen  into  night,  but  that  of  morning, 
which  will  shine  more  and  more  until  the  day  dawn,  and 
the  day-star  arise  in  the  calm  heaven  of  patient  tranquil 
hearts. 


Chap.  V.  v.  7-         IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  155 


The  men  of  affairs  are  led  from  the  avocations  of  the  So  niso  a  happier  and 
Market  and  the  intrigues  of  the  Divan  into  the  House  of  7'7,  •^"f?^'^''  ^"^"^^""^ 

"  of  Worship  IH  open  to 

God.     Our  first  glance  at  the  worshippers  is  not  hopeful  or  Men : 


inspiriting.  For  here  are  men  who  offer  sacrifices  in  lieu 
of  obedience ;  and  here  are  men  whose  prayers  are  a  vain 
voluble  repetition  of  phrases  which  run  far  in  advance  of 
their  limping  thoughts  and  desires  :  and  there  are  men  very 
quick  to  make  vows  in  moments  of  peril,  but  slow  to  re- 
deem them  when  the  peril  is  past.  At  first  the  House  of 
God  looks  very  like  a  House  of  Merchandise,  in  which 
brokers  and  traders  drive  a  traffic  quite  as  dishonest  as  any 
that  disgraces  the  Exchange,  But  while  the  merchants  and 
courtiers  stand  criticizing  the  conduct  of  the  worshippers^ 
the  Preacher  turns  upon  them  and  shows  them  that  they 
are  the  worshippers  whom  they  criticize  :  that  he  has  held 
up  a  glass  in  which  they  see  themselves  as  others  see  them ; 
that  it  is  they  who  vow  and  do  not  pay,  they  who  hurry  on 
their  mouths  to  utter  words  which  their  hearts  do  not 
prompt,  they  who  take  the  roundabout  course  of  sinning 
and  sacrificing  for  sin  instead  of  that  plain  road  of  obedi- 
ence which  leads  straight  to  God. 

But  what  comfort  for  them  is  there  in  that?  How 
should  it  help  them  to  be  tlms  beguiled  into  condemning 
themselves  ?  Truly,  there  would  not  be  much  comfort  in 
it,  did  not  the  compassionate  Preacher  forthwith  disclose 
tlie  secret  of  this  dislionest  worship,  and  give  them  counsels 
for  amendment. 


Chap,  v.,  vv.  1 — 7- 


156  THE  QUEST  Chap.  V.  v.  8,  to 


He  discloses  this  secret  in  two  verses,  which  have  much 
perplexed  the  Commentators — viz.,  verses  3  and  7.  He 
there  explains  that  just  as  dreams  come  from  the  multitude 
of  thoughts  that  have  been  in  the  mind  during  the  day,  -so 
also  the  vain  show  of  worship  springs  from  the  multitude 
of  affairs  w^hich  men  permit  to  occupy  and  distract  their 
thoughts.  In  effect  he  says  to  them :  "  You  men  of  affairs 
too  often  get  little  help  or  comfort  from  the  worship  of 
God,  because  you  come  to  it  with  pre-occupied  hearts  ; 
because  you  are  so  entangled  in  the  cares  of  life  that  you 
cannot  extricate  yourselves  from  the  net  even  when  you 
go  to  Synagogue.  Hence  it  is  that  you  often  promise  more 
than  you  care  to  perform,  and  utter  prayers  more  devout 
and  earnest  than  any  fair  expression  of  your  desires  would 
be,  and  offer  sacrifices  to  avoid  the  charge  and  trouble  of 
obedience  to  the  divine  laws.  Now  as  I  have  shown  you  a 
more  excellent  way  of  transacting  business  than  that  selfish 
grasping  mode  to  which  you  are  addicted,  so  also  I  will 
show  you  a  more  excellent  style  of  worship.  Go  to  the 
House  of  God  '  with  a  straight  foot,'  a  foot  trained  to  walk 
in  the  path  of  holy  obedience.  Keep  your  heart,  lest  it 
should  be  diverted  from  the  devout  homage  it  should  pay. 
Do  not  iirge  and  press  your  heart  to  a  false  emotion  or  your 
mouth  to  an  insincere  utterance.  Let  your  words  be  few 
and  reverent  when  you  speak  to  the  Great  King.  Do  not 
vow  except  under  the  compulsion  of  steadfast  resolves,  and 
pay  your  vows  even  to  your  own  hurt  when  once  they  are 


Chap.  V.  v.  17.         IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  167 

made.  Do  not  anger  God  with  idle  talk  and  idle  half-meant 
resolves.  But  in  all  the  exercises  of  yuur  worship  show  a 
holy  fear  of  the  Almighty ;  and  then,  under  the  worst 
oppressions  of  fortune  and  the  heaviest  calamities  of  time, 
you  shall  find  the  House  of  God  a  Sanctuary,  and  His 
worship  a  strength,  a  consolation,  a  delight."  This 
was  very  wholesome  counsel  for  men  of  business — was  it 
not? 

Not  content  with  this,  however,  the  Preacher  goes  on  to  And  a  more  luipfui 
show  how,  when  they  returned  from  the  House  of  God  to  "'^d  ^on«oiatory  Tru«t 

''  m  the  Uivine    I'roNn- 

the  common  round  of  their  life,  and  were  once  more  ex-  dcnco. 
posed  to  its  miseries  and  distractions,  there  were  certain 

Chap,  v.,  vv.  »— 17. 

comfortable  and  sustaining  thoughts  on  which  they  might 
stay  their  spirits.  To  the  worship  of  the  Sanctuary  he 
would  have  them  add  a  strengthening  trust  in  the  Provi- 
dence of  God.  That  Providence  was  expressed,  as  in 
other  ordinances,  so  also  in  these  two  : — 

First :  Whatever  oppressions  and  perversions  of  justice 
and  equity  there  were  in  the  land  (v.  8),  still  the  judges 
and  satraps  who  oppressed  them  were  not  supreme :  there 
was  an  official  hierarchy  in  which  superior  watched  over 
superior  :  and  if  justice  were  not  to  be  liadof  one,  it  might 
be  had  of  another  who  was  above  him :  if  it  were  not  to 
be  had  of  any,  no,  not  even  of  the  king  himself,  there  was 
still  the  comfortable  conviction  that,  in  the  last  resort, 
even  the  king  was  "the  servant  of  the  field"  (v.  0),  i.e., 
was  dependent  on  the  wealth  and  produce  of  the  land. 


158  THE  QUEST  Chap.  V.  v.  8,  to 

and  could  not,  therefore,  be  unjust  with  impunity,  or  push 
his  oppressions  too  far  lest  he  should  decrease  his  revenue 
or  depopulate  his  realm.  This  was  "  the  advantage  "  the 
people  had :  and  if  it  were  in  itself  but  a  slight  advantage 
to  this  man  or  that,  clearly  it  was  a  great  advantage  to  the 
body  politic  ;  while  as  an  indication  of  the  Providence  of 
God,  of  the  care  with  which  he  had  arranged  for  the 
security  of  the  poorest  and  meanest,  it  was  full  of  con- 
solation. 

The  second  fact,  or  class  of  facts,  in  which  they  might 
recognize  the  gracious  care  of  God  was  this, — That  the 
unjust  judges  and  wealthy  cruel  lords  who  oppressed  them 
had  very  much  less  satisfaction  in  their  fraudulent  gains 
and  luxuries  than  they  might  suppose.  God  had  so  made 
men  that  injustice  and  selfishness  defeated  their  own  ends, 
and  those  who  lived  for  wealth  and  would  do  evil  to 
acquire  it  made  but  a  poor  bargain  after  all.  "  He  that 
loveth  silver  is  never  satisfied  with  silver,  nor  he  that  loveth 
riches  with  what  they  yield "  (v.  10).  "  When  riches 
increase,  they  increase  that  consume  them  " — dependents, 
parasites,  servants,  slaves  flock  round  the  man  who  rises 
to  wealth  and  place.  He  cannot  eat  and  drink  more,  or 
enjoy  more,  than  when  he  was  a  man  simply  well-to-do  in 
the  world ;  the  only  advantage  he  has  is  that  he  sees  others 
consume  what  he  has  acquired  at  so  great  a  cost  (v.  11).  He 
cannot  know  the  sweet  refreshing  sleep  of  husbandmen 
weary  with  toil  (v.  12),  for  his  heart  is  full  of  care  and 


Chap.  V.  v.  17.         IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  169 


apprehension.  Robbers  may  drive  off  liis  flocks,  or  lift  his 
cattle :  his  investments  may  fail,  or  his  secret  hoard  be  plun- 
dered :  he  must  trust  much  to  servants,  and  they  may  be 
unfaithful  to  their  tmst :  his  official  superiors  may  ruin 
him  with  the  bribes  they  extort,  or  the  prince  himself  may 
want  a  sponge  to  squeeze.  If  none  of  these  evils  befall 
him,  he  may  apprehend,  and  have  cause  to  apprehend,  that 
his  heir  longs  for  his  death,  and  will  be  little  better  than  a 
fool,  wasting  in  wanton  riot  what  he  has  shown  such  painful 
dexterity  in  storing  up  (vv.  13,  14).  And,  in  any  event, 
he  cannot  take  his  wealth  with  him  on  the  last  journey 
(vv.  15,  16).  So  that,  naturally  enough,  he  is  much  "per- 
turbed, hath  great  vexation  and  grief"  (v.  17),  cannot 
sleep  for  his  apprehensive  care  for  his  "  abundance ; "  and 
at  last  must  go  out  of  the  world  as  bare  and  unprovided 
as  he  came  into  it.*  He  labours  for  the  wind,  and  reaps 
what  he  has  sown.  Was  such  a  life,  mounting  to  such  a 
close,  a  thing  to  long  for  and  toil  for?  Was  it  worth 
while  to  hurl  oneself  against  the  adamantine  laws  of 
heaven  and  risk  the  oppressions  of  earth,  to  injure  one's 


*  Compare  Psalm  xlix.,  %-\'.  IG,  17. 

Be  not  afraid  thoufrh  one  bo  made  rich, 

Or  if  the  glory  of  his  house  be  increased; 
For  he  nhall  carry  iiothituj  awai/  tcith  him  when  he  ditth, 
Xeithcr  shall  his  pomp  follow  him. 
It  lends  new  force  to  the  citations  from  (his  Psalm  (sec  foot-notes  on  p.  l.'Sfi, 
and  on  p.  Ml),  if  we  accept  Ewald's  date  for  it,  and  regard  it   as  one  of  the 
Psalms  of  the  Captivity. 


160  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

neighbours,  to  sink  into  an  insincere  distracted  worship  and 
a  weakening  distrust  of  the  providence  of  God,  in  order  to 
spend  anxious  toilsome  days  and  sleepless  nights,  and  at 
last  to  go  out  of  the  world  naked  of  all  but  sin,  and  rich  in 
nothing  but  the  memories  of  frauds  and  oppressions  ? 
]\iight  not  even  a  captive,  whose  sleep  was  sweetened 
by  toil,  and  who  from  his  holy  trust  in  God  and  the  sacred 
dehghts  of  honest  worship  gathered  strength  to  endure  all 
the  oppressions  of  the  time  and  to  enjoy  whatever  allevia- 
tions and  innocent  pleasures  came  to  him  : — might  not  even 
he  be  a  wiser  happier  man  than  the  despot  at  whose  caprice 
he  stood  ? 
The  Conclusion.  For  himself  Coheleth  has  a  very  decided  opinion  on  this 

point.  He  is  quite  sure  that  his  first  conclusion  is  sound, 
though  for  a  moment  he  had  doubted  its  soundness,  and 
that  a  quiet  cheerful  heart  is  better  than  the  wealthiest 
estate.  With  all  the  emphasis  of  renewed  and  now  im- 
movable conviction  he  declares,  "  Behold,  that  which  I 
have  said  holds  good ;  it  is  well  for  a  man  to  eat  and  to 
drink,  and  to  enjoy  the  good  of  all  his  labours  through 
the  brief  day  of  his  life.  And  I  have  also  said,  that  a 
man  to  whom  God  hath  given  riches  and  wealth" — 
for  even  the  rich  man  may  be  a  good  man  and  use  his 
riches  wisely — "  if  He  hath  also  enabled  him  to  eat  thereof, 
and  to  take  his  portion,  and  to  rejoice  in  his  labour :  this 
is  a  gift  of  God.  He  should  remember  that  the  days  of  liis 
life  are  not  many,  and  that  God  meant  him  to  work  for  the 
enjoyment  of  his  heart." 


Chap.  V  ,  vv.  18—20. 


IN  DEVOTION  TO  I5USINESS.  ICI 


II.*  There  are  not  many  Englishmen  who  devote  them- 
selves solely  or  mainly  to  the  act|uisitiun  of  Wisdom,  and 
who,  that  they  may  teach  the  children  of  men  what  it  is 
good  for  them  to  know,  live  laborious  days,  withdrawing 
from  the  pursiut  of  wealth  and  scorning  the  delights  of  ease. 
Nor  do  those  who  give  themselves  exclusively  to  the  pur- 
suit of  Pleasure  constitute  more  than  a  very  small  and 
miserable  class,  though  most  of  us  have  wasted  upon  it 
days  that  we  could  ill  spare.  But  when  the  Hebrew 
Preacher,  having  followed  his  Quest  of  the  su]3reme  Good  in 
Pleasure  and  Wisdom,  turns  to  the  affairs  of  J3usiness — and 
I  use  that  term  as  including  both  commerce  and  politics — 
he  enters  a  field  of  action  with  which  we  are  nearly  all 
familiar,  and  can  hardly  fail  to  speak  words  that  will  come 
home  to  our  bosoms.  For  whatever  else  we  may  or  may 
not  be,  we  are  almost  all  of  us  worshippers  of  the  great 
god  Traffic — a  god  whose  wholesome  benignant  face  too 
often  lowers  and  darkens,  or  ever  we  are  aware,  into  the 
sordid  and  malimant  features  of  Mammon. 


*  In  commenting:  on  the  Second  and  Tliird  Sections  of  this  Book  I  fmuid  or 
fancied  that  both  the  exposition  of  the  Kicred  text  and  the  application  of  its 
lessons  to  the  details  of  modem  life  would  gain  in  force  by  being  handled  sepa- 
rately. The  second  part  of  each  of  these  Sections  consists  mainl_v,  therefore, 
of  an  exhortation  based  upon  the  previous  exposition,  the  marginal  notes  indi- 
cating the  passages  on  which  the  exhortations  arc  fcjundcd.  Ilort^itory  lectures 
are  not  perhaps  as  a  rule  either  very  pleasant  or  very  instnictive  reading ; 
and  I  am  by  no  means  sure  that  these  lectures  will  be  found  an  exception  to 
the  rule.  I  retain  them  simply  because  I  hope  that,  despite  their  defects, 
they  help  to  bring  out  (he  spirit  and  meiining  of  the  Book. 

11 


162  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 


Now  in  dealing  with  this  broad  and  momentous  depart- 
ment of  human  life,  the  Preacher  exhibits  the  candour  and 
temperance  which  marked  liis  treatment  of  Wisdom  and 
Mirth.  Just  as  he  would  not  suffer  us  to  think  of  Wisdom 
as  in  itself  an  evil,  nor  of  Pleasure  as  aught  but  the  good 
gift  of  a  good  God  ;  so  neither  will  he  suffer  us  to  think  of 
Business  as  essentially  and  of  necessity  an  evil.  This,  like 
tliose,  may  be  abused  to  our  hurt ;  but  none  the  less  they 
may  all  be  used,  and  were  meant  to  be  used,  for  our  own 
and  our  neighbours'  good.  Pursued  in  the  right  method, 
from  the  right  motive,  with  the  due  moderation  and 
reserve,  Business,  as  he  is  careful  to  point  out,  besides 
bringing  other  great  advantages,  may  be  a  new  bond  of 
union  and  brotherhood :  it  develops  intercourse  among  men 
and  races  of  men,  and  should  develop  sympathy,  good  will, 
and  a  mutual  helpfulness.  Nevertheless,  thrift  may  dege- 
nerate into  miserliness,  and  the  honest  industry  of  content 
into  a  dishonest  eagerness  for  undue  gains,  and  a  wise 
attention  to  business  into  an  excessive  devotion  to  busi- 
ness. These  degenerate  tendencies  had  struck  their  roots 
deep  into  the  Hebrew  mind  of  his  day  and  brought  forth 
many  bitter  fruits.  The  Preacher  describes  and  denounces 
them ;  he  lays  an  axe  to  the  very  roots  of  these  evil 
growths  ;  but  it  is  only  that  he  may  clear  a  space  for  the 
fairer  growths  which  sprang  beside  them,  and  of  which 
these  were  the  wild  bastard  offshoots. 

Throughout  this  second  Section  of  the  Book,  his  subject 


IN  DEVO HON  TO  BUSINESS.  163 


is  Excessive  Devotion  to  Business  and  tlic  Correctives  to  it 
wliicli  his  wisdom  enabled  liiui  to  su^'gcst. 

1.  His  handling  of  this  Subject  is  very  thorougli  and 
complete.  Men  of  business  could  hardly  do  better  than 
get  these  three  Chapters  and  the  lessons  they  teach  by 
heart :  they  would  find  in  them  a  "  Manual  of  Conrluct " 
happily  adapted  to  their  needs.  According  to  the  Preacher, 
their  excessive  devotion  to  affairs  springs  from  "  a  jealous 
rivalry  of  the  one  with  the  other : "  it  tends  to  form  in  them 
a  grasping  covetous  temper  which  can  never  be  satisfied,  to 
produce  a  materialistic  scepticism  of  all  that  is  noble  and 
spiritual  in  Thought  and  Action,  to  render  their  worship 
formal  and  insincere,  and,  in  general,  to  incapacitate  them 
for  any  quiet  happy  enjoyment  of  tlieir  life.  This  is  his 
diagnosis  of  their  disease,  or  of  that  diseased  tendency 
which,  if  it  be  for  the  most  part  latent  in  them,  always 
threatens  to  become  pronounced  and  to  infect  all  healthy 
conditions  of  the  soul. 

(«)  Let  us  glance  once  more  at  the  several  symptoms  he  Devotion  to  Busiacss 
has  described,  and  consider  whether  or  not  they  accord  Co^^^tiZ"!-^"^'^'"^ 
with  the  results  of  our  observation  and  experience.     Is  it 
true,  then— or,  rather,  is  it  not  true,  that  an  excessive  de-  ^^'i'-  ^^•'  ''•  *• 
votion  to  business  springs  from  the  keen  jealous  rivalry 
which  obtains  among  us?     If,   some   two   or  three  and 
twenty  centuries  ago,  the  Jews  were  bent  every  man  on 
outdoing  and  outselling  his  neighbour  ;  if  his  main  ambi- 
tion was  to  amass  a  greater  wealth  or  to  secure  a  larger 

11* 


/ 


104  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 


business  than  his  competitor,  or  to  make  a  handsomer  show 
before  the  workl ;  if  in  the  urgent  pursuit  of  this  ambition 
he  held  his  neighbours  not  as  neighbours  but  as  unscrupu- 
lous rivals,  keen  for  gain  at  his  expense  and  to  rise  by  liis 
fall;  if,  to  reach  his  end,  he  was  willing  to  get  up  early  and 
go  late  to  rest,  to  force  all  his  energies  into  an  injurious 
activity  and  strain  them  close  to  the  snapping-point : — if 
this  were  a  fair  likeness  of  the  Jew  of  that  time,  might  you 
not  easily  take  it  for  a  portrait  of  the  average  English 
trader  ?     Is  it  not  as  accurate  a  delineation  of  his  life  as  it 
could  possibly  be  of  any  Hebrew  form  of  life  ?     If  it  be — 
and  all  the  moralists  of  the  age  are  agreed  that  our  exces- 
sive devotion  to  Commerce,  our  intense  faith  in  mere  mer- 
cantile greatness,  is  sapping  the  nobler  elements  of  our 
national  life — we  have  great  need  to  take  the  Preacher's 
warning.     We  greatly  need  to  remember  that  the  stream 
cannot  rise  above  its  source,  nor  the  fruit  be  better  than 
the  root  from  which  it  grows;  that  the  business  ardour 
which  has  its  origin  in  a  base  and  selfish  motive  can  only 
be  a  base  and  selfish  ardour.     When  men  gather  grapes 
from  thorns  and  figs  from  thistles,  tlien,  but  not  before,  we 
may  look  to  find  a  satisfying  good  in  "  all  the  toil  and  all 
the  dexterity  in  toil"  which  spring  from  this   "jealous 
rivalry  of  the  one  with  the  other." 
ft  tonds  to  fonn  a  (h)  Nor,  in  the  face  of  facts  patent  to  the  most  cursory 

Covetous  Temper ;        observer,  Can  we  deny  that  this  eager  and  excessive  devotion 
ciiui).  IV.,  V.  8.  to  the  successful  conduct  of  business  tends  to  produce  a 


IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  165 

grasping   covetous  temper,  which,  however  much  it   has 
gained,  is  for  ever  seeking  more.     It  is  not  only  true  tliat 
the  stream  cannot  rise  above  its  source  :  it  is  also  true  that 
the  stream  will  run  downwards,  and  must  inevitably  con- 
tract many  pollutions  from  the  lower  levels  on  which  it 
declines.     The  ardour  wliich  impels  men  to  devote  them- 
selves with  an  eager  intensity  to  the  labours  of  the  Market 
may  often  have  an  origin  as  pure  as  that  of  the  stream 
which  bubbles  up  on  the  summit  of  a  mountain,  amid  tlie 
sweetest  grass  and  tenderest  ferns,  and  which  runs  tinkling 
along  its  clear  rocky  channels,  setting  its  labour  to  a  happy 
music,  singing  its  low  sweet  song  to  the  sweet  listening  air. 
But  as  it  runs  on,  if  it  swell  in  volume  and  power,  it  also 
dnks  and  grows  foul.     Bent  at  first  on  acquiring  the  means 
to  support  a  widowed  mother  or  to  cherish  a  wife  very  dear 
to  him,  to  provide  for  his  cliildren,  or  to  win  an  honourable 
place,  or  to  promote  some  public  end,  the  man  of  business 
too  often  suffers  himscK  to  become  more  and  more  absorbed 
in  his  trallic.     lie  conceives  larger  schemes,  is  drawn  into 
more  perilous  enterprises,  and  advances  through  these  to 
fresh  openings  and  opportunities,  until  at  last,  long  after 
his  original  ends  are  compassed  and  forgotten,  he  finds 
himself    possessed   by   the   mere    craving   to   extend   his 
labours   and  resources,   or  the  mere  desire  to  amass — a 
craving  which  often  "teareth"  and  tormenteth  him,  but 
which  can  be  exorcised  only  by  an  exertion  of  spiritual 
force  which  would  leave  him  half  dead.     "  lie  has  no  one 


166  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

witli  him,  not  even  a  son  or  a  brother  ;  "  the  dear  mother 
or  wife  is  long  since  dead ;  his  children,  to  use  liis  own  de- 
testable phrase,  are  "  off  his  hands  ;  "  the  public  good  has 
slipped  from  his  memory  and  aims  :  but  still  "  there  is  no 
end  to  all  his  labours,  neither  are  his  eyes  satisfied  with 
riches."  Coheleth  speaks  of  one  such  man  :  alas,  of  how 
many  such  might  we  speak  ? 
To  produro  a  Material-       /  n  -jj^^  »  speculation"  in  the  oycs  of  busincss  men  is  not 

istic  Scepticism  ;  ^  ' 

commonly  of  a  philosophic  cast,  and  therefore  we  do  not 
Chap.  III.,  w.  18—21.  Iqq]^  to  find  them  arguing  themselves  into  the  blank 
materialism  which  infected  the  Hebrew  Preacher  as  he 
contem.plated  them  and  their  blind  devotion  to  Traffic.  They 
are  far,  perhaps  very  far,  from  thinking  that  in  body  and 
spirit,  in  origin  and  end,  in  faculty  and  prospect,  man  is 
no  better  than  the  beast — the  creature  of  the  same  accident 
and  subject  to  "  the  same  chance."  But  though  they  do 
not  reason  out  a  conclusion  so  sombre  and  repugnant,  do 
they  not  practically  acquiesce  in  it  ?  If  it  is  far  from  their 
thoughts,  do  they  not  live  in  its  close  neighbourhood  ? 
Their  mind,  like  the  dyer's  hand,  is  subdued  to  that  it 
works  in.  Accustomed  to  think  mainly  of  material 
interests,  their  character  is  materialized.  They  are  disposed 
to  weigh  all  things — truth,  righteousness,  the  motives  and 
aims  of  nobler  men — in  the  gross  scales  of  tlieir  merchan- 
dise, and  can  very  hardly  believe  that  they  should  attach 
much  value  to  ought  which  will  not  lend  itself  to  tlieir 
coarse  handling.     In  their  judgment,  mental  ability,  or  the 


IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  167 

graces  of  moral  character,  or  single-hearted  devotion  to  lofty 
ends,  are  not  worthy  to  be  compared  with  a  full  purse  or 
large  possessions.  They  regard  as  little  better  than  a  fool, 
of  whom  it  is  very  kind  of  them  to  take  a  little  care,  a  man 
who  has  tlirown  away  what  they  call  "his  clianccs,"  in 
order  that  lie  may  study  wisdom  or  do  good.  Giving 
perhaps  a  cheerful  and  unforced  accord  to  the  current  moral 
maxims  and  popular  creed  of  the  time,  they  permit  neither 
to  rule  their  conduct.  If  they  do  not  say  "  Man  is  no  better 
than  a  beast,"  they  carry  themselves  as  though  he  were 
little  better,  as  though  he  had  no  instincts  or  interests 
above  those  of  the  thrifty  ant,  or  the  cunning  beaver,  or  the 
military  locust,  or  the  insatiable  leech — although  they  are 
both  surprised  and  affronted  when  one  is  at  the  pains  to 
translate  their  deeds  into  words.  Judged  by  their  deeds, 
they  arc  sceptics  and  materialists,  since  they  have  no  vital 
faith  in  that  which  is  spiritual  and  unseen.  They  have 
found  the  "  life  of  their  hands,"  and  they  are  content  with 
it.  Give  them  whatever  furnishes  the  senses,  and  such  of 
the  intellectual  capacities  as  hold  by  sense,  and  they  will 
cheerfully  let  all  else  go.  But  such  a  materialism  as  tliis 
is  far  more  injurious,  far  more  likely  to  be  fatal,  than  tliat 
which  reilects  and  argues  and  utters  itself  in  wonls.  AVitli 
them  the  malady  has  struck  inward,  and  is  beyond  the 
reach  of  cure,  save  by  the  most  searching  and  drastic 
remedies. 


168  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 


To  make  AVorship  ((/.)  But  HOW  if,  likc  Colieleth  wc  follow  these  men  to 

Formal  and  lusincerc :     ,i       m  i  i     ,    •     ,i  ,t     ■  ,  ^      t      .-i 

the  iemple,  what  is  the  scene  that  meets  our  eye  ?  In  the 
Chap,  v.,  vv.  1—7.  English  Temple,  I  fear,  that  which  would  first  strike  an 
unaccustomed  observer  would  be  the  fact,  that  very  few 
men  of  business  are  there.  They  are  "conspicuous  by 
their  absence,"  or,  at  lowest,  noted  for  an  only  occasional 
attendance.  The  Hebrew  Temple  was  crowded  with  men 
— the  women  being  relegated  to  some  obscure  nook :  in 
the  English  Temple  it  is  the  other  sex  which  predominates. 
But  glance  at  the  men  who  are  there.  Do  you  see  no  signs 
of  weariness  and  perfunctoriness  ?  Do  you  hear  no  vows 
which  will  never  be  paid,  and  which  they  do  not  intend  to 
pay  when  they  make  them  ?  no  prayers  which  go  beyond 
any  candid  and  honest  expression  of  their  desires  ?  Do 
you  not  feel  that  many  of  them  are  making  an  unwilling 
sacrifice  to  the  decencies  and  proprieties  instead  of  worship- 
ing God  and  nerving  themselves  for  the  difficulties  of 
obedience  to  the  divine  law  ?  Listen :  they  are  saying, 
"  Almighty  God,  Father  of  all  mercies,  we  bless  Thee  for 
our  creation,  preservation,  and  all  the  blessings  of  this  life  ; 
but  above  all  for  Thine  inestimable  love  in  the  redemption 
of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  for  the  means  of  grace,  and  for 
the  hope  of  glory."  But  are  these  marvellous  spiritual 
benefits  "  above  all "  else  to  them  ?  Do  they  care  for 
"  the  means  of  grace  "  as  much  even  as  they  care  for  tlie 
state  of  the  market,  or  for  "  the  hope  of  glory  "  as  much 
as   for   success   in   business  ?     Which   is   most   in  their 


IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  169 

tlionghts,  in  their  lives,  in  their  aspirations,  for  which  will 
they  take  most  pains  and  make  most  sacrifices  ; — for  what 
they  mean  by  the  beautiful  phrase  "  all  the  blessings  of 
this  life,"  or  for  that  sacred  and  crowning  act  of  Divine 
Mercy,  "  the  redemption  "  by  which  men  are  taught  to 
trust  the  fatherly  forgiving  love  of  God  ? 

What  is  it  that  makes  their  worship  formal  and  insin- 
cere ?  It  is  the  very  cause  which,  as  the  Preacher  tells  us, 
produced  the  like  evil  effects  among  the  Jews.  They  come 
into  the  Temple  with  pre-occupied  hearts.  Their  thoughts 
are  distracted  by  the  cares  of  life  even  as  they  bow  in 
worship.  I  do  not  know  that  I  can  better  illustrate  this 
point  than  by  reminding  you  of  an  etching  which  appeared 
some  years  since,  when  the  Sunday  morning  delivery  of 
letters  was  first  stopped  in  Loudon.  The  scene  was  a 
church  during  morning  service ;  in  one  of  the  pews  stood 
a  man,  the  prayer-book  slipping  from  his  relaxed  grasp, 
as  with  clouded  wistful  face,  he  said  witliin  himself,  "  Now 
I  wonder  whether  Messrs.  So-and-So  protested  that  bill 
after  all !  "*  Who  that  saw  it  will  ever  forget  the  intense 
yet  ludicrous  misery  of  the  man's  face,  the  air  of  anxious 
pre-occupation  in  his  whole  attitude,  which  detached  him 
from  the  worshippers  around  him  as  obviously  as  if  he  had 
been  fenced  round  with  brass  ?     The  whole  business- world 


*  Thouf^h  the  iiriut  haufrs  cleiuly   iu  uiy  mciuoi\',  I  uiii  ul'ruid  1   cunuDl 
truarantcc  the  accuracy  of  this  citutiou. 


170  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

of  England  sniggered  over  tliat  marvellous  print,  not,  let 
us  hope,  without  some  saving  twinges  of  conscience.  For 
it  was  true  of  so  many,  that  almost  every  man  felt  that  it 
came  home  to  his  experience ;  but  true  of  so  many  that  it 
was  all  the  harder  to  appropriate  its  rebuke.  And  are 
there  not  thousands  and  tens  of  thousands  in  the  great 
English  Temple  whose  hearts  are  distracted  by  similar 
anxieties  from  the  solemnities  of  worship  ?  thousands  and 
tens  of  thousands  on  whose  lips  the  most  sacred  words  are 
mere  "  idle  talk,"  as  remote  from  the  true  feeling  of  the 
moment  as  the  "  multitude  of  dreams  "  and  vanities  which 
haunt  the  night  ?  who  utter  fervent  prayers  without  any 
true  sense  of  their  meaning,  or  any  hearty  wish  to  have 
them  granted,  and  to  whom  the  whole  order  of  service  is 
but  a  round  of  forms  to  which  they  pay  a  customary  and 
heartless  deference  ? 
And  to  take  from  Life        i^^.)  ISTow  surely  a  life  SO  tliick  with  perils,  so  beset  with 

its  Quiet  and  Innocent         ■^    ,        ^        ■  iiti  i  i  ,• 

Enjoyments.  ^^^^  tendencies,   should  have   a  very  large   and  certain 

reward  to  offer.  But  has  it  ?  For  one,  Coheleth  thinks  it 
*^"  ■'  ^'  ~  ■  has  not.  In  his  judgment,  according  to  his  experience, 
instead  of  making  a  man  happier  even  in  this  present  time, 
to  which  it  limits  his  thoughts  and  aims,  it  robs  him  of  all 
quiet  and  happy  enjoyment  of  his  life.  And  mark,  it  is 
not  the  unsuccessful  man  of  business  who  might  naturally 
feel  sore  and  aggiieved,  but  the  successful  man  of  business, 
the  man  who  has  made  a  fortune  and  prospered  in  his 
schemes,  whom  the  Preacher  describes  as  having  lost  all 


IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  171 

faculty  of  enjoying  his  frains.  Even  the  man  who  has 
wealth  and  abundance  so  that  his  soul  lackcth  nothing  of 
all  he  desireth,  is  placed  before  us  as  the  slave  of  unsatisfied 
desire  and  constant  apprehension.  Both  his  hands  are  so 
full  of  labour  that  he  cannot  lay  hold  on  quiet.  Though 
he  loves  silver  so  well  and  has  so  much  of  it,  he  is  not 
satisfied  therewith;  his  riches  yield  him  no  certain  and 
abitling  delight.  And  how  can  he  be  in  "  happy  pliglit " 
who  is — 

Debarr'd  the  benefit  of  rest  ? 
"VNTien  day's  oppression  is  not  eased  by  nij^ht, 
Bnt  day  by  nigbt,  and  night  by  day,  oppress'd  ? 
And  each,  tliough  enemies  to  eithcr's  reign, 
Do  in  consent  shake  hands  to  torture  him. 

The  sound  sleep  of  humble  contented  labour  is  denied  him. 
He  is  haunted  by  perpetual  apprehensions  that  some  of  liis 
enterprises  will  prove  unlucky,  that  "there  is  some  ill 
a-brewing  toward  his  rest,"  that  evil  in  some  sliape  will  be- 
fall him.  He  doubts  "the  filching  age  will  steal  his 
treasure."  He  knows  that  when  he  is  called  hence,  he  can 
caiTy  away  nothing  m  his  hand  ;  all  his  gains  must  be 
left  to  his  heir,  who  may  either  turn  out  a  wanton  fool  or 
be  crushed  and  degraded  by  the  burden  and  temptations  of 
a  wealth  for  which  he  has  not  laboured.  And  hence,  amid 
all  his  toils  and  gains,  even  the  most  succcsslul  and  jjros- 
perous  man  suspects  that  he  has  been  "  labouring  for  the 


172  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 


wind "  and  may  reap  tlio  whirlwind  :  he  "  is  much  per- 
tui-bed  and  hath  vexation  and  grief." 

Is  the  picture  overdrawn  ?  Is  not  the  description  as 
true  to  our  modern  experience  as  to  that  of  "  the  antique 
world  "  ?  Shakespeare,  who  is  our  great  English  authority 
as  to  the  facts  of  human  experience,  thought  it  quite  as 
true.  His  Merchant  of  Venice  has  argosies  on  every  sea  ; 
and  two  of  his  friends,  hearing  him  confess  that  sadness 
makes  such  a  want-wit  of  him  that  he  has  much  ado  to 
know  himself,  tell  him  that  his  "  mind  is  tossing  on  the 
ocean  "  with  his  ships.  They  proceed  to  discuss  the  natural 
effects  of  having  so  many  enterprises  on  hand.  One 
says — 

Believe  mo,  Sir,  had  I  such  venture  forth, 
The  better  part  of  my  alfcctions  would 
Be  with  my  hopes  abroad .     I  should  bo  still 
Plucking  the  grass,  to  know  whcro  sits  the  wind  ; 
Peering  in  maps  for  ports,  and  piers,  and  roads ; 
And  every  object  that  might  make  mo  fear 
Misfortune  to  my  ventiu'es,  out  of  doubt 
Would  make  me  sad. 

And  the  other  adds — 

My  wind,  cooling  my  broth, 
Would  blow  me  to  an  ague,  when  I  thought 
What  harm  a  wind  too  great  at  sea  might  do. 
I  should  not  seo  the  sandy  hour-glass  run, 
But  1  shoukl  think  of  aliallows  and  of  Hats, 
And  see  my  wealthy  Andicw  douk'd  in  sand 


IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  173 

Vailing  lior  high-top  lower  tliaii  her  ribs 

To  kiss  her  burial.     Should  I  go  to  chiu'ch 

And  .SCO  the  holy  eclifico  of  stone, 

^Vnd  not  bethink  nio  straight  of  dangerous  rocks, 

Which  touching  but  my  gcntlo  vossol's  side, 

Would  scatter  all  her  spices  on  the  stream  ; 

Enrobe  the  roaring  waters  with  my  silks ; 

And,  in  a  word,  but  oven  now  worth  this. 

And  now  worth  nothing  ?    Shall  I  havo  the  thought 

To  think  on  this  ;  and  shall  I  lack  the  thought, 

That  such  a  thing  bechanced  would  make  mo  sad  ? 

"  Abundance  suffereth  not  the  rich  to  sleep  ;  "  the  thought 
that  his  "  riches  may  perish  in  some  unhicky  enterprise  " 
sounds  a  perpetual  alarum  in  his  ears :  "  all  his  days  he 
eateth  in  darkness,  and  is  much  perturbed,  and  hath 
vexation  and  grief."  These  are  the  words  of  the  Hebrew 
Preacher :  are  not  our  own  great  poet's  words  an  expressive 
commentary  on  them,  an  absolute  confirmation  of  them, 
covering  them  point  by  point  ?  And  shall  we  envy  tlie 
wealthy  merchant  or  manufacturer  whose  two  hands  arc 
thus  "  full  of  labour  and  vexation  of  spirit "  ?  Is  not  "  the 
husbandman  whose  sleep  is  sweet,  whether  he  eat  little  or 
much,"  better  off  than  he  ?  Nay,  has  not  even  the  sluggard 
who,  so  long  as  he  has  meat  to  eat,  foldeth  his  hands  in 
quiet,  a  truer  enjoyment  of  his  life  ? 

Of  course  Coheleth  does  not  mean  to  imply  that  every 
man  of  business  degenerates  into  a  miserly  sceptic,  wliose 
worship  is  a  formulated  hypocrisy  and  whose  life  is  vexed 


174  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

with  the  saddening  apprehensions  of  misfortune.  No 
doubt  there  were  then,  as  there  are  now,  many  men  of 
business  who  were  wise  enough  to  "  take  pleasure  in  all 
their  labours/'  to  cast  their  burden  of  care  on  Him  in 
whose  care  stand  both  to-morrow  and  to-day ;  men  to 
whom  worship  was  a  holy  strengthening  communion  with 
the  Father  of  their  spirits,  and  who  advanced  through  toil 
to  worthy  or  even  noble  ends.  He  means  simply  that 
these  are  the  perils  to  which  all  men  of  business  are 
exposed,  perils  into  which  they  fall  so  soon  as  their 
devotion  to  business  grows  excessive.  "  Make  business 
and  success  in  business  your  chief  good,  your  ruling  aim, 
and  you  will  come  to  think  of  your  neighbours  as  selfish 
rivals ;  you  will  engender  an  appetite  for  gain  which  can 
never  be  sated  ;  you  will  begin  to  look  askance  on  all  the 
lofty  spiritual  qualities  which  refuse  to  bow  to  the  yoke  of 
Mammon  ;  your  worship  will  degenerate  into  an  organized 
hypocrisy  ;  your  life  will  be  all  vexed  and  saddened  with 
fears  which  will  strangle  the  very  faculty  of  tranquil  en- 
joyment:" this  is  the  warning  of  the  Preacher;  a  warning 
of  which  our  generation,  in  such  urgent  sinful  haste  to  be 
rich,  stands  in  very  special  need. 

2.  But  what  checks,  what  correctives,  what  remedies 
would  the  Preacher  have  us  apply  to  the  diseased  tenden- 
cies of  the  time  ?  How  shall  men  of  business  save  them- 
selves from  that  excessive  devotion  to  its  affairs  which 
breeds  so  many  portentous  evils  ? 


IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  175 


(a)  Well,  the  very  sense  of  the  danger  to  which  tlioy  Tho  Cnrrwtivps  of  this 
are  exposed — a  danger  so  insidious,  so  profound,  so  fatal  |'ev.)ti<.n.iioa. ennoo 

^  '^  ^  its  renls; 

— shouhl  surely  induce  caution  and  a  wary  self-control. 

The  symptoms  of  the  disease  are  described  that  we  may  ^^"P-  ^  ••  "'"■  ^'^~^'^- 

judge  whether  or  not  we  are  infected  by  it ;  its  dreadful 

issues,  that,  if  infected,  we  may  study  a  cure.     The  man 

who  loves  riches  is  placed  before  us  that  we  may  learn 

what  he  is  really  like — that  he  is  not  the  careless  happy 

being  we  so  often  suppose  him  to  be.     We  see  him  decline 

on  the  low  base  levels  of  covetousness  and  materialism, 

hypocrisy  and  perpetual  apprehension ;  and,  as  we  look, 

the   Preacher    turns    upon  us  with,    "There,  that  is  the 

slave  of  ^Mammon  in  his  habit  as  he  lives.     Do  you  care 

to  be  like  that  ?     Will  you  break  your  heart  unless  you 

are  allowed  to  assume  his  heavy  and  degrading  burden  ? " 

This   is  one  help  to  a  wise  content  with  our  lot :  but  And  the  Con%iption 

,1  1,  •  Till       tlia,t  it  is  opp<jsfHl  to 

lie  has  many  more  very  much  at  our  service ;  and  notably  ^j^^  -^yj,j  ^^J  ^^^j  ^^ 

this, — that  an  undue  devotion  to  the  toils  of  business  is  expressed  in  the  Or- 

contrary  to  the  will,  the  design,  the  providence  of  God.  p°'^J||i'^Q^    '" 

God,  he   argues,  has  fixed  a  time  for  every  undertaking 

under  heaven,  and  made    all    labours    and   undertakings  ^^^^'  ^^^'  ^'^'  ^~^' 

beautiful  each  in  its  own  time,  but  only  then.    By  His  wise 

kindly  ordinances  He   has  sought  to   divert  us  from  an 

injurious  excess  in  toil.     Our  sowing  and  our  reaping,  our 

time  of  rest  and  our  time  for  work,  the  time  to  save  and 

the  time  to  spend,  the  time  to  seek  and  the  time  to  lose, — 

all  these,  with  all  the  fluctuations  of  feeling  they  excite 


176  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 


ill  us ;  in  short,  our  wliole  life,  from  tlic  cradle  to  the 
grave,  is  under,  or  should  be  under,  law  to  Him.  It  is 
only  when  we  violate  His  gracious  ordinances, — working 
when  we  should  be  at  rest,  waking  when  we  should  sleep, 
saving  when  we  should  spend,  weeping  over  losses  which 
are  real  gains,  or  laughing  over  gains  which  will  prove  to 
be  losses, — that  we  run  into  excess  and  break  up  the  peace- 
ful order  and  tranquil  flow  of  the  life  which  He  designed 
for  us. 
In  the  "Wrongs  whicii        Becausc  we  wiU  not  be  obsequious  to  the  ordinances  of 

II(!  permits  Mm  to  -,^.  .    -  ,  .  i        n      •         i 

iniiict  uiK.n  us ;  ^^^^  wisdom,  He  permits  us  to  meet  a  new  check  in  the 

caprice  and  injustice  of  man — making  even  these  to  praise 

Chaii  iv'vv  1—3  Him  by  subserving  our  good.  If  we  do  not  suffer  the 
violent  oppressions  which  drew  "  tears  "  from  the  Preacher's 
fellow-captives,  we  nevertheless  stand  very  much  at  the 
mercy  of  our  neighbours  in  so  far  as  our  outward  haps  are 
concerned.  Unwise  human  laws  or  an  unjust  administra- 
tion of  them,  or  the  selfish  rapacity  of  individual  men — 
brokers  who  rig  the  market ;  bankers  whose  long  prayers 
are  a  pretence  under  cloak  of  which  they  rob  widows  and 
orphans,  and  sometimes  make  them  ;  bankrupts  for  whose 
wounds  the  Gazette  has  a  singular  power  of  healing,  since 
they  come  out  of  it  sounder  and  wealthier  men  than  they 
went  in :  these  are  only  some  of  the  instruments  by  which 
the  labours  of  the  diligent  are  robbed  of  their  due  reward. 
And  we  are  to  take  these  checks  as  correctives,  to  find  in 
the  very  losses  which  men  inflict  the  gifts  of  a  gracious 


IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  177 


God.  He  permits  us  to  suffer  these  and  the  like  disasters 
lest  our  hearts  should  be  overmuch  set  on  getting  gain. 
He  graciously  permits  us  to  suffer  them  that,  seeing  how 
the  wicked  often  thrive  on  the  decay  of  the  upright,  we  may 
learn  that  there  is  something  better  than  wealth,  more 
enduring,  more  satisfying,  and  may  seek  that  higher  good. 

Nav  coins  to  the  very  root  of  the  matter  and  expound-  i^^t,  above  all,  in  tho 

J  >  ^        o  -'  1  i.1,    1.    "imortal  Cravings 

ing  its  whole  philosophy,  the  Preacher  teaches  us   that  ^j^j^h  pj^,  ^^ 
wealth,  however  great  and  greatly  used,  cannot  satisfy  men :  quickened  in  the  Soui. 
since  God  has  "'put  eternity  into  their  hearts"  as  well  as  chap.  iii.,  v.  ii. 
time ;  and  how  should  all  the  kingdoms  of  a  world  that  must 
soon  pass  content  those  who  are  to  live  for  ever  ?*     We 
may  well  call  this  world,  for  all  so  solid  as  it  looks,  "  a 
perishing  world ;  "  for,  like  our  own  bodies,  it  is  in  a  per- 
petual flux,  perishing  every  moment  that  it  may  live  a 
little  longer,  and  must  soon  come  to  an  end.     But  we,  in 
our  true  selves,  we  who  dwell  inside  the  body  and  use  its 
members  as  the  workman  uses  his  tools,  how  can  we  find  a 
satisfying  good,  whether  in  the  body  or  in  the  world  which 
is  akin  to  it  and  supplies  it  ?     We  want  a  good  as  lasting 


*  M.  de  Lammcnais — the  founder  of  the  most  religious  school  of  thinkers  in 
modem  France,  from  whom  men  such  as  Count  Montalembert,  Pfere  Lacordairo, 
and  Maurice  de  Gu6rin  drew  their  earliest  inspiration — asks,  "  Do  you  know 
what  it  is  makes  ni;in  the  most  suffering  of  all  creatures  ?"  and  replies :  "  It  is 
that  he  ha.s  one  foot  in  the  finite  and  the  other  in  the  infinilo,  and  that  he  is 
torn  asunder,  not  by  four  horses,  as  in  the  homble  old  times,  but  between  two 
worlds." 

12 


178  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

as  ourselves.  Nothing  sliort  of  that  can  be  our  chief  good, 
or  inspire  us  with  a  true  content. 

Liko  as  the  -waves  make  towards  the  pebbled  shore, 
So  do  our  minutes  hasten  to  their  end  ; 
Each  changing  place  with  that  which  goes  before. 
In  sequent  toil  all  foi-wards  do  contend  : 

and  we  might  as  well  think  to  build  a  stable  habitation  on 
the  waves  which  break  upon  the  pebbled  shore,  as  to  find 
an  enduring  good  in  the  sequent  minutes  which  carry  us 
down  the  stream  of  time.  It  is  only  because  we 
"  do  not  understand  "  this  "  work  of  God "  in  putting 
eternity  into  our  hearts  ;  because,  plunged  in  the  flesh  and 
its  cares  or  delights,  we  forget  the  grandeur  of  our  nature, 
and  are  tempted  to  sell  our  immortal  birthright  for  a  mess 
of  pottage  which,  however  much  we  enjoy  it  to-day,  will 
leave  us  hungry  to-morrow :  it  is  only,  I  say,  because  we 
are  very  far  from  understanding  this  work  of  God  "  from 
beginning  to  end,"  that  we  ever  delude  ourselves  with  the 
hope  of  finding  in  aught  the  earth  yields  a  good  in  which 
we  can  rest. 
Practical  Maxims  (b.)  A  noble  pliilosophy  this,  and  pregnant  with  practical 

deduced  from  thisView  ^^^^^^^^  ^f         (.  ^^luc  !     For  if,  as  WO  closc  our  study  of 

this  Section  of  the  Book,  we  ask,  "  What  good  advice  does 
the  Preacher  offer  that  we  can  take  and  act  upon  ?  "  we 
shall  find  that  he  gives  us  at  least  three  serviceable 
maxims. 


of  the  Business-life. 


IN  DEVOTION  TO  BUSINESS.  179 

To  all  men  of  business  conscious  of  their  special  dangers  a  Maxim  on 
and  anxious  to  avoid  them,  he  says,  first :  Eeplace  the  ^'"-•^i'*'"'''"'"- 
competition  "which  springs  from  your  jealous  rivalry  with  chap.  iv.,  w.  9-IG. 
the  co-operation  which  is  born  of  sympathy  and  ])reeds 
good  will.     "  Two  are  better  than  one.     Union  is  better 
than  isolation.     Conjoint  labour  has  the  greater  reward." 
Instead  of  seeking  to  take  advantage  of  your  neighbours, 
try  to  help  them.    Instead  of  standing  alone,  associate  with 
your  fellows.     Instead  of  aiming  at  selfish  ends,  pursue 
your  ends  in  common.     Indeed  the  wise  Hebrew  Preacher 
anticipates  the  Gospel  to  a  quite  remarkable  degree,  and 
in  effect  bids  us  love  our  neighbour  as  ourself,  look  on  his 
things  as  well  as  on  our  own,  and  do  to  all  nipn  as  we 
would  that  they  should  do  to  us. 

His  second  maxim  is  :  Eeplace  the  formality  of  your  a  -Maxm  on  Worship 
worship  with  a  reverent  and  steadfast  sincerity.     Keep  „,  . 

your  foot  when  you  go  to  the  House  of  God.  Put  obedi- 
ence before  sacrifice.  Do  not  hurry  on  your  mouth  to  the 
utterance  of  words  which  transcend  the  desires  of  your 
hearts.  Do  not  come  into  the  Temple  with  a  pre-occupied 
spirit,  a  spirit  distracted  with  thoughts  that  travel  diflerent 
ways.  Eealize  the  presence  of  the  Great  King,  and  speak 
to  him  with  the  reverence  due  to  a  king.  Keep  the  vows 
you  make  in  His  house  after  you  have  left  it.  Seek  and 
serve  Him  with  all  your  hearts,  and  ye  shall  find  rest  to 
your  souls. 

12* 


180  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD. 

A  Maxim  on  Trust  in  Aucl  liis  last  maxiui  is :  Replace  your  grasping  self-suffi- 
ciency with  a  constant  holy  trust  in  the  fatherly  providence 

chiAp.  v.,  %-v.  8— 17.  of  God.  If  you  see  oppression  or  suffer  wrong,  if  your 
schemes  are  thwarted  and  your  enterprises  fail,  you  need 
not  therefore  lose  the  quiet  repose  and  settled  peace  which 
come  from  a  sense  of  duty  done  and  the  undisturbed  pos- 
session of  the  main  good  of  life.  God  is  over  all,  and  rules 
all  the  undertakings  of  men,  giving  each  its  due  time  and 
place,  and  causing  all  to  work  together  for  the  good  of  the 
loving  trustful  heart.  Trust  in  Him,  and  you  shall  feel, 
even  though  you  cannot  prove, 

That  every  cloud  that  spreads  above, 
And  veileth  love,  itself  is  love. 

Trust  in  Him,  and  you  shall  find  that — 

The  slow  sweet  hours  that  bring  us  all  things  good, 
The  slow  sad  hours  that  bring  us  all  things  ill 
And  all  good  things  from  evil, 

as  they  strike  on  the  great  horologe  of  Time,  are  set  to 
a  growing  music  by  the  hand  of  God  ;  a  music  which  rises 
and  falls  as  we  listen,  but  which  nevertheless  swells 
through  all  its  saddest  cadences  and  dying  falls  toward 
that  jubilant  harmonious  close  in  which  all  discords  will 
be  drowned. 


TIIIED  SECTION. 

Tlic  Quest  of  tJie  Chief  Good  in  Wealth,  and  in  tJic 
Golden  Mean. 

Chap.  VI.,  VII,,  and  VIIL,  m.  1—15. 


IN  the  foregoing  Section  Cohcleth  has  shown  that 
the  Chief  Good  is  not  to  be  found  in  that  excessive 
Devotion  to  the  affairs  of  Business  which  was,  and 
still  is,  characteristic  of  the  Hebrew  race.  This  devotion 
is  commonly  inspired  either  by  the  desire  to  amass  great 
wealth,  for  the  sake  of  the  status,  influence,  and  means  of 
lavish  enjoyment  it  is  supposed  to  confer  ;  or  by  the  desire 
to  secure  a  competence,  to  stand  in  that  golden  mean  of 
comfort  which  is  darkened  by  no  harassing  fears  of  future 
penury  or  need.  By  a  logical  sequence  of  thought,  there- 
fore, the  Preacher  advances  from  his  discussion  of  Devotion 
to  Business,  to  consider  the  leading  motives  by  which  it  is 
inspired.  The  questions  he  now  asks  and  answers  are,  in 
effect,  (1)  Will  wealth  confer  the  good,  the  tranquil  satis- 
faction, which  all  men  seek  ?  And  if  not,  (2)  Will  that 
moderate  provision  for  the  present  and  the  future  to  which 
the  more  prudent  restrict  their  aim  ? 


1S2  THE  QUEST 


T/ie  Quest  in  Wealth.        His  (liscussion  of  tliG  fii'st  of  thesG  questions,  although 
Chap.  VI.  very  matterful,  is  comparatively  brief :  in  part,  perhaps, 

because  in  the  previous  Section  he  has  already  dwelt  on 
many  of  the  drawbacks  which  accompany  wealth ;  and 
still  more,  probably,  because,  while  there  are  but  few  men  in 
any  age  to  whom  great  wealth  is  possible,  there  would  be 
unusually  few  in  the  company  of  exiles  and  captives  for 
whose  instruction  he  wrote.  Brief  and  simple  as  the  dis- 
cussion is,  however,  we  shall  misunderstand  it  imless  we 
remember  that  Coheleth  is  arguing,  not  against  wealth, 
but  against  mistaking  wealth  for  the  Chief  Good, 

Indeed,  the  popular  misconception  of  the  whole  Book  of 
Ecclesiastes  arises  from  the  fact  that  its  true  aim  is  so  often 
overlooked  or  forgotten.  To  many  minds  it  appears  one  of 
the  most  melancholy  books  in  the  Sacred  Canon ;  whereas 
it  is  really  one  of  the  most  consolatory  and  cheerful.  No 
doubt  there  is  a  tone  of  sadness  in  it,  for  it  has  to  deal 
with  some  of  the  saddest  facts  of  human  life — with  the 
errors  which  divert  men  from  the  true  aim  and  the  true 
good,  and  plunge  them  into  a  various  and  growing  misery- 
But  the  voice  which  takes  this  saddened  tone  is  the  voice 
of  a  most  brave  and  cheerful  spirit — a  spirit  whose  counsels 
can  only  depress  us  if  we  are  seeking  our  chief  good  where 
we  cannot  find  it.  For  the  Preacher — as  we  have  constant 
occasion  to  remember — docs  not  condenm  Wisdom  or  Mirth, 
Business  or  Wealth  or  Competence,  as  in  themselves  vanities. 
He  approves  of  them ;  he  shows  us  how  we  may  so  pursue. 


IN  WEALTH.  183 


and  so  use,  them  as  to  find  them  very  pleasant  and  hcliiful 
to  us ;  how  we  may  so  dispense  with  them,  if  they  lie 
heyond  our  reach,  as  none  the  less  to  enjoy  a  very  true  and 
al)iding  content.  His  constant  recurring  moral  is,  that  we 
arc  to  enjoy  our  brief  day,  that  God  meant  us  to  enjoy  it ; 
that  we  are  to  be  up  and  doing  with  a  heart  for  any  strife 
or  labour  or  pleasure,  not  to  sit  still  and  weep  over  broken 
illusions  and  defeated  hopes.  Our  aims,  our  possessions — 
Wealth,  Labour,  Mirth,  Wisdom — become  vanities  to  us  and 
vex  our  spirits  only  when  we  seek  in  them  that  supreme 
satisfaction  which  He,  who  has  put  eternity  into  our  hearts, 
designed  us  to  find  only  in  Him.  If  we  love  Him  and 
serve  Him ;  if  we  acknowledge  Him  to  be  the  Author  of 
all  our  good  gifts ;  if  we  seek  first  His  kingdom  and 
righteousness,  this  Book  should  have  no  sadness  for  us. 
We  should  find  in  it  a  confirmation  of  our  most  intimate 
convictions,  and  incentives  to  act  upon  them.  But  if  we 
do  not  hold  our  wisdom,  our  pleasure,  our  traffic,  our  wealth, 
as  His  gifts  and  ordinances ;  if  we  permit  them  to  usurp 
His  seat  and  become  as  gods  to  us,  then  this  Book  will  be 
sad  enough  for  us,  but  no  whit  sadder  than  our  lives.  It  will 
be  sad,  and  will  make  us  sad  ;  yet  only  that  it  may  lead  us 
to  repentance,  and  through  repentance  to  a  true  and  lasting 
joy.  It  is  because  this  brave  bright  Book  has  been  so 
generally  misconceived  that  I  have  thought  it  well  to  inter- 
rupt my  E.xposition  with  these  explanatory  and  corrective 
words. 


184  THE  QUEST  Chap.  VI.  v.  1,  to 

The  Man  who  makes  I.  But  HOW,  to  retum  to  it.  Let  US  obscrvG  that  tlirougli- 
ishaimfedb' Fears  and  ^^^  ^^^^^  Sixtli  Chapter  the  Preacher  is  speaking  of  the 
Perplexities :  Lovcr  of  Pdches,  not  simply  of  the  liich  Man  ;  not  against 

Chap.  VI.,  ^"^^  1—6.  Wealth,  but  agaiust  mistaking  Wealth  for  the  Chief  Good. 
The  man  who  trusts  in  riches  is  placed  before  us,  and  that 
we  may  see  him  at  his  best,  he  has  the  riches  in  which  he 
trusts.  God  has  given  him  his  "  good  things,"  given  him 
them  to  the  fidl.  He  lacks  nothing  that  he  desireth — 
nothing  at  least  that  wealth  can  command.  Yet,  because 
he  does  not  accept  his  abundance  as  the  gift  of  God,  and 
hold  the  Giver  better  than  His  gift,  he  cannot  enjoy  it. 
But  how  do  we  know  that  he  has  suffered  his  riches  to 
take  an  undue  place  in  his  regard  ?  We  know  it  by  this 
sure  token — that  he  cannot  leave  God  to  take  care  of  them 
and  of  him.  He  frets  about  them  and  about  what  will 
become  of  them  when  he  is  gone.  He  has  no  son,  per- 
chance, to  inherit  them,  only  some  "  stranger  "  whom  he 
has  adopted  (v.  2) — and  almost  all  childless  Orientals 
adopt  strangers  to  this  day,  as  we  find  to  our  cost  in  India. 
This  horror  at  the  thought  of  being  dead  to  name  and  fame 
and  use  through  lack  of  heirs,  was  and  is  very  prevalent  in 
the  East.  Even  Abraham,  the  father  of  the  faithful,  when 
God  had  promised  him  the  supreme  good,  broke  out  with 
the  cry,  "  What  can'st  Thou  give  me  when  I  am  going  ofi" 
childless,  and  have  no  heir  but  my  body-servant  Elieser  of 
Damascus  ?  "  Because  this  feeling  lay  close  to  the  Oriental 
heart,  the  Preacher   is   at   some   pains   to  show  what  a 


Chap.  VI.  v.  7.  IN  WEALTH.  185 


"  vanity  "  it  is.  lie  argues :  '  Even  if  you  should  bcj^ct 
a  hunilreil  children  instead  of  being  childless  ;  even  though 
you  should  live  twice  a  thousand  years,  and  the  grave  did 
not  wait  for  you  instead  of  lying  close  before  you ;  yet,  so 
long  as  you  were  not  content  to  leave  your  riches  in  the 
hand  of  God,  you  would  fret  and  perplex  yourself  with 
fears.  An  abortion  would  be  better  off  than  you,  although 
it  Cometh  in  nothingness  and  goeth  in  darkness,  for  it 
would  know  a  rest  denied  to  you,  and  sink  without  appre- 
hension into  "  the  place  "  from  which  all  your  apprehen- 
sions cannot  save  you  (vv.  3 — 6).  Foolish  man  !  it  is  not 
because  you  lack  an  heir  that  you  are  perturbed  in  spirit. 
If  you  had  one,  you  would  find  some  other  cause  for 
anxious  care,  you  would  none  the  less  be  vexed  with  appre- 
hensions ;  for  you  would  still  be  thinking  of  your  riches 
rather  than  of  the  God  who  gave  them,  and  still  dread  the 
moment  in  which  you  must  part  with  them  instead  of 
calmly  referring  them  to  His  wise  disposal." 

From  this  plain  practical  argument  Coheleth  passes  to  For  God  Las  imt  Ktor- 
an  argument  of  more  philosophic  reach.     "  All  the  labour  *"  ^ '"  "^    "    ^'^^  ' 
of  this  man  is  for  his  mmith  ; "  that  is  to  say,  his  wealth,  ^'^"P-  ^'^•'  ^■^■-  7— lo. 
with  all  that  it  commands,  appeals  to  sense  and  appetite  ; 
it  feeds  "  the  lust  of  the  eye,  or  the  lust  of  the  llesh,  or  the 
pride  of  life,"  and  therefore  "  his  soul  cannot  be  satisfied 
therewith"  (v.  7).     That  craves  a  higher  nutriment,  a  more 
enduring  good.     God  has  put  eternity  into  it ;  and  how 
can  that  which  is  immortal  be  contented  with  tlic  lucky 


186  THE  QUEST  Chap.  VI.  v.  7,  to 

liaps  and  comfortable  conditions  of  time?     Unless  some 
immortal  provision  be  made  for  the  immortal  spirit,  it  will 
pine,  and  protest,  and  crave  till  all  power  of  happily  enjoy- 
ing outward  good  be  lost.     Nay,  if  the  spirit  in  man  be 
craving  and  unfed,  whatever  his  outward  conditions  or  his 
faculty  for  enjoying  them,  he  cannot  be  at  rest.     The  wise 
man  may  be  able  to  extract  from  the  gains  of  time  a  plea- 
sure denied  to  the  fool;   and  the  poor  man,  his  penury 
preventing  him  from   indulging  passion  and  appetite  to 
satiety,  may  have  a  keener  enjoyment  of  them  than  the 
magnate  who  has  tried  them  to  the  full  and  grown  w^eary 
of  them.    In  a  certain  sense,  as  compared  the  one  with  the 
other,  the  poor  man  may  thus  have  an  "  advantage"  over  the 
magnate  and  the  wise  man  over  the  fool ;  for  "  it  is  better 
to  enjoy  the  good  we  have  than  to  crave  a  good  beyond 
our  reach  ;"  and  this  much  the  poor  man  or  the  wise  man 
may  achieve.     Yet,  after  all,  what  advantage  have  they? 
The  thirst  of  the  soul  is  still  unslaked ;  no  sensual  or  sensuous 
enjoyment  can  satisfy  that.     All  human  action  and  enjoy- 
ment is  under  law  to  God.     No  one  is  so  wise  or  so  strong 
as  to  contend  successfully  against  Him  or  His  ordinances. 
And  it  is  He  who  has  given  men  an  immortal  nature  with 
cravings  that  wander  through  eternity ;  it  is  He  who  has 
ordained  that  they  shall  know  no  rest  until  they  rest  in 

And  much  that  he  ^      ' 

jraiiis  only  feeda  Look  oucc  morc  at  your  means  and  possessions.     Mul- 

Vanity : 

Chap.  VI.,  V.  11.  tiply  them  as  you  will ;  yet  there  are  many  reasons  wh\', 


CiiAi-.  VI.  V.  1'2.  IN  WEALTH.  187 

if  you  seek  your  chief  good  in  them,  they  should  prove 
vanity  and  breed  vexation  of  spirit.  One  is,  that  beyond 
a  certain  point  you  cannot  use  or  enjoy  them.  They  add 
to  your  pomp.  They  enable  you  to  fill  a  larger  place  in  the 
world's  eye.  They  swell  and  magnify  the  vain  show  in 
which  you  walk.  But,  after  all,  they  add  to  your  discomfort 
rather  than  your  comfort.  You  have  so  much  tlie  more  to 
manage,  and  look  after,  and  take  care  of :  but  you  yourself, 
instead  of  being  better  off  than  you  were,  have  only  taken 
a  heavier  task  on  your  hands.  And  what  advantage  is 
there  in  that  ? 

Another  reason  is,  that  it  is  hard,  so  hard  as  to  be  impos-  Neither  ran  be  t«u 
sible,  for  you  to  know  "  what  it  is  good"  for  you  to  have.  J'j^  ^^  JJ^^^,^     '^ 
That  on  which  you  have  set  yoiu'  heart  may  prove  to  be  Chap.  VI.,  v.  12. 
an  evil  rather  than  a  good  when  at  last  you  get  it.     The 
fair  fruit,  so  pleasant  and  desirable  to  the  eye,  that  to 
possess  it  you  were  content  to  labour  and  deny  yourself 
through  years,  may  turn  to  an  apple  of  Sodom  in  your 
mouth,  and  yield  you,  in  place  of  sweet  pulp  and  juice, 
only  the  bitter  ashes  of  disappointment. 

And  a  third  reason  is,  that  the  more  you  acquire  the  ^"or  foresee  what  will 

,     ,.  01  11     1  r  bccouic  of  his  Gains. 

more  you  must  dispose  oi  when  you  are  called  away  from 

this  life  :  and  who  can  tell  what  shall  be  after  him  ?    How  ^'^-'P-  ^  ^-  ^'-  ^''-'■ 

are  you  so  to  dispose  of  your  gains  as  tliat  they  sliall  do 

good  and  not  harm,  as  that  they  shall  carry  comfort  to  the 

hearts   of    those   whom    you    love,  and  not  breed  envy, 

alienation,  and  strife  ? 


183  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

These  are  the  Preacher's  arguments  against  an  undue 
love  of  riches,  against  making  them  so  dear  a  good  that  we 
can  neither  enjoy  them  while  we  have  them,  nor  trust  them 
to  the  disposal  of  God  when  we  must  leave  them  behind 
us.  Are  they  not  soimd  arguments?  Should  we  be 
saddened  by  them,  or  comforted  ?  We  can  only  be 
saddened  by  them  if  we  love  "Wealth,  or  long  for  it,  with 
an  inordinate  desire.  If  we  can  trust  in  God  to  give  us  all 
that  it  will  be  really  good  for  us  to  have,  the  arguments  of 
the  Preacher  are  full  of  comfort  and  hope  for  us,  whether 
we  be  rich  or  whether  we  be  poor. 

The  Quest  in  the  There  be  many  that  say,  "Who  wiU  show  us  any  gold  ?" 

mistaking  gold  for  their  god  or  good.     For  though  there 

Chaps.  VII.  &  VIII.,  ^^^  i^g  1^^^  fg^  jj^  g^j^y  g^gg  ^Q  whom  great  wealth  is  pos- 
sible, there  are  many  who  crave  it  and  believe  that  to 
have  it  is  to  possess  the  supreme  felicity.  It  is  not  only  the 
rich  who  "  trust  in  riches."  As  a  rule,  perhaps,  they  trust 
in  them  less  than  the  poor,  since  they  have  tried  them  and 
know  pretty  exactly  both  how  much,  and  how  little,  they 
can  do.  It  is  those  who  have  not  tried  them,  and  to  whom 
poverty  brings  many  undeniable  hardships,  who  are  most 
sorely  tempted  to  trust  in  them  as  the  sovereign  remedy 
for  the  ills  of  life.  So  that  the  counsels  of  the  Sixth 
Chapter  may  have  a  wider  scope  than  we  sometimes  think 
they  have.  But  whether  they  apply  to  few  or  many,  there 
can  be  no  doubt  that  the  counsels  of  the  Seventh  and 


IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN.  189 

Eighth  Chapters  are  api)licable  to  a  large  majority  of  men. 
For  here  the  I'reaclier  discusses  the  Golden  Mean  in  wliicli 
most  of  us  would  like  to  stand.  Many  of  us  dare  not  ask 
for  great  wealth  lest  it  should  prove  a  burden  we  could 
very  hardly  bear  :  but  we  have  no  scruple  in  adopting  the 
prayer  of  Agur,  "  Give  me  neither  poverty  nor  riches  ; 
Feed  me  with  food  proportioned  to  my  need  ;  Let  me  have 
a  comfortable  competence  in  which  I  shall  be  at  an  equal 
remove  from  the  temptations  of  extreme  wealth  or  of 
extreme  penury."  Now  the  endeavour  to  secure  a  compe- 
tence may  be,  not  lawful  only,  but  most  laudable ;  since 
God  means  us  to  make  the  best  of  the  capacities  He  has 
given  us  and  the  opportunities  He  sends  us.  Nevertheless, 
we  may  pursue  this  right  end  from  a  wrong  motive,  in  a 
wrong  spirit.  Both  spirit  and  motive  are  wrong  if  we 
pursue  our  competence  as  though  it  were  a  good  so  great 
that  we  can  know  no  happy  content  and  rest  unless  we 
attain  it.  For  what  is  it  that  animates  such  a  pursuit,  save 
distrust  in  the  Providence  of  God  ?  Left  in  his  hands,  we 
do  not  feel  that  we  should  be  safe  ;  whereas  if  we  had  our 
fortune  in  our  own  hands,  and  were  secured  against 
chances  and  changes  by  a  comfortable  investment  or  two, 
we  should  feel  safe  enough.  This  feeling  is,  as  you  know, 
very  general :  we  are  all  of  us  in  danger  of  slipping  into 
this  form  of  unquiet  distrust  in  the  fatherly  Providence  of 
God. 


Chap.  VII.,  vv.  1—14. 


100  THE  QUEST  Chap.  VII.  v.  1,  to 

The  Method  of  the  BecaiisG  the  feeling  is   both   general   and   strong,   the 

ftltin  who  soolc3  n 

Competciico.  Hebrew  Preacher  addresses  himself  to  it  at  some  length. 

His  object  now  is  to  place  before  us  a  man  who  does  not 
aim  at  great  affluence,  but,  guided  by  prudence  and  com- 
mon sense,  makes  it  his  ruling  aim  to  stand  well  with  his 
neighbours  and  to  lay  by  a  moderate  provision  for  future 
wants.  The  Preacher  opens  the  discussion  by  stating  the 
maxims  or  rules  of  conduct  by  which  such  a  man  would  be 
apt  to  guide  himself.  One  of  his  first  aims  would  be  to 
secure  "  a  good  name,"  since  that  would  prepossess  men  in 
his  favour,  and  open  before  him  many  avenues  which 
would  otherwise  be  closed.*  Just  as  one  entering  a  crowded 
Oriental  room  with  some  choice  fragrance  exhaling  from 
person  and  apparel  would  find  bright  faces  turned  towards 
him  and  a  ready  way  opened  for  his  approach,  so  the 
bearer  of  a  good  name  would  find  many  willing  to  meet 
him,  and  traffic  with  him,  and  trust  him.  As  the  years 
passed,  his  good  name,  if  he  kept  it,  would  diffuse  itself 
over  a  wider  area  with  a  more  intense  effect,  so  that  the 
day  of  his  death  would  be  better  than  the  day  of  his  birth 
— to  leave  a  good  name  being  so  much  more  honourable 
than  to  inherit  one  (chap.  vii.  v.  1).  But  how  would  he 
go  about  to  acquire  his  good  name  ?  Again  the  answer 
carries  us  back  to  the  East.     Nothing  is  more  striking  to  a 


*  "  There  are  throe  crowns ;  of  the  law,  the  priesthood,  and  the  kingship : 
but  the  crown  of  a  good  name  is  greater  than  them  all." — The  Talmud. 


Chap.  VII.  v.  14.  IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN.  191 

Western  traveller  than  the  serene  dignified  gravity  of  the 
superior  Oriental  races.  In  public  they  rarely  smile,  almost 
never  laugh,  and  hardly  ever  express  surprise.  Cool, 
courteous,  self-possessed,  they  bear  good  news  or  bad, 
prosperous  or  adverse  fortune,  with  a  proud  equanimity. 
This  equal  mind,  expressing  itself  in  a  grave  dignified 
bearing,  is  with  them  well  nigh  indispensable  to  success  in 
public  life.  And  therefore  our  friend  in  quest  of  a  good 
name  betakes  himself  to  the  house  of  mourning  ratlier 
than  to  the  house  of  feasting  ;  he  holds  that  serious  thought 
on  the  end  of  all  men  is  better  than  the  wanton  foolish 
mirth  which  crackles  like  thorns  under  a  kettle — making 
a  great  sputter  but  soon  going  out;  and  would  rather  have 
his  heart  bettered  by  the  reproof  of  the  wise  than  listen  to 
the  song  of  fools  over  the  wine-cup  (vv.  2 — G.)  Knowing 
that  he  cannot  be  much  with  fools  without  sharing  their 
folly,  fearing  that  they  may  lead  him  into  those  excesses 
in  which  the  wisest  mind  is  infatuated  and  the  gentlest 
heart  corrupted  (v,  7),  he  elects  rather  to  walk  with  a  sad 
countenance,  among  the  wise,  to  the  house  of  mourning 
and  meditation,  than  to  huriy  with  fools  to  the  banquet 
in  which  wine  and  song  and  laughter  drown  serious  reflec- 
tion and  leave  the  heart  worse  than  they  found  it. 
What  though  the  wise  reprove  him  when  he  errs  ? 
What  thougli,  as  he  listens  to  tlieir  reproof,  his 
lieart  at  times  grow  hot  within  him  ?  The  end  of 
their  reproof  is   better    than  the  beginning   (v.    8) ;    as 


192  THE  QUEST  Chap.  VII.  v.  1,  to 

he  reflects  upon  it,  he  learns  from  it,  profits  by  it,  and 
by  patient  endurance  of  it  wins  a  good  from  it  which 
haughty  resentment  would  have  cast  away.  Unlike  the 
fools,  therefore,  whose  wanton  mirth  turns  into  bitter 
anger  at  the  mere  sound  of  reproof,  he  will  not  suffer  his 
spirit  to  be  hurried  into  a  hot  resentment,  but  will  compel 
that  which  injures  them  to  do  him  good  (v.  9).  Nor  will 
he  rail  even  at  the  fools  who  fleet  the  passing  hour,  or 
account  that  because  they  are  so  many  or  so  bold,  "  the 
time  is  out  of  joint."  He  will  show  himself  not  only  wiser 
than  the  foolish,  but  wiser  than  the  wise  :  for  while  they — 
and  here  surely  the  Preacher  hits  the  habit  of  most  reflective 
men — laud  the  time  when  they  were  young,  and  ask,  "  How 
was  it  that  former  days  were  better  than  these  ?"  he  will 
conclude  that  the  question  springs  rather  from  their  queru- 
lousness  than  their  wisdom,  and  make  the  best  of  the  time 
and  of  the  conditions  of  the  time  in  which  it  has  pleased 
God  to  place  him  (v.  10). 

But  if  any  ask,  "  VVliy  has  he  renounced  the  pursuit  of 
that  wealth  on  which  so  many  are  bent  who  are  less 
capable  of  using  it  than  he?"  the  answer  comes  that  he 
has  discovered  Wisdom  to  be  as  good  as  "Wealth,  and  even 
better.  Not  only  is  Wisdom  as  secure  a  defence  against 
the  ills  of  life  as  Wealth,  but  it  has  this  great  advantage — 
that  "it  fortifies  the  heart,"  while  wealth  often  lays  a 
burden  on  tlie  spirit  which  galls  and  frets  it.  Wisdom 
braces   the    spirit   for    any   fortune,   inspires   an  inward 


Chap.  VII.  v.  U.  IN  TIIF.  (iOLDEN  MEAN.  193 


serenity  which  does  not  lie^at  tlic  nvercy  of  outwanl  accidents 
(vv.  11,  12).  It  teaches  a  man  to  regard  all  the  conditions 
of  life  as  ordained  and  sliaped  by  God,  and  weans  him 
from  tlic  vain  endeavour,  on  whicli  many  exliaust  their 
strength,  to  straighten  that  wliicli  Goil  has  made  crooked 
(v.  13)  :  once  let  him  sec  that  the  thing  is  crooked,  that 
God  meant  it  to  be  crooked,  and  he  will  accept  and  adapt 
himself  to  it  instead  of  wearying  himself  with  futile 
attempts  to  make  it  or  to  think  it  straight.  And  there  is 
one  very  good  reason  why  God  should  permit  many  crooks 
in  our  lot,  very  good  reason  therefore  why  a  wise  man 
should  carry  an  equal  mind  through  life.  For  God  sends 
the  crooked  as  well  as  the  straight,  adversity  as  well  as 
prosperity,  in  order  that  we  should  know  that  He  has 
"  made  this  as  well  as  that ;"  that  we  receive  both  from 
His  benign  hand.  He  interlaces  His  providences  and  veils 
His  providences  in  order  that,  unable  to  foresee  the  future, 
we  may  learn  to  put  our  trust  in  Him  rather  than  in  any 
earthly  good  (v.  14).  It  therefore  behoves  a  man  whose 
heart  has  been  bettered  by  much  meditation  and  by  the 
reproofs  of  the  wise,  to  take  both  crooked  and  straiglit,both 
evil  and  good,  from  the  hand  of  God,  and  to  trust  in  Him 
whatever  may  befal. 

So  far,  I  think,  we  shall  foUow  and  assent  to  this  theory  The  Perils  to  which  it 
of  human  life  ;  our  sympathies  will  go  with  the  man  who  exposes  him. 
seeks  to  acquire  a  good  name,  to  grow  wise,  to  stand  in  the  chnp.  vii.,  v.  i-5,  to 
Golden  IMean.    But  when  he  proceeds  to  apply  his  theory,  ^'"''P'  ^"^•' ''•  ^^' 

13 


194  THE  QUEST  Chap.  VII.  \.  15,  to 

to  deduce  practical  rules  from  it,  we  can  only  give  him  a 
qualified  assent,  nay,  must  often  altogether  withhold  our 
assent.  The  main  conclusion  he  draws  is,  indeed,  quite 
unobjectionable  :  it  is,  that  in  action,  as  well  as  in  opinion, 
we  should  avoid  excess,  that  we  should  keep  the  happy 
medium  between  intemperance  and  indiiference. 
He  is  likely  to  com-  But  the  vciy  first  moral  he  infers  from  this  conclusion 

promise  Conscience  :        -g    ^^^^^  ^^  ^|^g  ^^^^  ggj.-Q^g  objection.      Hb   haS   Seen   both 

Chup.  VII..  vv.  15—20.  the  righteous  die  in  his  righteousness  without  receiving 
any  reward  from  it,  and  the  wicked  live  long  in  his 
wickedness  to  enjoy  his  ill-gotten  gains.  And  from  these 
two  mysterious  facts  he  infers,  that  a  prudent  man  will 
neither  be  very  righteous,  since  he  will  gain  nothing  by 
that,  but  will  lose  the  friendship  of  those  who  are  content 
with  the  current  morality ;  nor  be  very  wicked  since, 
though  he  may  lose  little  by  this  so  long  as  he  lives,  he 
will  very  surely  hasten  his  death  (w.  16,  17).  It  is  the 
part  of  prudence  to  lay  hold  on  both  ;  to  permit  a  tempe- 
rate enjoyment  of  both  virtue  and  vice,  carrying  neither  to 
excess  (v.  18).  In  this  temperance  there  lies  a  strength 
greater  than  that  of  an  army  in  a  beleagured  city ;  for  no 
righteous  man  is  wholly  righteous  (vv.  19,  20) ;  to  aim  at 
so  lofty  an  ideal  will  be  to  attempt  "  to  wind  ourselves  too 
high  for  sinful  man  below  the  sky:"  we  shall  only  fail  if 
we  make  the  attempt ;  we  shall  be  grievously  disappointed 
if  we  expect  other  men  to  succeed  wliere  we  have  failed  ;  we 
shall  lose  faith  in  them  and  in  ourselves  we  shall  suffer 


Chap.  VII.  v.  22.  IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN.  195 

many  pangs  of  shame  and  remorse  and  defeated  hope :  and 
tliercfore  it  is  Letter  at  once  to  make  up  our  minds  tliat  we 
are,  and  need  he,  no  Letter  than  our  neighhours  ;  that  wc 
are  not  to  blame  ourselves  for  customary  and  occasional 
slips  ;  that,  if  we  are  but  moderate,  we  may  lay  one  hand 
on  righteousness  and  the  other  on  wickedness.  A  most 
immoral  moral,  though  it  is  as  popular  to-day  as  it 
ever  was. 

The  second  rule  which  this  temperate  Monitor  infers  To  be  indiffcrcut  t« 
from  his  general  theory  is,  That  we  are  not  to  be  over-  ^''^"^'^r''  = 
much  troubled  by  what  people  say  about  us.  Servants  are  chap.vil.  vv.21  22. 
adduced  as  an  illustration,  partly,  no  doubt,  because  they 
are  commonly  acquainted  with  their  masters'  faults,  and 
partly  because  they  do  sometimes  speak  about  them. 
"  Let  them  speak,"  is  his  counsel,  "  and  don't  be  too 
anxious  to  know  what  they  say ;  you  may  be  sure  that 
they  will  say  of  you  pretty  much  what  you  often  say  of 
your  neighbours  or  superiors  ;  if  they  depreciate  you,  you 
depreciate  others,  and  you  can  hardly  expect  a  more  gene- 
rous treatment  than  you  give."  Now  if  this  moral  stood 
alone,  it  would  be  both  shrewd  and  wholesome.  But  it 
does  not  stand  alone :  and  in  its  connection  it  means,  I 
fear,  that  if  we  take  the  moderate  course  presciibed  by 
prudence ;  if  we  are  righteous  without  being  very  righteous, 
and  wicked  without  being  very  wicked,  and  our  neigh- 
bours should  begin  to  say,  "  He  is  hardly  so  good  as  he 
seems,"  or  "  I  could  tell  a  tale  of  him  an  if  I  would,"  we  are 

13* 


196  THE  QUEST  Chap.  VII.  v.  23,  to 

not  to  be  greatly  moved  by  "  auy  such  ambigous  givings 
out : "  we  are  not  to  be  overmuch  concerned  that  our  neigh- 
bours have  discovered  our  secret  slips,  since  we  have  often 
discovered  the  like  slips  in  them  and  know  very  well  that 
"  there  is  not  on  earth  a  righteous  man  who  doeth  good 
and  sinneth  not."  In  short,  as  we  are  not  be  too  hard  on 
ourselves  for  an  occasional  and  decorous  indulgence  in  vice, 
so  neither  are  we  to  be  very  much  vexed  by  the  censures 
which  neighbours  as  guilty  as  ourselves  pass  on  our 
conduct.  Taken  in  this  its  connected  sense,  the  moral  is 
as  immoral  as  that  which  preceded  it. 

Here,  indeed,  our  prudent  Monitor  drops  a  hint  that  he 
himself  is  hardly  content  with  a  theory  which  leads  to 
such  results.  He  has  tried  this  wisdom,  but  he  is  not 
altogether  satisfied  with  it.  He  desired  a  higher  wisdom — 
suspecting  that  there  must  be  a  nobler  theory  of  life  than 
this ;  but  it  was  too  far  away  for  him  to  reach,  too  deep  for 
him  to  fathom.  After  all  his  researches,  that  which  was 
far  off  remained  far  off,  deep  remained  deep :  he  could  not 
find  the  better  wisdom  he  sought  (vv.  23,  24).  And  so 
he  falls  back  on  the  wisdom  he  had  tried,  and  draws  a 
third  moral  lesson  from  it — which  lesson,  I  confess,  I  find 
it  somewhat  difficult  to  handle. 
To  despise  Women  :  It  is  said  of  au  English  cynio  that  when  any  friend  con- 

fessed himself  in  trouble  and  asked  his  advice,  his  first 
question  was,  "Who  is  she  ?" — taking  it  for  granted  that  a 
woman  must  be  at  the  bottom  of  the  mischief.     And  the 


(•hiip.VII.,VA'.2.5-29. 


Chap.  VII.  v.  28.  IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN.  197 


Ilobrew  cynic  appears  to  have  been  very  much  of  his  mind. 
Ho  cannot  but  see  tliat  the  best  of  men  sin  sometimes,  that 
even  the  most  temperate  are  hurried  into  excesses  which 
their  prudence  condemns.  And  when  he  turns  to  discover 
what  it  is  tliat  bewitches  them,  he  can  find  no  other  sohi- 
tion  of  the  mystery  than — Woman.  Sweet  and  pleasant 
as  she  seems,  she  is  "  more  bitter  than  death,"  her  heart  is 
a  snare,  her  hands  are  chains.  He  whom  God  loves  will 
escape  from  her  net  after  brief  captivity ;  only  the  fool  and 
the  sinner  are  held  fast  in  it  (vv.  25,  2G).  Nor  is  this  a 
hasty  conclusion.  Our  Hebrew  cynic  has  deliberately  gone 
out  with  the  lantern  of  his  wisdom  in  his  hand — surely  a 
dark  lantern  ! — to  search  for  an  honest  man  and  an  honest 
woman.  He  has  been  scrupidously  careful  in  his  search, 
"  taking  things,"  i.e.  indications  of  character,  "  one  by  one ;" 
but  though  he  has  found  one  honest  man  in  a  thousand,  he 
has  never  been  so  fortunate  as  to  light  on  an  honest  and 
good  woman  (vv.  27  28).  Was  not  the  fault  in  the  eyes 
of  the  seeker  rather  than  in  the  faces  into  which  he  peered  ? 
Perhaps  it  was.  It  would  be  to-day  and  here  ;  but  was  it 
there  and  on  that  far-distant  yesterday?  The  Orientals 
would  still  say  "No."  All  through  the  East,  from  the 
hour  in  which  Adam  cast  the  blame  of  his  transgression  on 
Eve  to  the  present  hour,  men  have  followed  the  example 
of  their  first  father.  Even  St.  Chrysostom,  who  shouhl 
have  known  better,  affirms  that  when  the  devil  took  from 
Job  all  that  he  had,  he  ilid  not  take  his  wife,  "  because  he 


198  THE  QUEST  Chaf.  VII.  v.  29,  to 


thought  she  would  greatly  help  him  to  conquer  that  saint 
of  God."  Mohammed  sings  in  the  same  key  with  the 
Christian  Father :  he  affirms  that  since  the  creation  of  the 
world  there  have  been  only  four  perfect  women,  though  it 
a  little  redeems  the  cynicism  of  Ms  speech  that,  of  these 
four  perfect  women,  one  was  his  wife  and  another  his 
daughter ;  for  the  good  easy  man  may  have  meant  a  com- 
pliment to  them  rather  than  an  insult  to  the  sex.  But  if 
there  be  any  truth  in  this  estimate,  if  in  the  East  the 
women  were  and  are  worse  than  the  men,  it  is  the  men 
who  have  made  them  what  they  are.  liobbed  of  their 
natural  dignity  and  use  as  helpmeets,  condemned  to  be 
mere  toys,  trained  only  to  minister  to  sense,  what  wonder 
if  they  have  fallen  below  their  due  place  and  honour?  Of 
all  cowardly  cynicisms,  that  surely  is  the  meanest  which, 
denying  women  any  chance  of  being  good,  condemns  them 
for  being  bad.  Our  Hebrew  cynic  seems  to  have  had 
some  faint  sense  of  his  unfairness ;  for  he  concludes  his 
tirade  against  the  sex  with  the  admission  that  "  God  made 
man  upright " — the  word  "  man "  here,  as  in  Genesis, 
standing  for  the  whole  race,  male  and  female — and  that  if 
all  women  and  nine  hundred  and  ninety- nine  men  out  of 
every  thousand  have  become  bad,  it  is  because  they  have 
degTaded  themselves  and  one  another  by  the  evil  "  devices 
they  have  sought  out "  (v.  29). 
AndtobeindiffDientto  The  fourth  and  last  rule  inferred  from  this  prudent 
Public  Wron^rs.  moderate  view  of  life  is,  That  we  are  to  submit  with  hope- 

Chap.VIII.,T^-.l  -13.  ^ 


Chap.  VIII.  v.  9.  IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN.  199 

fill  resignation  to  the  wrongs  which  spring  from  human 
tyranny  and  injustice.  Unclouded  by  gusts  of  passion,  tlie 
wise  temperate  Oriental  carries  a  "  bright  countenance  " 
to  the  king's  divan.  Though  tlic  king  should  rate  him 
with  "  evil  words,"  he  will  remember  his  "  oath  of  fealty," 
and  not  rise  up  in  resentment,  still  less  rush  out  in  open 
revolt.  He  knows  that  the  word  of  a  king  is  potent ; 
that  it  will  be  of  no  use  to  show  a  hot  mutinous  temper ; 
that  by  a  meek  endurance  of  wrath  he  may  allay  it  or 
avert  it.  He  knows,  too,  that  obedience  and  submission  are 
not  likely  to  provoke  insult  and  contumely ;  and  that  if 
now  and  then  he  is  exposed  to  an  undeserved  shame,  any 
defence,  and  especially  an  angry  defence,  will  bat  damage 
his  cause  (chap.  viii.  vv.  I — 5).  Moreover,  a  man  who 
keeps  himself  cool  and  will  not  permit  anger  to  blind  him 
may,  in  the  worst  event,  foresee  that  a  time  of  retribution 
will  surely  come  on  the  king  or  satrap  who  is  habitually 
unjust ;  that  the  people  will  revolt  from  him  and  exact 
heavy  penalties  for  the  wrongs  they  have  endured ;  that 
death,  "  that  fell  arrest  without  all  bail,"  will  carry  him 
awny.  He  can  see  that  time  of  retribution  drawing  nigh 
altliough  the  tyrant,  fooled  by  impunity,  is  not  aware  of  its 
approach  :  he  can  also  see  that  when  it  comes  it  will  be  as 
a  war  in  which  no  furlough  is  granted  and  whose  disastrous 
close  no  craft  can  evade.  All  this  execution  of  long- delayed 
justice  he  has  seen  again  and  again  ;  and  tlierefore  he  will 
not  suffer  his  resentment  to  hurry  him  into   dangerous 


200 


THE  QUEST 


Chap.  VIII.  v.  10,  to 


The  Proachor  con- 
doiiins  this  Thoory  of 
Human  Lifo,  and 
declares  the  Quest  to 
be  still  unattiiincJ. 

Chap.  VI TT., 

YV.  11,  1.). 


courses,  but  will  calmly  await  the  action  of  those  social 
laws  which  compel  every  man  to  reap  the  due  reward  of  his 
deeds  (vv.  5 — 0). 

Nevertheless,  he  has  also  seen  times  in  which  retribution 
did  not  overtake  the  oppressors ;  times  even  when,  in  the 
person  of  children  as  wicked  and  tyrannical  as  themselves, 
they  "  came  again  "  to  renew  tlieir  injustice,  and  to  blot 
out  the  very  memory  of  the  righteous  from  the  earth 
(v.  10).  And  such  times  have  no  more  disastrous  result 
than  this,  that  they  undermine  faith  and  subvert  morality. 
Men  see  that  no  immediate  sentence  is  given  against  the 
wicked,  that  they  live  long  in  their  wickedness  and  beget 
children  to  perpetuate  it ;  and  the  very  faith  of  tlie  good  in 
the  over-ruling  providence  of  God  is  shaken  and  strained, 
while  the  vast  majority  of  men  set  themselves  to  do  the 
evil  which  flaunts  its  triiunphs  before  their  eyes  (v.  1 1 ). 
None  the  less,  the  Preacher  is  quite  sure  that  it  is  the  part 
of  wisdom  to  trust  in  the  laws  and  look  for  the  judgments 
of  God ;  he  is  quite  sure  that  the  triumph  of  the  wicked 
will  soon  pass,  while  that  of  the  good  will  endure 
(vv.  12,  13)  :  and  therefore,  as  a  man  of  prudent  forecast- 
ing spirit,  he  will  submit  to  injustice,  but  not  inflict  it,  or 
at  least  not  carry  it  to  any  dangerous  excess. 

Now  tliis  is  by  no  means  a  noble  or  lofty  view  of  human 
life ;  the  line  of  conduct  it  prescribes  is  often,  as  we  have 
seen,  as  immoral  as  it  is  ignoble  :  and  we  may  feel  some 
natural  surprise  at  hearing  counsels  so  base  from  the  lips 


CiiAr.  VIII.  V.  1.',.  IN  TIIK  GOLDEN  MEAN.  201 


of  the  inspired  Hebrew  Preacher.  But  we  ought  to  know 
liiin  and  his  method  of  instruction  well  enough  by  thi.s 
time  to  be  very  sure  that  he  is  at  least  as  sensible  of  their 
baseness  as  we  can  be  ;  that  he  is  here  speaking  to  us,  not 
in  his  own  person,  but  dramatically,  and  from  the  lips  of 
tlie  man  who,  that  he  may  secure  a  good  name  and  a  com- 
fortable position,  is  disposed  to  accommodate  himself  to 
the  current  maxims  of  his  time  and  company.  If  we  ever 
had  any  doubt  on  that  point,  it  is  set  at  rest  by  the  closing 
verses  of  this  Third  Section  of  the  Book.  For  in  these  the 
Preacher  lowers  his  mask  and  tells  us  plainly  that  we  can- 
not and  must  not  rest  in  the  theory  he  has  just  expounded, 
that  to  follow  its  counsels  will  lead  us  away  from  the  Chief 
Good,  not  toward  it.  More  than  once  he  has  already 
hinted  to  us  that  this  wisdom  is  not  the  highest  wisdom : 
and  now  he  avows  that  he  is  as  unsatisfied  as  ever,  as  far 
as  ever  from  ending  his  Quest ;  that  his  last  key  will  not 
unlock  the  mysteries  of  life  which  have  perplexed  him 
from  the  first.  He  still  holds,  indeed,  that  it  is  better  to 
be  righteous  than  to  be  wicked  ;  though  he  now  sees  that 
even  the  prudently  righteous  often  have  a  wage  like  that  of 
the  wicked,  and  that  the  prudently  wicked  often  have  a 
wage  like  that  of  the  righteous  (v.  14).  This  new  theory  of 
life,  therefore,  he  confesses  to  be  "a  vanity  "  as  great  and 
deceptive  as  any  of  those  he  has  liitherto  tried.  And  as 
even  yet  it  does  suit  his  purpose  to  give  us  his  true  theory 
and   announce  his  final  conclusion,  he  falls  back  on  the 


202  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 


conclusion  we  have  so  often  lieard,  that  the  best  thing  a  man 
can  do  is  to  eat  and  to  drink,  and  to  carry  a  clear  enjoying 
temper  through  all  the  days  and  all  the  tasks  which  God 
giveth  him  under  the  sun  (v.  15).  How  this  familiar  con- 
clusion fits  into  his  final  conclusion,  and  is  part  of 
it,  though  not  the  whole,  we  shall  see  in  our  study  of  the 
next  and  last  Section  of  the  Book. 

II. — If,  as  poet  Milton  sings, 

To  know 
That  wliicli  before  us  lies  in  daily  life 
Is  tlie  prime  wisdom, 

we  are  surely  much  indebted  to  the  Hebrew  Preacher. 
He  at  least  does  not  "sit  on  a  hill  apart"  discussing  fate, 
freewill,  foreknowledge  absolute,  or  any  such  lofty  abstruse 
themes.  He  walks  with  us  in  the  common  round,  to  the 
daily  task,  and  talks  to  us  of  that  which  lies  before  us  in 
our  daily  life.  Nor  does  he  speak  as  one  raised  high 
above  the  folly  and  weakness  by  which  we  are  constantly 
betrayed.  He  has  trodden  the  very  paths  we  tread.  He 
shares  our  craving  and  has  pursued  our  quest  after  "  that 
which  is  good."  He  has  been  misled  by  the  illusions  by 
which  we  are  beguiled.  And  his  chief  aim  is  to  save  us 
from  fruitless  researches  and  defeated  hopes  by  placing  his 
experience  at  our  command.  He  speaks  therefore  to  our 
real  need,  and  speaks  with  a  cordial  sympathy  which 
makes  his  counsel  very  welcome. 


IN    WEALTH.  203 


We  are  so  made  that  we  can  find  no  rest  until  we  find  a 
Supreme  Good — a  good  which  will  satisfy  all  our  faculties, 
all  our  passions,  all  our  aspirations.     For  that  we  search 
with  an  unconquerable  ardour;   hut   our   ardour   is   not 
always  under  law  to  wisdom.     We  often  suppose  that  we 
have  reached  our  Chief  Good  while  it  is  still  far  off,  or  that 
at  least  we  are  looking  for  it  in  the  right  direction  when 
in  truth  we  have  turned  our  back  upon  it.     Sometimes  we 
seek  for  it  in  wisdom,  sometimes  in  pleasure,  sometimes  in 
fervent  devotion   to  secular  affairs;   sometimes   in   love, 
sometimes  in  wealth,  and  sometimes  in  a  modest  yet  com- 
petent provision  for  our  future  wants.     And  if,  when  we 
acquire  our  special  good,  we  find  that  our  hearts  are  still 
craving  and  restless,  still  hungering  for  a  larger  good,  we 
are  apt  to  tliink  that  if  we  had  a  little  more  of  that  which 
so  far  has  disappointed  us — if  we  were  somewhat  wiser, 
or  our  pleasures  were  more  varied  ;  if  we  had  a  little  more 
love  or  a  larger  estate — all  would  be  well  with  us  and  we 
should  be  at  peace.     Perhaps  in  time  we  get  our  "  little 
more,"  but  stiU  our  hearts  do  not  cry  "  Hold,  enough  ! " 
— enough  being  always  a  little  more  than  we  have  ;  till  at 
last,  weary  and  disappointed  in  our  quest,  we  begin  to  des- 
pair of  ourselves  and  distrust  the  kindness  of  God.     "  If 
God  be  good,"  we  ask,   "  why  has  He  made  us   tlius — 
always  seeking  yet  never  finding,  urged  on  by  imperious 
appetites   which   are   never  satisfied,  impelled   by  hopes 
which  for  ever  elude  our  grasp  ? "    And  because  we  cannot 


201  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

answer  the  question,  we  cry  out  "  Vanity  of  vanities  !  all 
is  vanity  and  vexation  of  spirit ! "  "  Ah,  no,"  replies  the 
kindly  Preacher  who  has  himself  known  this  despairing 
distrust  and  surmounted  it :  "  no,  all  is  not  vanity.  There 
is  a  Chief  Good,  a  satisfying  good,  although  you  have  not 
found  it  yet ;  and  you  have  not  found  it  because  you  have 
not  looked  for  it  in  the  right  direction.  Once  take  the 
right  path  and  you  will  find  a  Good  which  will  make  all 
else  good  to  you,  a  Good  which  will  lend  a  new  value  and 
a  new  sweetness  to  your  wisdom  and  mirth,  your  labour 
and  your  gain."  But  men  are  very  slow  to  believe  that 
they  have  wasted  their  time  and  strength,  that  they  have 
mistaken  their  path  ;  they  are  reluctant  to  believe  that  a 
little  more  of  that  of  which  they  have  already  acquired 
so  much,  and  which  they  have  always  held  to  be  best, 
will  not  yield  them  the  satisfaction  they  seek.  And  there- 
fore the  wise  Preacher,  instead  of  telling  us  at  once  where 
the  true  Good  is  to  be  found,  takes  much  pains  to  convince 
us  that  it  is  not  to  be  found  where  we  have  been  wont  to 
seek  it.  He  places  before  us  a  man  of  the  largest  wisdom, 
whose  pleasures  were  exquisitely  varied  and  combined,  a 
man  whose  devotion  to  affairs  was  the  most  perfect  and 
successful,  a  man  of  imperial  nature  and  wealth,  and 
whose  heart  had  glow^ed  with  all  the  fervours  of  love :  and 
this  man,  so  rarely  gifted  and  of  such  ample  conditions, 
confesses  that  he  could  not  find  the  Chief  Good  in  any  one 
of  the  directions  in  which  we  commonly  seek  it,  although 


IN  WEALTH.  205 


he  had  travelled  farther  in  every  direction  than  we  can 
hope  to  go.  If  we  are  of  a  rational  temper,  if  we  are  open 
to  argument  and  persuasion,  if  we  are  not  resolved  to  buy 
our  own  experience  at  a  heavy,  perhaps  a  ruinous,  cost, 
how  can  we  but  accept  the  wise  Hebrew's  counsel,  and 
cease  to  look  for  the  satisfying  Good  in  quarters  in  which 
he  assures  us  it  is  not  to  be  found  ? 

We  have  already  considered  the  several  stages  of  his 
argument  as  it  bore  on  the  men  of  his  time.  We  have  now 
to  mark  its  application  to  our  own  age.  As  his  custom  is, 
the  Treacher  does  not  develop  his  argiunent  in  open 
logical  sequence;  he  does  not  write  a  moral  essay,  but 
paints  us  a  dramatic  picture. 

1.  He  depicts  a  man  who  trusts  in  riches,  who  honestly  The  Quest  in  maith. 
believes  that  wealth  is  the  Chief  Good,  or,  at  lowest,  the  cintp.  vi. 
way  to  it.     This  man  has  laboured  prudently  and  dex- 
terously to  acquire  affluence  ;  and  he  has  acquired  it.  Like 
the  rich  man  of  the  Parable,  he  has  much  goods,  and  barns 
that  grow  fuller  as  fast  as  they  grow  bigger.     "  God  has 
given  him  riches  and  wealth  and  abundance,  so  that  his 
soul " — not    having  learned  how   to   look   for   anything 
hi'dier — "  lacks  nothinfr  of  all  that  it  desireth."     He  has 
reached  liis  aim,  then,  acquired  what  he  holds  to  be  good. 
Can  he  not  be  content  with  it  ?     No  :  for  though  he  bids  Jj^^^Js'il't-hief^^^d 
his  soul  make  meiTy  and  be  glad,  it  obstinately  refuses  to  is  ii'«unt.vi  i.y  Fears 
obey.     It  is  darkened  with  perplexities,  haunted  by  vague   c'Lup.  vi.,  w.  i— g. 


206  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

longings,  fretted  and  stung  with  perpetual  care.  Now  that 
he  has  his  riches,  he  goes  in  dread  lest  he  should  lose 
them;  he  is  unable  to  decide  how  he  may  best  employ  them, 
or  how  to  dispose  of  them  when  he  will  liave  to  leave 
them.  God  has  given  them  to  him :  but  he  does  not 
admit  that  they  are  the  gift  of  God ;  or,  if  he  does,  he 
cannot  trust  God  with  them,  lie  has  no  doubt  that  God 
did  very  wisely  in  giving  them  to  him ;  but  he  is  not  at  all 
sure  that  God  will  show  an  equal  wisdom  in  giving  them 
to  some  one  else  when  he  is  gone.  And  so  the  poor  rich 
man  sits  steeped  in  wealth  up  to  his  chin — up  to  his  chin, 
but  not  up  to  his  lips,  for  he  has  no  "  power  to  enjoy  "  it. 
Burdened  with  jealous  care,  he  grudges  that  others  should 
share  what  he  cannot  enjoy,  grudges  above  all  that,  when 
he  is  dead,  another  should  possess  what  has  been  of  so 
little  comfort  to  him.  "  If  thou  art  rich,"  says  Shakes- 
peare, 

thou  art  poor ; 
For,  like  an  ass  whose  back  with  ingots  bows, 
Thou  bcarcst  thy  heavy  riches  but  a  journey, 
Aud  Death  unloads  thee. 

But  our  rich  man  is  not  only  like  an  ass ;  he  is  even 
more  stupid  than  an  ass  :  for  the  ass  would  not  have  his 
back  bent  even  with  golden  ingots  if  he  could  help  it,  and 
is  only  too  thankful  when  the  burden  is  lifted  from  his 
back  ;  while  the  rich  man  not  only  ivill  plod  on  beneath 
his  heavy  load,  but  in  his  dread  of  being  unladen  at  tlie 


IN  WEALTH.  207 


journey's  end  imposes  on  himself  a  burden  heavier  than 
all  his  ingots,  and  will  hear  that  as  well  as  his  gold,  lie 
creeps  along  beneath  his  double  load,  and  brays  quite 
pitifully  if  you  so  much  as  put  out  a  hand  to  ease  him. 

It  is  not  of  much  use,  perhaps,  to  argue  with  one  so  Much  that  ho  pains 

1     1        i.   i.        ouly  feeds  Vanitv. 

besotted  :  but  lest  we  should  slip  into  his  degraded  estate, 
the  Preacher  points  out  for  our  instruction  the  sources  of     "'i'' 
his  disquiet,  and  shows  why  it  is  impossible  that  he  should 
know  content.     Among  other  sources  of  disquiet  he  notes 
three.     (1.)  That  "  there  are  many  things  which  increase 
vanity : "  that  is  to  say,  many  of  the  acquisitions  of  the 
ricli   man   only  augment  his   pomp  and   outward   state. 
Beyond  a  certain  point  he  cannot  possibly  enjoy  the  good 
things  he  possesses ;  he  cannot,  for  instance,  live  in  all  his 
costly  mansions  at  once,  nor  eat  and  drink  all  the  sump- 
tuous  fare   daily  set  on   his  table,  nor  carry  his  whole 
wardrobe  on  his  back.     He  is  hampered  with  superfluities 
which  breed  care  but  yield  him  no  comfort.     And  as  he 
grudges  that  others  shoidd  enjoy  them,  all  this  abundance, 
all  that  goes  beyoml  his  personal  gratification,  so  far  from 
being  an  "  advantage "  to  him,  is  only  a  burden  and  a 
torment.     (2.)  Another  source  of  disquiet  is,  that  no  man,  iio  cannot  tell  what  it 
not  even  lie,  "can  tell  what  is  good  for  man  in  life,"  what  -^H^be  Good  fur  him  to 
will  be  really  helpful  and  pleasant  to  him.    ^Many  things  ^       ^.^  ^.  ^^ 
which  attract  desire  pall  upon  the  taste.     And  as  "  the 
day  of  our  vain  life  is  brief,"  gone  "  like  a  shadow,"  he  may 
Hit  away  before  he  has  had  a  chance  of  using  much  that 


208  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

Nor  foresee  what  will    he  has  laboriously  acquired.  (3.)  And  a  third  source  of  dis- 

bccoino  of  liis  Giiins :  •   i.  •      L^     i.  L^  i         i.i  i  i.  i 

quiet  IS,  tliat  the  more  a  mau  has  the  more  he  must  leave : 
ciiup.  \  .,  \.  -.  ^^j  ^Yio^^  is  a  fact  which  cuts  him  two  ways,  with  a  keen 

double  edge.  For  the  more  he  has  the  less  he  likes  leaving 
it ;  and  the  more  he  has  the  more  is  he  puzzled  how  to 
leave  it.  He  cannot  tell  "  what  shall  be  after  him,"  and 
so  he  makes  one  will  to-day  and  another  to-morrow,  and 
very  likely  dies  intestate  after  all. 

Is  not  that  a  true  picture,  a  picture  true  to  life  ? 
Thackeray,  our  English  Ecclesiast,  tells  us  how  one  of  our 
wealthiest  peers  once  complained  to  him  that  he  was  never 
so  happy  and  well-served  as  when  he  was  a  bachelor  in 
chambers ;  that  his  splendid  mansion  was  a  dreary  solitude 
to  him,  and  the  long  train  of  domestics  his  masters  rather 
than  his  servants.  More  than  once  he  depicts  the  man  of 
immense  fortune  and  estate  as  so  occupied  in  learning  and 
discharging  the  heavy  duties  of  property,  so  tied  and 
hampered  by  the  thought  of  what  was  expected  of  his 
position,  as  to  fret  under  a  constant  weiglit  of  care  and  to 
lose  all  the  sweet  uses  of  life.  And  have  not  we  ourselves 
known  men  who  have  grown  more  penurious  as  they  have 
grown  richer,  more  unable  to  decide  what  it  would  be  really 
good  or  even  pleasant  for  them  to  do,  more  and  more 
anxious  as  to  how  they  should  devise  their  abundance  ? 
Even  as  I  speak*  the  Scotch  papers  are  busy  with  the 

*  Jauuary,  18G7. 


IN  WEALTH.  209 


story  of  a  millionaire,  the  close  of  which  is  so  dramatic  as 
to  touch  the  dullest  imagination.     This  rich  man  was  in 
the  act  of  signing  a  cheque  for  £10,000  when  he  was  struck 
with  the  paralysis  from  which  he  never  recovered ;  and  the 
cheque  with  its  unfinished  signature  was  found  on  liis 
table  after  his  death.     For  forty  years,  it  is  said,  he  had 
not  been  inside  a  place  of  worship,  and  had  had  scarcely 
any  friendly  intercourse  with  his  kind.    His  chief  pleasure 
seems  to  have  consisted  in  adding  to  a  fortune  already 
immense,  and  to  save  a  sixpence  he  would  wrangle  like  a 
scold.    Too  grasping  to  enjoy  his  wealth,  he  was  too  shrewd 
to  share  the  miser's  meagre  but  intense  passion.     He  used 
to  say  of  himself,  "  I  am  a  poor  rich  man,  burdened  with 
money ;  but  I  have  nothing  else."     And  when  compelled 
to  part  with  his  burden,  on  Ms  dying  bed,  he  left  more 
than  half  a  miUion  to  a  hundred  persons  who  had  known 
little  or  nothing  of  him  while  he  lived ;  and  nearly  half  a 
million   more   to   the  charities  of  the  Church  he  never 
entered.     He  found  that  "there  are  many  things  which 
increase   vanity ; "   that  he   coidd   not   decide   "  what  it 
would  be  good "  for   him  to   do   and  have  ;  and  as  he 
"  could  not  tell  what  would  be  after  him,"  he  has  left  large 
bequests  which  in  aU  probability  will  do  as  much  harm  as 
good.     Grocers,  masons,  day-labourers,  fish-liawkers,  and 
the  poor  relatives  whom  he  remembered  only  as  he  died, 
are  now  the  richer  for  his  death  by  many  thousands  ;  and, 
raised  from  poverty  to  sudden  wcaltb,  arc  only  too  likely 

14 


210  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

to  travel  in  the  direction  whicli  beggars  set  on  horseback 
commonly  take. 
And  bocause  God  has         j^^t  the  Hebrew  Preacher  is  not  content  to  give  ns  an 

put  Etcraity  into  his  .  p     i       tt    i     ■»  r  i  i  •  i       -i  • 

Heart  he  cannot  bo  accuratc  pictnrc  01  the  Kich  Man  and  his  perplexities — a 
content >\athToniporai  picture  as  truc  to  the  life  now  as  it  was  then.  He  also 
points  out  how  it  is  that  the  lover  of  riches  came  to  be 
^"'"'' ^^"  "^'^'" '~"^°"  the  man  he  is,  and  why  he  can  never  lay  hold  on  the 
Supreme  Good.  "  All  the  labour  of  this  man  is  for  his 
-  mouth,"  for  the  senses  and  for  those  faculties  and  affections 
which  hold  by  sense ;  and  therefore,  however  prosperous 
the  issue  to  which  his  labours  conduct,  "yet  his  soul 
cannot  be  satisfied."  For  the  soul  is  not  fed  by  that  which 
feeds  the  sense.  God  has  "  put  eternity "  into  it.  It 
craves  an  eternal  sustenance.  It  cannot  rest  until  it  gains 
access  to  "  the  living  water,"  and  "  the  meat  which 
endureth,"  and  the  good  "wine  of  the  kingdom."  A  beast 
— if  indeed  beasts  have  no  souls,  which  I  neither  deny  nor 
admit — may  be  content  if  only  his  outward  conditions  be 
comfortable ;  but  a  man,  simply  because  lie  is  a  man,  must 
have  a  happy  inward  life  before  he  can  be  content.  His 
thirst  and  hunger  after  righteousness  must  be  satisfied.  He 
must  know  that,  when  flesh  and  heart  fail  him,  he  will  be 
received  into  an  everlasting  habitation.  He  must  have  a 
treasure  which  the  moth  cannot  corrupt  nor  the  thief  filch 
from  him.  We  cannot  escape  our  nature  if  we  would,  any 
more  than  we  can  jump  off  of  our  shadow  ;  and  our  very 
nature  cries  out  for  an  immortal  good.    Hence  it  is  that  the 


IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN.  211 


rich  man  who  trusts  in  his  riches,  and  not  in  the  God  who 
gave  him  riches,  carries  within  him  a  Imiigry  craving  soul. 
Hence  it  is  that  all  who  trust  in  riches  and  hold  them  to  be 
the  Chief  Good  are  restless  and  unsatisfied.  For,  as  the 
l*reacher  reminds  us,  it  is  very  true  both  that  the  rich  man 
may  not  be  a  fool,  and  that  the  poor  man  may  trust  in 
riches  just  as  heartily  as  the  wealthiest  magnate.  By 
virtue  of  his  wisdom,  the  wise  rich  man  may  so  vary  and 
combine  the  good  things  of  this  life  as  to  win  from  them  a 
gratification  denied  to  the  sot  whose  sordid  heart  is  set  on 
gold  ;  and  the  poor  man,  because  he  has  few  of  the  enjoy- 
ments of  wealth,  may  snatch  at  the  few  which  come  in  his 
way  with  vivid  eager  delight.  Both  may  "  enjoy  the  good 
they  have  "  rather  than  "  crave  a  good  beyond  tlieir  reach:" 
but  if  they  mistake  that  good  for  the  Supreme  Good, 
neither  their  poverty  nor  their  wisdom  will  save  them  from 
the  misery  of  disappointed  hopes.  For  they  too  have  souls 
— are  souls ;  and  the  soul  is  not  to  be  satisfied  with  that 
wliich  goes  in  at  the  mouth.  Wise  or  foolish,  rich  or 
poor,  whosoever  trusts  in  riches  is  either  like  the  ass 
whose  back  is  bent  with  a  weight  of  gold,  or  he  is  worse 
than  the  ass  and  longs  to  take  a  burden  on  his  back  from 
which  only  Death  can  unlade  him. 

2.  But  now  to  come  closer  home,  to  draw  nearer  to  that  xhe  Quest  in  the 
prime   wisdom    which   consists   in   knowing   that  which  <^'^i(i<»  Mean. 
before  us  lies  in  daily  life,  let  us  glance  at  the  ]\lan  who  chap.  vii.  v.  i. 
aims  to  stand  in  the  Golden  Mean  :  the  man  who  does  not  ^'^-'J'-  ^'^^^-  "^^  ^•^■ 

14*^ 


212  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

aspire  to  heap  up  a  great  fortune,  but  to  secure  a  modest 
Competence.    He  is  more  on  our  own  level.    For  our  trust 
in  riches  is,  for  the  most  part,  modified  by  other  trusts.    If 
we  believe  in  Gold,  we  also  believe  in  Wisdom  and  in 
Mirth ;  if  we  labour  to  provide  for  the  future,  we  also  wish 
to  use  and  enjoy  the  present.     We  think  it  well  that  we 
should  know  something  of  the  world  about  us,  and  take 
some  pleasure  in  our  life.    We  think  that  to  put  money  in 
our  purse  should  not  be  our  only  aim,  though  it  should 
be  a  leading  aim.     We  admit  that  "  the  love  of  money  is  a 
root  of  all  evil " — one  of  the  roots  from  which  all  forms 
and  kinds  of  evil  may  blossom  out :  and  to  save  ourselves 
from  falling  into  that  base  lust,  we  limit  our  desires.     We 
shall  be  content  if  we  can  put  by  a  moderate  sum,  and 
we  flatter  ourselves  that  we  desire  even  that  not  for  its 
own  sake,  but  for  the  means  of  knowledge  or  service  or 
innocent    enjoyment    with    which    it    will    furnish    us. 
"  Nothing  I  should  like  better,"  says  many  a  man,  "  than 
to  retire  from  business  so  soon  as  I  have  enough  to  live 
upon  and  to  devote  myself  to  this  branch  of  study  or  that 
province  of  art,  or  to  take  my  share  of  public  duties  or 
give  myself  to  a  cheerful  domestic  life."     It  speaks  well 
for  our  time,  I  think,  that  while  in  the  larger  cities  of  tlie 
Empire  there  are  still  many  in  haste  to  be  rich  and  very 
rich,  in  hundreds  of  provincial  towns  there  are  thousands 
of  men  who  feel  that  Wealth  is  not  the  Chief  Good,  and 
who  do  not  care  to  wear  the  livery  of  Mammon  till  they 


IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN.  213 

don  the  shroud.  Nevertheless,  though  their  aim  he  "  most 
sweet  and  commendahle,"  it  has  perils  of  its  own — im- 
minent and  deadly  perils  which  few  of  us  altogether 
escape.  And  these  perils  are  clearly  set  before  us  in  the 
sketch  of  the  Hebrew  Preacher.  As  I  reproduce  that  sketch, 
suffer  me,  for  the  sake  of  brevity,  while  carefully  retaining 
the  antique  outlines,  to  fill  in  with  modern  details. 

Suppose  a  yomig  man  to  start  in  life,  then,  with  this  The  Muthod  ..f  iho 
theory,  this  plan,  this  aim  distinctly  before  him  : — He  is  ^^'|"  i^.tent-r 
to  be  ruled  by  prudence  and  plain  common  sense.     He    .  ^    yjj 
will  try  to  stand  well  with  the  world,  and  to  make  a  mode-  w.  i— u. 
rate  provision  for  future  wants.     This  aim  will  beget  a 
certain  temperance  of  thought  and  action.    He  will  permit 
himself  no  extravagances — no  wandering  out  of  bounds, 
and  perhaps  no  enthusiasms,  for  he  wants  to  establish  "  a 
good  name,"  a  good  reputation,  which  shall  go  before  him 
like  "  a  sweet  perfume  "  and  dispose  mens'  hearts  toward 
him.     And  therefore  he  carries  a  sober  face,  frequents  the 
company  of  older  wiser  men,  is  grateful  for  any  hints  their 
experience  may  furnish,  and  takes  even  their  reproofs  with 
a  good  grace.     He  walks  in  the  beaten  paths,  knowing  the 
world  to  be  impatient  of  novelties.    The  wanton  mirtli  and 
crackling  laughter  of  fools  in  the  house  of  feasting  are  not 
for  him :  for  he  has  set  Mrs.  Grundy  always  before  his 
eyes,  and  his  fear  of  her  is  very  great.     He  is  not  to  be 
seduced   from   the   plain   prudent   course   which   he   has 
marked  out  for  hinisrlf  whether  by  inward  provocation  or 


214  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

outward  allurement.  If  he  is  a  young  lawyer,  he  will  write 
no  poetry,  attomies  having  a  horror  of  literary  men.  If  he 
is  a  young  doctor.  Homoeopathy,  Hydropathy,  and  all  new 
schemes  of  medicine  will  disclose  their  charms  to  him  in 
vain.  If  he  is  a  young  clergyman,  he  will  he  conspicuous 
for  his  orthodoxy,  and  for  his  emphatic  assent  to  all  that 
the  leaders  of  opinion  in  the  Church  think  or  may  think 
If  he  is  a  young  merchant  or  manufacturer,  he  will  be  no 
breeder  of  costly  patents  and  inventions,  but  will  be  among 
the  first  to  profit  by  them  when  they  are  found  to  pay.  If 
he  is  a  young  mechanic,  he  will  join  his  Trade-Union,  be 
regular  with  his  subscription  and  punctual  in  his  observ- 
ance of  its  decisions.  Whatever  he  may  be,  he  will  not  be 
of  those  who  try  to  make  crooked  things  strait  and  rough 
places  plain,  and  thus  to  accelerate  the  progress  of  man. 
He  wants  to  get  on  :  and  the  best  way  to  get  on  is  to  keep 
the  beaten  path  and  push  forward  in  that.  And  he  will 
be  patient — not  throwing  up  his  game  because  for  a  time 
the  chances  go  against  him,  but  waiting  till  the  times 
mend  and  his  chances  improve.  So  far  as  he  can,  he 
will  keep  the  middle  of  the  stream,  that,  when  the  tide 
in  mens'  affairs  which  leads  on  to  fortune  sets  in,  he  may 
be  of  the  first  to  take  it  at  the  flood  and  sail  easily  on  to 
his  desired  haven. 

In  all  this  there  may  be  no  conscious  insincerity,  and  very 
little  that  deserves  censure.  For  all  young  men  are  not 
wise  with  the  highest  wisdom,  nor  original,  nor  brave  with 


IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN.  216 

the  courage  which  follows  Truth  in  scorn  of  consequence. 
And  our  young  man  may  not  be  dowered  with  the  love  of 
loves,  the  hate  of  hates,  the  scorn  of  scorns.  lie  may  Le 
of  a  nature  essentially  prudent  and  commonplace,  or 
training  and  habit  may  have  superinduced  a  second  nature. 
To  him  a  primrose  may  be  a  primrose  and  nothing  more : 
his  instinctive  thought  as  he  looks  at  it  may  be  how  he 
can  reproduce  its  colour  in  some  of  his  textures  or  extract 
a  saleable  perfume  from  its  nectared  cup :  he  may  even 
think  that  prinu'oses  are  a  mistake,  and  that  'tis  pity  they 
were  not  pot-herbs ;  or  he  may  think  that  he  shall  have 
plenty  of  time  to  gather  primroses  by-and-bye,  but  that  for 
the  present  he  must  be  content  to  pick  pot-herbs  for  the 
market.  In  his  way,  he  may  even  be  a  sincerely  religious 
man  ;  he  may  admit  that  both  prosperity  and  adversity  are 
of  God,  that  wo  must  take  patiently  whatever  He  may 
send  ;  and  he  may  heartily  desire  to  be  on  good  terms  with 
Him  who  alone  can  "  order  all  things  as  He  please." 

But  here  we  light  on  his  first  grave  peril :  for  he  will  T'lo  Tmis  to  which  it 
carry  his  temperance  into  his  religion,  and  he  may  subor- 
dinate even  that  to  his  desire  to  set  on.     Lookin<f  on  men  ^''^•'^p-  ^  ^^•'  ^-  ^^'  ^'^ 

^  ,    .  Chap.  VIII.,  V.  13. 

in  their  religious  aspect,  he  sees  that  they  are  divided  into 
two  classes,  the  righteous  and  the  wicked.  As  he  con- 
siders them,  he  concludes  that  on  the  wliole  the  righteous 
have  the  best  of  it,  that  godliness  is  real  gain.     lUit  he  soon  He  is  likely  to  com- 

1.  iii.i.i-r'i  1  1       •  iji  promise  Conscieuce  : 

discovers  that  tins  lirst  rougli  conclusion  needs  to  be  care- 
fully guarded.     For,  as  he  looks  on  men  more  closely,  he  t.iiai).vii.,vv.i.3-20. 


216  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

perceives  that  at  times  the  righteous  die  in  their  righteous- 
ness without  being  the  better  for  it,  and  the  wicked  live 
in  their  wickedness  without  being  the  worse  for  it.  He 
perceives  that,  while  the  very  wicked  die  before  their  time, 
tlie  very  righteous,  those  who  are  always  reaching  forth  to 
that  which  is  before  and  rising  to  new  heights  of  insight 
and  obedience,  are  "  forsaken  ;"  that  they  are  left  alone  in 
the  thinly-peopled  solitude  to  which  they  have  climbed, 
losing  the  sympathy  even  of  those  who  once  walked  with 
them.  Now,  these  are  facts ;  and  a  prudent  sensible  man 
tries  to  accept  facts,  and  to  adjust  himself  to  them,  even 
when  they  are  adverse  to  his  wishes  or  conclusions.  He 
does  not  want  to  be  left  alone,  nor  to  die  before  his  time. 
And  therefore,  taking  these  new  facts  into  account,  he  in- 
fers that  it  will  be  best  to  be  good  without  being  very 
good,  and  wicked  without  being  very  wicked.  Nay,  he  is 
disposed  to  believe  that  "  whoso  feareth  God,"  studying 
the  facts  of  His  providence  and  drawing  the  logical  infer- 
ence from  them,  "  will  lay  hold  of  both "  wickedness  and 
righteousness,  and  wiU  blend  them  in  that  proportion  which 
the  Divine  Providence  seems  to  favour.  But  here  Con- 
science protests,  urging  that  evil  can  never  be  good.  To 
pacify  it,  he  adduces  tlie  notorious  fact  that  "  there  is  not 
a  righteous  man  upon  earth  who  doeth  good,  and  sinneth 
not."  "  Conscience,"  he  says,  "  you  really  are  too  strict 
and  strait-laced,  too  hard  upon  a  poor  fellow  who  wants  to 
do  as  well  as  lie  can .     You  go  quite  too  far.     How  can  you 


IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN.  217 

expect  me  to  be  better  than  great  saints  and  men  after 
God's  own  heart  ? "  And  so,  with  a  wronged  and  pious 
air,  lie  turns  to  lay  one  hand  on  wickedness  and  another 
on  righteousness — quite  content  to  be  no  better  than  his 
neighbours  and  to  let  Conscience  sulk  herself  into  a 
sweeter  mood. 

Conscience  being   silenced.   Prudence  steps  in.     And  „°  °'°  '  ^'^^^ 

o  '  »  Censure  : 

Prudence  says,  "  People  will  talk.  They  will  take  note  of 
your  slips  and  tattle  about  them.  Unless  you  are  very  "  '^'  '^^^  ' 
very  careful,  you  will  damage  your  reputation ;  and  if  you 
damage  that,  how  can  you  hope  to  get  on  ?"  Now  as  the 
man  is  specially  devoted  to  Prudence,  and  has  found  her 
kind  mistress  and  useful  monitress  in  one,  he  is  at  first  a 
little  staggered  to  find  her  taking  part  against  him.  But 
he  soon  recovers  himself  and  replies,  "  Dear  Prudence,  you 
know  as  well  as  I  do  that  people  don't  like  a  man  to  be 
better  than  themselves.  Of  course  they  will  talk  if  they 
catch  me  tripping ;  but  I  do  not  mean  to  do  more  than 
trip,  and  a  man  who  trips  gains  ground  in  recovering  him- 
self and  goes  all  the  faster  for  a  while.  Besides  we  all 
trip  ;  some  fall  even.  And  I  talk  of  my  neighbours  just 
as  they  talk  of  me :  and  we  all  like  each  other  the  better 
for  being  birds  of  one  feather." 

At  this  Prudence  smiles,  and  stops  her  mouth.     But  To  dospiRo mmon : 
being  very  willing  to  assist  so  quick-witted  a  disciple,  she  Chap.  vii.  w.  20-20. 
presently  returns,  and  says,  "  Are  not  you  rather  a  long 
while  in  securing  your  little  Competence  ?    Is  there  no 


And  to  bo  inilifforcnt  to 
Public  Wrongs. 

Chap.  VIII. ,vv.  1—13. 


218  THE  QUEST  OF  THE  CHIEF  GOOD 

short  cut  to  it  ?  Why  not  take  a  wife  with  a  small  fortune 
of  her  own,  or  with  connections  who  could  help  you  on?" 
Now  the  man  not  being  a  bad  man,  but  a  man  who  would 
fain  be  good  so  far  as  he  knows  goodness,  is  somewhat 
taken  aback  by  such  a  suggestion  as  this.  He  thinks 
Prudence  must  be  growing  very  worldly  and  mercenary. 
He  says  within  himself,  "  Surely  love  should  be  sacred  ! 
A  man  should  not  prostitute  that  in  order  that  he  may  get 
on  !  If  I  marry  a  woman  simply  or  mainly  for  her  money, 
what  worse  degradation  can  I  inflict  on  her  or  on  myself  ? 
how  shall  I  be  better  than  those  old  Hebrews  and 
Orientals  who  held  women  only  as  a  toy  or  a  convenience  ? 
To  do  that,  would  be  to  make  a  snare  and  a  net  of  her — to 
degrade  her  from  her  true  place,  and  possibly  to  think  of 
her  as  even  worse  than  I  had  made  her."  Nevertheless, 
his  heart  being  very  much  set  on  securing  a  Competence, 
and  an  accident  of  the  sort  which  he  calls  "provi- 
dences" putting  a  foolish  woman  with  a  pocket-full  of 
money  in  his  way,  he  takes  both  the  counsel  of  Prudence 
and  a  wife  to  match. 

The  world,  we  may  be  sure,  thinks  none  the  worse  of 
him  for  that.  Once  more  he  has  proved  himself  a  man 
whose  eye  is  steadfastly  bent  on  "  the  main  chance  "  and 
who  knows  how  to  seize  occasions  as  they  rise.  But  he 
who  has  thiis  profaned  the  inner  sanctuary  of  his  own  soul, 
is  not  likely  to  be  sensitive  to  the  large  claims  of  public 
duty.     If  he  sees  oppression,  if  the  tyranny  of  a  man  or  a 


IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN.  219 

class  rises  to  a  height  which  calls  for  rebukeful  opposition, 
he  is  not  the  man  to  sacrifice  comfort  and  risk  property 
that  he  may  assail  iniquity  in  her  strong  places.  It  is  not 
such  men  as  he  who,  when  the  times  are  out  of  joint,  feel 
that  they  are  born  to  set  them  right.  Prudence  is  still  his 
guide,  and  Prudence  says,  "  Let  things  alone :  they  will 
right  themselves  in  time.  The  social  laws  will  avenge 
themselves,  heaping  retribution  on  the  head  of  the  oppressor 
and  delivering  the  oppressed.  You  can  do  little  to  hasten 
their  action.  AVliy  should  you  risk  so  much  to  gain  so 
little  ? "  And  the  man  is  content  to  sit  still  with  folded 
hands  when  every  hand  that  can  strike  a  blow  for  right  is 
wanted  in  the  strife  ;  and  can  even  quote  texts  of  Scrip- 
ture to  prove  that  in  "  quietness  and  confidence  "  in  the 
action  of  the  Divine  Laws  is  the  true  "  strength." 

Now  I  make  my  appeal  to  those  who  daily  enter  the  The  Preacher  con- 
world  of  business:   is  not  this  the  common  tone  of  that  j^Zni -70X^7 "'^ 
world  ?   are  not  these  the  very  perils  to  which  you   lie  declares  tho  Quest  to 
open  ?     How  often  have  you  heard  men  recount  the  sKps  ^^  •'^^'"  unattdned. 
of  the  righteous  in  order  to  justify  themselves  for  not  as-  Cbap.viii.  w.  14, 1.5. 
suming  to  be  righteous  overmuch  !     How  often  have  you 
heard  them  vindicate  their  own  occasional  errors  by  citing 
the  errors  of  those  who  give  greater  heed  to  religion  than 
they  do  !     How  often  have  you  heard  them  congratulate  a 
neighbour  on  having  had  the  good  luck  to  carry  off  an 
heiress,  and  speak  of  wedded  love  itself  as  a  mere  help  to 
worldly  advancement !     How  often  have  you  heard  them 


220  THE  QUEST  IN  THE  GOLDEN  MEAN. 


sneer  at  the  nonsensical  enthusiasm  which  has  led  certain 
men  to  throw  away  their  chances  in  life,  in  order  to  devote 
themselves  to  the  service  of  truth,  or  to  lose  popularity 
that  they  might  lead  a  forlorn  hope  against  customary 
wrongs,  and  thank  God  that  no  such  maggot  ever  bit  their 
brains?  If,  during  the  last  twenty  years,  since  I  too 
"  went  on  'Change,"  the  general  tone  has  not  risen  a  whole 
heaven,  I  know  that  you  must  daily  hear  such  things  as 
these,  and  worse  things  than  these ;  and  that  not  from 
irreligious  men  of  bad  character,  but  from  men  who  take  a 
fair  place  in  our  Christian  congregations.  From  the  time 
of  tlie  Wise  Preacher  to  the  present  hour,  this  sort  of  talk 
has  been  going  on,  and  the  scheme  of  life  from  which  it 
springs  has  been  stoutly  held.  There  is  the  more  need, 
therefore,  for  you  to  study  the  Preacher's  conclusion.  Por 
his  conclusion  is,  that  this  scheme  of  life  is  wholly  and 
irremediably  bad,  that  it  tends  to  make  a  man  a  coward 
and  a  slave,  that  it  cannot  satisfy  the  large  desires  of  the 
soul,  and  that  it  cheats  him  of  the  Chief  Good.  His  con- 
clusion is,  that  the  man  who  so  sets  his  heart  on  gaining 
even  a  Competence  that  he  cannot  be  content  without  it, 
has  no  genuine  trust  in  God,  since  he  is  willing  to  give  in 
to  immoral  maxims  and  customs,  in  order  to  secure  that 
which  he  thinks  will  make  him  largely  independent  of  the 
providence  of  God.  The  Preacher  speaks  as  to  wise  men — 
men  of  sonic  experience  of  the  world.  Judge  you  what  he 
says. 


F  0  U  E  T  II    SECTION. 

The,  Quest  Achieved.  The  Chief  Good  is  to  he  found,  not  in 
Wisdom  nor  in  Pleasure,  nor  in  Devotion  to  Affairs 
and  its  Eewnrds ;  but  in  a  Wise  Use  and  a  luise  Enjoy- 
ment of  the  Present  Life,  combined  with  a  Steadfast 
Faith  ill  the  Life  to  Come. 

Chap.  VIII.  V.  16,  to  ChajJ.  XIL  v.  7. 


T  last  we  approach  the  end  of  our  Quest.  The 
Preacher  has  found  the  Chief  Good,  and  will  show 
us  where  we  may  find  it.  But  are  we  even  yet 
prepared  to  welcome  it  and  lay  hold  of  it  ?  Apparently 
he  thinks  not.  For  though  he  has  already  warned  us 
that  it  is  not  to  be  found  in  Wealth  or  Industry,  nor  in 
Pleasure  or  Wisdom,  he  repeats  his  warning  in  this  last 
Section  of  his  Book,  as  though  he  still  suspected  us  of 
hankering  after  our  old  errors.  Not  till  he  has  again 
assured  us  that  we  shall  miss  our  mark  if  we  seek  the 
supreme  Good  in  any  of  the  directions  in  which  it  is 
commonly  sought,  docs  he  direct  us  to  the  sole  path  in 


222  THE  CHIEF  GOOD  Chap.  VIII.  v.  16,  to 

which  we  shall   not   seek  in   vain.      Once  more,  there- 
fore, let  us  gird  up  the  loins  of  our  minds  to  follow  him 
along  his  several  lines  of  thought,   encouraged   now  by 
the  assurance  that  the  end  of  our  journey  is  not  far  off. 
The  Chief  Good  not  to       I.  The  Preacher  commences  this  Section  by  carefully 
o  oim  in     ij,  oiu .     dggj^^^j^g  }^jg  position  and  equipment  as  he  starts  on  his  last 
Chap.  VIII.,  V.  16,  to    (.Q^j.gg_     ^s  yet  he  carries  no  lamp  of  Eevelation  in  his 

Chap  IX.,  V.  6.  "^  ^  ^ 

hand,  though  he  will  not  venture  beyond  a  certain  point 
without  it.  For  the  present  he  will  trust  to  Eeason  and 
Experience,  and  mark  the  conclusions  to  which  these 
conduct  when  unaided  by  any  direct  light  from  heaven. 
His  first  conclusion  is,  that  Wisdom,  which  of  all  temporal 
goods  still  stands  foremost  with  him,  is  incapable  of 
yielding  a  true  content.  Much  as  it  can  do  for  man,  it 
cannot  solve  the  moral  problems  which  daily  task  and 
afflict  his  heart,  the  problems  which  he  must  solve  before 
he  can  be  at  peace.  He  may  be  so  bent  on  solving  these 
by  Wisdom  as  to  "  see  no  sleep  with  his  eyes  by  day  or 
night;"  he  may  rely  on  Wisdom  with  a  confidence  so 
genuine  as  to  suppose  at  times  that  by  its  help  he  has 
"  found  out  all  the  work  of  God " — really  solved  all  the 
mysteries  of  the  Divine  Providence  ;  but  nevertheless  "  he 
has  not  found  it  out,"  the  illusion  will  soon  pass,  and  the 
unsolved  mysteries  reappear  dark  and  sombre  as  of  old 
(chap.  viii.  vv.  IG,  17).  And  the  proof  that  he  has  failed 
is,  first,  that  he  is  as  incompetent  to  foresee  the  future  as 
those  who  are  not  so  wise  as  he.    With  all  his  sagacity,  he 


Chap.  IX.  v.  1.  NOT  IN  WISDOM.  223 

cannot  tell  whether  he  shall  meet  "  the  love  or  the  hatred  " 
of  his  fellows.     His  lot  is  as  closely  hidden  in  "  the  hand 
of  God  "  as  theirs,  although  he  may  be  as  much  better 
than  they  are  as  he  is  wiser  (chap.  ix.  v.  1).     A  second 
proof  is,  that  "  the  same  fate  "  overtakes  both  the  wise  and 
the  foolish,  the  righteous  and  the  wicked,  and  he  is  as 
unable  to  escape  it  as  they  are.     Both  die  :  and  to  men 
ignorant  of  the  heavenly  hope  of  the  Gospel,  the  indiscri- 
mination of  Death  seems  the  most  cruel  and  hopeless  of 
wTongs.     The   Preacher,  indeed,  is  not  ignorant  of  that 
bright  hope  ;  but  as  yet,  as  I  have  reminded  you,  he  has 
not  taken  the  lamp  of  Kevelation  into  his  hand  :  he  is 
simply  speaking  the  thought  of  those  who  have  no  higher 
guide  than  Eeason,  no  brighter  light  than  Eeflection.   And 
to  these,  their  wisdom  having  taught  them  that  to  do  right 
is   infinitely  better  than   to   do  wrong,  no   fact   was   so 
monstrous  and  inscrutable  as  that  their  lives  should  run 
to  the  same  disastrous  close  with  the  lives  of  evil  and 
violent  men,  that  all  alike  should  come  into  the  power  of 
"that  churl  Death."     As  they  revolved  this   fact,  their 
hearts  grew  hot  with  a  fierce  resentment  as  natural  as  it 
was  impotent,  a  resentment  all  the  hotter  because  tliey  felt 
how  impotent  it  was.     Therefore  the  Preaclier  dwells  on 
this  fact,  lingers  over  liis  description  of  it,  adding  touch  to 
touch.    "  One  fate  comes  to  all,"  he  says  ;  "  to  the  righteous 
and  to  the  wicked,  to  the  pure  and  to  the  impure,  to  the 
religious  and  to  the  irreligious,  to  the  profane  and  to  the 


224  THE  CHIEF  GOOD  Chap.  IX.  v.  2,  to 

reverent."  If  death  be  a  good,  the  maddest  fool  and  the 
vilest  reprobate  share  it  with  the  sage  and  the  saint.  If 
death  be  an  evil,  it  is  inflicted  on  the  good  as  well  as  the 
bad.  None  is  exempt.  Of  aU  wrongs  this  is  the  greatest ; 
of  all  problems  this  is  the  most  insoluble.  Nor  is  there 
any  doubt  as  to  the  nature  of  Death.  To  him  for  whom 
there  shines  no  light  of  hope  beyond  the  darkness  of  the 
grave,  death  is  the  supreme  evil.  For  to  the  living, 
however  deject  and  wretched,  there  is  still  some  hope  that 
times  may  mend :  even  though  in  outward  condition 
despicable  as  that  unclean  outcast — a  dog,  the  homeless 
scavenger  of  Eastern  cities,  he  has  some  advantage  over 
the  royal  lion  who,  once  couched  on  a  throne,  now  lies  in 
the  dust  rottmg  to  dust.  The  living  know  at  least  that 
they  must  die;  but  the  dead  know  not  anything.  The 
living  can  recall  the  past,  and  their  memory  harps  fondly 
on  notes  which  once  were  very  sweet  to  them ;  but  the 
very  memory  of  the  dead  has  perished,  no  music  of  the 
happy  past  can  revive  on  their  dulled  sense.  With  their 
memory,  love,  hatred,  and  zeal,  "  the  triad  in  which  all 
human  passions  are  comprised,"  have  also  become  extinct. 
The  heavens  are  fair ;  the  earth  is  beautiful  and  generous  ; 
the  works  of  men  are  many  and  diverse  and  great :  but 
they  have  "  no  more  any  portion  for  ever  in  aught  that  is 
done  under  the  sun  "  (vv.  2 — 6). 

This  is  the  Preacher's  description  of  the  hapless  estate 
of  the  dead.     His  words  would  go  straight  home  to  the 


Chap.  IX.  v.  6.  NOT  IN  WISDOM.  225 

hearts  of  the  captives  for  whom  he  wrote,  with  a  force  even 
beyond  that  wliich  they  would  have  had  for  heathen  races. 
Til  tlicir  Captivity,  they  had  renounced  the  worsliip  of  idols. 
They  had  renewed  their  covenant  with  Jeliovah.  Many  of 
them  were  devoutly  attached  to  the  ordinances  and  com- 
mandments which  they  and  their  fathers  had  neglected  in 
tlio  Holy  Land.  Yet  their  lives  were  made  bitter  to  them 
with  cruel  bondage,  and  they  had  as  little  hope  in  their 
death  as  tlie  very  Persians  who  embittered  their  lives.  It 
was  in  this  sore  strait,  and  under  the  strong  compulsions  of 
this  dreadful  extremity,  that  the  more  pious  and  studious 
of  their  liabbis,  like  the  Preaclicr  himself,  drew  into  an  ex- 
pressive context  the  passages  scattered  through  their 
Sacred  Books  which  hinted  at  a  retributive  life  beyond  the 
tomb,  and  settled  into  that  strong  conviction  of  the  immor- 
tality of  the  soul  which,  as  a  ride,  they  never  henceforth 
altogether  let  go.  But  when  the  Preacher  -wTote,  this 
settled  and  general  conviction  had  not  been  reached.  There 
were  many  among  them  who,  as  tlieir  thoughts  circled 
round  the  mystery  of  death,  could  only  cry,  "  Is  this  the 
end  ?  is  tliis  the  end  ?  "  To  the  great  majority  of  them, 
ignorant,  and  brutalized  by  the  severities  of  bondage,  it 
seemed  the  end.  And  even  the  few  learned,  who  sought 
an  answer  to  the  question  by  blending  the  Greek  and 
Oriental  with  the  Hebrew  Wisdom,  attained  no  clear 
answer  to  it.  To  mere  human  wisdom.  Life  remained  a 
mystery,  and  Death  a  mystery  still  more  cruel  and  in- 

15 


226  THE  CHIEF  GOOD  Chap.  IX.  v.  7,  to 

scrutable.     Only  those  who  listened  to  the  Preachers  and 
Prophets  whom  God  taught  beheld  the  dawn  which  already 
began  to  glimmer  on  the  darkness  in  which  men  sat. 
Nor  in  Pleasure :  Now  suppose  a  reflective  Jew  brought  to  the  bitter  pass 

Chap.  IX.,  vv.  7—12.  wliich  Colieleth  has  described.  He  has  acquainted  himself 
with  wisdom,  native  and  foreign  ;  and  wisdom  has  led  him 
to  conclusions  of  virtue.  Nor  is  he  of  those  who  love 
virtue  as  they  love  music — without  practising  it.  Be- 
lieving that  a  righteous  and  religious  life  will  ensure  happi- 
ness and  equip  him  to  encounter  the  difficulties  of  thought, 
he  has  striven  to  be  good  and  pure,  to  offer  his  sacrifices 
and  pay  his  vows.  But  he  has  found  that,  despite  his  best 
endeavours,  his  life  is  not  a  happy  one,  that  the  very  cala- 
mities which  overtake  the  wicked  overtake  him,  that  that 
wise  carriage  of  himself  by  which  he  thought  to  win  love 
has  provoked  hatred,  that  Death  remains  a  frowning  and 
inhospitable  mystery.  He  hates  death,  and  has  no  great 
love  for  the  life  which  hitherto  has  brought  him  only  labour 
and  disappointment.  Where  is  he  likely  to  turn  next  ? 
Wisdom  having  failed  him,  to  what  will  he  apply  ?  At  what 
conclusion  will  he  naturally  arrive  ?  Will  not  his  conclu- 
sion be  that  standing  conclusion  of  the  baffled  and  hapless, 
"  Let  us  eat  and  drink,  for  to-morrow  we  die  ? "  Will  he 
not  say,  "  Why  sliould  I  weary  myself  any  more  with 
studies  which  yield  no  certain  science  and  self-denials 
which  meet  with  no  reward  ?  If  a  wise  and  pure  conduct 
cannot  secure  me  from  the  evils  I  dread,  let  me  at  least  try 


Chap.  IX.  v.  10.  NOT  IN  PLEASURE.  227 


to  forget  them  and  grasp  such  poor  delights  as  arc  still 
within  my  reach  "  ?  This,  at  all  events,  is  the  conclusion 
in  which  Coheleth  lands  him :  and  hence  the  Preacher 
takes  occasion  to  review  the  pretensions  of  Pleasure  or 
]\Iirth.  To  the  bafHed  and  hopeless  devotee  of  Wisdom, 
he  says,  "  Go,  then,  eat  thy  bread  with  gladness,  and  drink 
thy  wine  with  a  cheerful  heart.  Don't  trouble  yourself 
with  any  thought  of  God  and  His  judgments.  Why  should 
you  ?  He,  as  you  have  discovered,  docs  not  mete  out  re- 
wards and  punishments  according  to  our  merit  or  demerit ; 
and  as  He  does  not  punish  the  wicked  after  their  deserts, 
you  may  be  very  certain  that  He  has  long  since  been 
pleased  with  your  wise  virtuous  endeavours  and  will  keep 
no  score  against  you.  Deck  yourself,  then,  in  white  festive 
garments ;  let  no  perfume  be  lacking  to  your  head  ;  add  to 
your  harem  any  woman  who  takes  your  fimcy :  and  as  the 
day  of  your  life  is  but  brief  at  the  best,  let  no  hour  of  it 
slip  by  unenjoyed.  As  you  have  chosen  Mirth  for  your 
portion,  be  as  merry  as  you  may.  ^Vllatevcr  you  can  get, 
get ;  whatever  you  can  do,  do.  You  are  on  your  road  to 
the  dark  dismal  grave  where  there  is  no  work  nor  device  ; 
there  is  the  more  reason  therefore  why  your  journey  should 
be  a  merry  one"  (vv.  7 — 10). 

Thus  the  Preacher  describes  the  Man  of  Pleasure  and 
the  maxims  by  which  he  rules  his  life  :  how  true  the 
description  is  1  need  not  tarry  to  prove  ;  'tis  a  point  every 
man  can   jud.ue  for  himself.       Judge   also    whether   tin' 

15* 


228  THE  CHIEF  GOOD  Chap.  IX.  v.  11,  to 

warning  which  the  Preacher  subjoins  be  not  equally  true 
to  experience  (vv.  11,  12).  Tor,  after  having  described  the 
Man  who  trusts  in  Wisdom,  and  the  Man  who  gives  him- 
self to  Pleasure,  he  proceeds  to  show  that  even  the  Wise 
Man  who  blends  mirth  with  study,  whose  wisdom  therefore 
preserves  him  from  the  disgusts  of  satiety  and  vulgar  lust, 
is  nevertheless,  to  say  nothing  of  the  Chief  Good,  very  far 
from  having  reached  a  certain  good.  Then,  at  least,  "  the 
race  was  not  to  the  swift  nor  the  battle  to  the  strong ; 
neither  was  bread  to  the  wise,  nor  riches  to  the  intelligent, 
nor  favour  to  the  learned."  Those  who  had  the  fairest 
chances  had  not  always  the  happiest  success ;  nor  did 
those  who  bent  themselves  most  strongly  toward  their 
ends  always  reach  their  ends.  Those  who  were  wanton  as 
birds,  or  heedless  as  fish,  were  often  taken  in  the  snare 
of  calamity  or  swept  up  by  the  net  of  misfortune.  At  any 
moment  a  killing  frost  might  blight  all  the  growths  of 
Wisdom  and  destroy  all  the  sweet  fruits  of  Pleasure  :  and  if 
they  had  only  these — what  could  they  do  but  starve  when 
these  were  gone  ?  The  good  which  was  at  the  mercy  of 
Accident,  which  might  vanish  before  the  instant  touch  of 
Disease,  or  Loss,  or  Pain,  was  not  worthy  to  be  co]npared 
with  the  Chief  Good,  which  is  a  good  for  all  times,  in  all 
accidents,  and  renders  him  who  has  it  equal  to  all  events. 
Nor  in  Devotion  to  Af-  So  far,  then,  Coheleth  has  been  occupied  in  retracing 
fairs  and  its  Rewards:  ^|^g  argument  of  the  Pii'st  Scctiou  of  the  I>(jok,  in  which  he 
Chap.  IX.,  V.  13,  (()      liiij  discussed  the  claims  of  Wisdom  and  I'leasure,  or  both 

Chap.  X.,  V.  20. 


Chap.  IX.  v.  13.  NOT  IN  AFFAIRS.  229 

combined,  to  lie  regarded  as  the  Chief  Good  of  Life.  Now 
he  returns  upon  the  Second  and  Third  Sections  of  the 
]5o()k  :  he  deals  with  the  man  who  plunges  into  public 
affairs,  who  turns  his  wisdom  to  practical  account,  and 
seeks  to  attain  a  Competence,  if  not  a  Fortune.  He  lingers 
long  over  this  stage  of  his  argument,  probably  because  the 
Jews,  then  as  always  since,  even  in  exile  and  under  the 
most  cruel  oppressions,  were  a  singularly  pushing,  practical, 
money-getting  race  :  and  as  he  slowly  pursues  it,  he  drops 
many  hints  of  the  social  and  political  conditions  of  the 
time.  Two  features  of  it  he  takes  much  to  heart :  first 
that  wisdom,  even  of  the  most  practised  and  sagacious 
sort,  did  not  win  its  fair  recognition  and  reward, — a  very 
natural  complaint  in  so  wise  a  man:  and  secondly,  that  his 
people  were  captives  to  tyrants  so  gross,  so  self-indulgent, 
so  unstatesman-likc  as  the  Persians  of  his  day, — also  a 
natural  complaint  in  a  man  of  so  wise  and  patriotic  a 
spirit. 

He  opens  with  an  anecdote  in  proof  of  the  slight  regard 
in  which  the  most  valuable  and  remunerative  sagacity  was 
held.  He  tells  us  of  a  poor  man — and  I  have  sometimes 
thought  that  this  poor  man  may  have  been  the  Author  him- 
self ;  for  the  military  leaders  of  the  Jews,  though  among 
the  most  expert  strategists  of  that  era,  were  often  very 
learned  studious  men — who  lived  in  a  little  city,  with  few 
inhabitants.  A  great  king  came  up  against  the  city,  be- 
sieged it,  threw  up  the  lofty  military  causeway  from  which 


230  THE  CHIEF  GOOD  Chap.  IX,  v.  13,  to 


it  was  the  fashion  of  the  time  to  deliver  the  assault.  By 
his  wit  the  poor  man  hit  on  a  stratagem  which  saved  the 
city ;  but  though  his  service  was  so  signal  and  the  city  so 
little  that  the  "  few  men  in  it "  must  have  seen  him  every 
day,  "  yet  no  one  remembered  that  same  poor  man,"  or 
lent  a  hand  to  lift  him  from  his  poverty.  Wise  as  he  was, 
liis  wisdom  did  not  bring  him  bread,  nor  riches,  nor  favour 
(vv.  13 — 15).*  Therefore,  concludes  the  Preacher,  wisdom, 
great  gift  though  it  be,  and  better,  as  in  this  instance,  than 
'•'  an  army  to  a  beleagured  city,"  is  not  of  itself  sufficient 
to  secure  success.^  A  poor  man's  wisdom  is  despised  even 
by  those  who  profit  by  it.  Although  his  counsel  is  often 
more  valuable  and  welcome  than  the  loud  behests  of  a 
foolish  ruler  or  captain,  nevertheless  the  captain,  because 
he  is  foolish,  may  be  affronted  to  find  one  of  the  poorest 
men  in  the  place  wiser  than  himself ;  he  may  easily  place 
his  "  merit  in  the  eye  of  scorn,"  and  so  rob  him  of  both 
the  honour  and  the  reward  of  his  achievement ; — an  ancient 
saw  not,  I  think,  without  modern  instances  (w.  16,  17). 
For  the  fool  is  a  great  power  in  the  world,  especially  the 
fool  who  is  wise  in  his  own  conceit.  Insignificant  in  him- 
self, wellnigh  a  negative  quantity,  he  may  nevertheless  do 
great  positive  harm  and  "  destroy  much  good."  Just  as  a 
tiny  fly,  when  it  is  dead,  may  make  the  sweetest  ointment 
offensive  by  infusing  its  own  evil  savour ;  so  a  man,  when 

«  Couip.  V.  11.  t  ^ee  Chap.  v\i.,  v.  19. 


Chap.  X.  v.  3.  NOT  IN  AFFAIRS.  231 

his  wit  is  gone,  may  with  his  little  folly  cause  many  sen- 
sible well-meaning  men  to  distrust  the  wisdom  they  should 
honour  (chap,  x.,  v.  1).  To  a  wise  man,  like  Cohcleth,  the 
fool,  the  presumptuous  conceited  fool,  is  "  rank  and  smells 
to  heaven,"  infecting  sweeter  natures  with  a  most  poisonous 
corruption.  He  paints  us  a  picture  of  him — paints  it  with 
a  graphic  contempt  which,  if  the  eyes  of  the  fool*  were  in 
his  head,  and  "  what  lie  is  pleased  to  call  his  mind  "  could 
for  a  moment  only  shift  from  his  left  hand  to  his  right 
(v.  2),  might  make  him  nearly  as  loathsome  to  himself  as 
he  is  to  others.  As  you  read  the  verse  (v.  3)  the  unhappy 
wretch  stands  before  you.  You  see  him  coming  out  of  his 
house ;  he  goes  dawdling  down  the  street,  for  ever  wander- 
ing from  the  path,  attracted  by  the  merest  trifle,  staring  at 
familiar  objects  with  eyes  that  have  no  recognition  in  them, 
knowing  neither  himself  nor  others  ;  and,  with  pointed 
finger,  chuckles  after  every  sober  citizen  he  meets,  "  There 
goes  a  fool ! " 

Yet  a  fool  quite  as  foolish  and  malignant  as  this,  quite 
as  indecent  even  in  outward  behaviour,  may  be  lifted  to 
high  place,  and  has  ere  now  sat  on  an  imperial  throne.f 
The  Preacher  had  seen  many  of  them  suddenly  raised  to 


*  Comp.  Chap,  ii.,  v.  14. 

t  To  cite  only  one  instance  out  of  many — other  instances  may  be  found  in  the 
Introduction — let  the  reader  reciill  the  Emperor  Caligula,  and  refer,  for 
example,  to  his  reception  of  the  Alexandrian  Jews,  as  recorded  by  Philo,  Legal 
ad    C'aium,   cc.    44 — 4o  ;   or  by  Merivale,  in   his   History  of   the   Romans, 


232  THE  CHIEF  GOOD  Chav.  X.  v.  4,  to 


power,  while  nobles  were  degraded  and  high  functionaries 
of  State  reduced  to  an  abject  servitude.  Now  if  the  poor 
wise  man  should  have  to  attend  the  durbar,  or  sit  in  the 
divan,  of  a  foolish  capricious  despot,  how  should  he  bear 
himself?  The  Preacher  counsels  meekness  and  submis- 
sion. He  is  to  sit  unruffled  even  though  the  rider  should 
rate  him,  lest  by  resentment  he  should  provoke  some 
graver  outrage  (vv.  4 — 7).*  To  strengthen  him  in  his  sub- 
mission, the  Preacher  hints  at  cautions  and  consolatory- 
hopes  which,  because  free  open  speech  was  very  dangerous 
under  the  Persian  despotism,  he  wraps  up  in  obscure 
maxims  capable  of  a  double  sense — to  the  true  sense  of 
which  "  a  foolish  ruler  "  was  by  no  means  likely  to  pene- 
trate, even  if  the  MS.  fell  into  his  hands. 

The  first  of  these  maxims  is,  "  He  who  diggeth  a  pit 
shall  fall  into  it  "  (verse  8).  And  the  allusion  is,  of  course, 
to  an  Eastern  mode  of  trapping  wild  beasts  and  game. 
The  huntsman  dug  a  pit,  covered  it  with  twigs  and  sods, 
and  strewed  the  surface  with  bait ;  but  as  he  dug  many 
such  pits  and  some  of  them  were  long  without  a  tenant, 
he  might  at  any  inadvertent  moment  fall  into  one  of  them 
himself.     The  proverb  is  capable  of  at  least  two  interpre- 


Chap.    xlvii.,    pp.  47 — 50 ;     or    by   Milman,    in   hisj  History  of   the   Jews, 
Book XII.,  pp.  Ill — 14f5.  Ho  will  then  know,  to  use  the  phrase  of  Appollonius 
of  Tyana,  "what  the  kind  of  beast  called  a  tyrant"  is,  or  may  be. 
*  Comp.  Chap,  viii.,  v.  3. 


Chap.  X.  v.  10.  NOT  IN  AFFAIRS.  233 

tations.  It  may  mean,  that  the  foolish  despot  plotting  the 
rviin  of  his  wise  servant  might  in  his  anger  go  too  far ;  and, 
betraying  his  intention,  provoke  a  retaliativc  anger  before 
which  he  himself  would  fall.  Or  it  may  mean,  that  should 
the  wise  man  seek  to  undermine  the  throne  of  the  despot, 
he  might  be  taken  in  his  treachery  and  bring  on  himself 
the  whole  weight  of  the  tyrant's  wi-ath.  The  second  maxim 
is,  "  Whoso  breaketh  down  a  wall  a  serpent  shall  bite  him  " 
(verse  8) ;  and  here  the  allusion  is  to  the  fact  that  snakes 
infest  the  crannies  of  old  walls.*  To  set  about  dethroning 
a  tyrant  was  like  pulling  down  such  a  wall ;  you  would 
break  up  tlie  nest  of  many  a  reptile,  many  a  venomous 
hanger-on,  and  might  only  get  bit  for  your  pains.  Or, 
again,  in  pulling  out  the  stones  of  an  old  wall,  you  might 
let  one  of  them  fall  on  your  foot ;  and  in  hacking  out  its 
timbers,  you  might  cut  yourself:  that  is  to  say,  even  if 
your  conspiracy  did  not  involve  you  in  absolute  ruin,  it 
would  be  only  too  likely  to  do  you  serious  and  lasting 
injury  (v.  9).  The  fifth  adage  runs  (v.  10),  "  If  the  axe  be 
blunt,  and  he  do  not  sharpen  it,  he  must  put  on  more 
strength,  but  wisdom  should  teach  him  to  repair  it,"  and 
is,  perhaps,  the  most  difficult  passage  in  the  Book.  The 
Hebrew  is  read  in  a  different  way  by  almost  every  trans- 
lator.   As  I  read  it,  it  means,  in  general,  that  it  is  not  well 


*  Coinp.  ^Viuos  V.  I'J. 


234  THE  CHIEF  GOOD  Chap.  X.  v.  10,  to 

to  work  with  blunt  tools  when  by  a  little  labour  and 
delay  you  may  whet  them  to  a  keener  edge.  Eead  thus,  the 
political  rule  implied  in  it  is,  "  Don't  attempt  any  great 
enterprise  till  you  have  a  well-thought-out  scheme,  and 
skilful  instruments  to  carry  out  every  part  of  it."  But  the 
special  political  import  of  it  may  be,  "  Your  strength  is 
nothing  to  that  of  the  tyrant ;  do  not  therefore  lift  a  blunt 
axe  against  the  trunk  of  despotism ;  wait  till  you  have  put 
a  sharp  edge  upon  it."  Or,  the  tyrant  himself  may  be  the 
blunt  axe,  and  then  the  warning  is,  "  Sharpen  him  up ; 
repair  him ;  use  him  and  his  caprices  to  serve  your  own 
turn ;  get  your  way  by  giving  way  to  him,  and  by  skilfully 
availing  yourself  of  his  varying  moods."  Which  of  these 
may  be  the  meaning  of  this  obscure  disputed  passage,  I 
do  not  undertake  to  say ;  perhaps  neither  of  them,  perhaps 
both.  But  the  latter  of  the  two  seems  to  be  sustained  by 
the  next  adage,  "  If  the  serpent  bite  because  it  is  not 
charmed,  there  is  no  advantage  to  the  charmer."  For 
here,  I  think,  there  can  be  little  doubt  that  the  foolish 
angry  ruler  is  the  serpent,  and  the  wise  functionary  the 
charmer  who  is  to  extract  the  venom  of  his  anger.  Let  the 
foolish  ruler  be  never  so  furious,  the  poor  wise  man,  who  is 
able  "  to  cull  the  plots  of  best  advantages  "  and  to  save  a 
city,  can  surely  devise  a  charm  of  soft  submissive  words 
which  will  turn  away  his  wrath ;  just  as  the  serpent-charmer 
•of  the  East,  by  song  and  incantation,  is  at  least  reputed  to 
draw  serpents  from  their  lurk  that  he  may  pluck  the  venom 


Chap.  X.  v.  15.  NOT  IN  AFFAIRS.  285 

from  their  tongue  (v.  11).  For,  as  we  are  told,  in  the  very 
next  verse  (v.  12),  "  the  words  of  the  wise  man's  mouth 
win  liim  favour,  while  the  lips  of  the  fool  destroy  him." 

And  on  this  hint,  on  this  casual  mention  of  his  name, 
the  Preacher — who  all  this  while,  remember,  is  personating 
the  sagacious  man  of  the  world  bent  on  rising  to  wealth 
and  comfort  and  distinction — once  more  "  comes  down  " 
on  the  fool.     He  speaks  of  him  with  extreme  wrath  and 
contempt,  as  men  versed  in  public  affairs  are  apt  to  do, 
since  they  best  know  how  nmch  harm  a  talkative  self-con- 
ceited fool  may  do  them,  how  much  good  he  may  prevent. 
Here,  then,  is  the  fool  of  public  life.     He  is  a  man  always 
prating  and  predicting,  although  his  words  are  folly  and 
madness  from  beginning  to  end,  and  although  he  of  all 
men  is  least  able  to  give  good  counsel  or  to  foresee  what  is 
about  to  come  to  pass.     Puffed  up  by  the  conceit  of  wisdom 
and  ability,  he  is  for  ever  intermeddling  with  great  affairs, 
though  he  has  no  notion  how  to  handle  them,  and  is  barely 
capable  of  finding  his  way  along  the  beaten  road  which 
leads  to  the  capital  city  (w.  12 — 15).     If  he  would  only 
hold  his  tongue,  he  might  pass  muster;  beguiled  by  his 
gravity  and  silence,  men  might  give  him  credit  for  sagacity 
and  fit  his  foolish  deeds  with  profound  motives ;  but  he 
will  speak,  and  his  words  betray  and  destroy  him.     Of 
course  ive  have  no  such  fools  to  rise  in  their  high  place  and 
wag  their  tongues  to  their  own  hurt ;  no  doubt  they  are 
peculiar  to  the  East. 


236  THE  CHIEF  GOOD  Chap.  X.  v.  16,  to 

But  then  there  were  so  many  of  them,  and  their  influence 
in  the  State  was  so  disastrous  that,  as  the  Preacher  thinks 
of  them,  he  breaks  into  an  ahnost  ditliyrambic  fervour.  He 
cries,  "Woe  to  thee,  0  land,  when  thy  king  is  childish,  and 
thy  princes  feast  in  the  morning !  Happy  thou,  O  land, 
when  thy  king  is  noble,  and  thy  princes  eat  at  due  hours, 
for  strength  and  not  for  revelry  ! "  Through  the  sloth  and 
dissipation  of  these  foolish  rulers,  the  whole  fabric  of  the 
State  was  fast  falling  into  decay ; — the  roof  rotting  and  the 
rain  leaking  in.  To  support  their  untimely  profligate 
revelry,  they  imposed  crushing  taxes  on  the  people,  which 
inspired  either  a  revolutionary  discontent  or  the  apathy 
of  despair.  The  Wise  Captive  foresaw  that  the  end  of  a 
despotism  so  luxurious  and  cruel  could  not  be  far  off ;  that 
when  the  storm  rose  and  the  wind  blew,  the  ancient  house, 
unrepaired  in  its  decay,  would  topple  on  the  heads  of  those 
who  sat  in  its  halls  revelling  in  a  wicked  mirth  (vv.  16 
— 19).  Meantime,  the  sagacious  servant  of  the  State,  per- 
chance an  exile  from  his  own  land,  unable  to  arrest  the 
progress  of  decay,  or  not  caring  how  soon  it  was  consum- 
mated, would  make  his  "market  of  the  time;"  he  would 
carry  himself  with  dexterous  caution ;  and,  because  the 
whole  land  was  infested  with  the  spies  bred  by  despotism, 
he  would  give  them  no  hold  on  him,  nor  so  much  as  speak 
the  simple  truth  of  his  foolish  debauched  rulers  in  the 
privacy  of  his  bedchamber,  or  mutter  his  thoughts  upon  his 
own  roof,  lest  some  "  bird  of  the  air  should  carry  the  re- 
port "  (v.  20). 


CiiAr.  XI.  V.  1.  NOT  IN  AFFAIRS.  237 

But  if  this  were  the  condition  of  the  time,  if  to  rise  in 
public  life  involved  so  many  mean  crafts  and  submissions, 
so  many  deadly  perils  from  spies  and  fools  and  despots ; 
how  could  any  man  hope  to  find  the  Chief  Good  in  it  ? 
Wisdom  did  not  always  win  promotion  :  virtue  was  incom- 
patible with  success.  The  anger  of  an  incapable  idiot,  or 
the  whisper  of  an  envious  rival,  or  the  caprice  of  a  merci- 
less despot  might  at  any  moment  undo  the  work  of  years, 
and  expose  the  most  sagacious  to  the  worst  extremities  of 
misfortune.  There  was  no  tranquillity,  no  freedom,  no 
security,  no  dignity  in  a  life  such  as  this.  Till  this  were 
resigned  and  some  nobler  aim  found,  there  was  no  prospect 
of  securing  that  great  satisfying  Good  which  lifts  man 
above  all  accidents,  and  fixes  him  in  a  happy  security 
from  which  no  blow  of  Circumstance  can  dislodge  him. 

II.  What  that  Good  is,  and  where  it  may  be  found,  the  But  in  a  wise  Use  and 

wise  Enjoyment  of  the 

Preacher  now  proceeds  to  show.     But  as  his  manner  is,  he  present  Life, 

does  not  say  in  so  many  words,  "  This  is  the  Chief  Good  ^^      ^j   ^^  j_g 

of  man,"  or,  "  You  will  find  it  yonder ; "  but  he  places 

before  us  the  man  who  is  walking  in  the  right  path  and 

drawing  closer  and  closer  to  it.    Even  of  him  the  Preacher 

does  not  give  us  any  formal  and  direct  description ;  but, 

following  what  we  have  seen  to  be  his  favourite  method, 

he  gives  us  a  string  of  maxims  and  counsels  from  which 

we  are  to  infer  what  manner  of  man  he  is  who  happily 

achieves  this  great  Quest. 


238  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.         Chap,  XI.  v.  1,  to 

And  at  the  very  outset  we  learn  that  this  happy  person 
is  of  a  noble,  unselfish,  generous  temper.  Unlike  the  man 
who  wants  simply  to  get  on  and  make  a  fortune,  he 
grudges  no  man  his  gains ;  he  looks  on  his  neighbours' 
interests  as  well  as  his  own,  and  does  good  even  to  the 
evil  and  the  unthankful.*  He  is  one  who  "  casts  his  broad 
upon  the  waters  "  (chap,  xi.,  v.  1),  and  who  "  gives  a  portion 
thereof  to  seven,  and  even  to  eight "  (v.  2).  The  familiar 
proverb  of  the  first  verse  has  been  commonly  read  as  an 
allusion  to  the  sowing  of  rice  and  other  grain  from  a  boat 
during  the  periodical  inundation  of  certain  Eastern  rivers, 
especially  the  Nile.  We  have  been  taught  to  regard  the 
husbandman  pushing  from  the  embanked  village  in  his 
frail  bark,  to  cast  the  grain  he  would  gladly  eat  on  the 


*  One  of  tho  most  elaborate  proverbs  in  tlic  Talmud  is  on  Charity : — "  Iron 
breaks  the  stone,  fire  melts  iron,  water  extinguishes  fire,  the  clouds  drink  up 
the  water,  a  storm  drives  away  the  clouds,  man  withstands  the  storm,  fear 
unmans  man,  wine  dispels  fear,  sleep  drives  uway  wine,  and  death  sweeps  all 
away — even  sleep.  But  Solomon  the  Wise  says:  charity  saves  from  death." 
And  there  is  hardly  a  finer  passage  in  Shakespeare's  Soimets  than  that  (CXVl.) 
in  which  he  sings  tho  disinterestedness  of  love,  and  its  superiority  to  all  change : 

Love  is  not  love 
Which  alters  when  it  alteration  finds, 
Or  bends  with  the  remover  to  remove. 

***** 

Love's  not  Time's  fool,  though  rosy  lips  and  checks 
AVithin  his  bending  sickle's  compass  come ; 
Love  alters  not  with  his  brief  hours  and  weeks. 
But  bears  it  out  even  to  the  edge  of  doom. 


Chap.  XI.  v.  2.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  239 


surface  of  the  flood,  as  a  type  of  Cliristian  labour  and 
charity.  He  denies  himself;  so  also  must  -sve  if  we 
would  do  good.  He  has  faith  in  the  divine  laws,  and 
trusts  to  receive  his  own  again  with  usury,  to  reap  a  larger 
crop  the  longer  he  waits  for  it ;  and,  in  like  manner,  we  are 
to  trust  in  the  divine  laws  which  brmg  us  a  hundredfold 
for  every  act  of  self-denying  service  and  bless  our  "  long 
patience"  with  the  ampler  harvest.  It  is  with  some 
natural  regret  that  I  ask  you  to  give  up  that  familiar 
figure,  or  rather  not  to  derive  it  from  this  passage.  The 
Hebrew  vsiis  loqumdi  does  not  admit  of  the  usual  inter- 
pretation. But  it  suggests  a  figure  which,  if  unfamiliar, 
is  not  without  its  beauty.  In  the  East,  bread  is  commonly 
made  in  thin  flat  cakes,  something  like  the  slight  Passover 
cakes  of  the  Jews  :  and  one  of  these  cakes  flung  on 
the  stream,  though  it  would  float  with  the  current  for  a 
time,  would  soon  sink ;  and,  once  sunk,  would — unlike  the 
grain  cast  from  the  boat — yield  no  return.  And  our 
charity  should  be  like  that.  We  should  do  good  "  hoping 
for  nothing  again."  We  should  show  kindnesses  which 
will  soon  be  forgotten  and  never  be  returned,  and  be  undis- 
mayed by  the  thauklessness  of  our  task.  The  task  is  not 
so  thankless  as  it  seems.  For,  first,  we  shall  "  find  the 
good  of  it  "  in  the  loftier  more  generous  temper  which  the 
habit  of  doing  good  breeds  and  confirms.  If  no  one  else 
be  the  better  for  our  kindness,  we  shall  be  the  better  for 


240  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.         Chap.  XI.  v.  2,  to 

having  shown  it.     The  quality  of  charity,  like  that   of 
mercy,  is  not  strained: 

It  droppoth  as  tho  gentle  rain  from  heaven 
Upon  tho  placo  beneath  ;  it  is  twice  blessed ; 
It  blessoth  him  that  gives  and  him  that  takes. 

And,  again,  the  task  is  not  so  thankless  as  it  sometimes 
seems :  for  though  many  of  our  kind  deeds  may  quicken 
no  kindness  in  "  him  that  takes,"  yet  some  of  them  will ; 
and  the  more  we  help  and  succour  the  more  likely  are  we 
to  light  upon  at  least  a  lew  who,  when  our  need  comes, 
will  succour  and  console  us.  Even  the  most  hardened 
persons  have  a  certain  tenderness  for  those  who  help  them, 
if  only  the  lielp  meet  a  real  need  and  be  rendered  kindly 
and  with  a  grace.  And  therefore  we  may  be  very  sure 
that  if  we  give  a  portion  of  our  bread  to  seven  and  even  to 
eight,  especially  if  they  know  that  we  ourselves  have 
stomach  for  it  all,  at  least  one  or  two  of  them  will  share 
with  us  when  our  need  comes. 

But  is  not  this,  after  all,  only  a  refined  selfishness  ?  If 
we  give  because  we  do  not  know  how  soon  we  may  need  a 
gift,  and  in  order  that  we  may  by-  and-by  "  find  the  good 
of  it," — do  not  even  the  heathen  and  the  publicans  the 
same  ?  Well,  not  many  of  them,  I  think.  I  have  not 
observed  that  it  is  their  habit  to  cast  their  bread  on  thank- 
less waters.  If  they  forbode  calamity  and  loss,  they 
provide  against  them,  not  l)y  giving,  but  liy  storing  and 


CuAP.  XI.  V.  2.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  241 

saving :  they  bank  with  Thrift  aud  Good  Investment,  not 
with  Charity  and  Kindness.  The  refined  selfishness  of 
showiiii;  kindness  and  doing  good  even  to  the  evil  and 
unthankful  is  by  no  means  too  common  yet ;  we  need  not 
go  in  dread  of  it.  Nor  is  it  an  altogether  unworthy  motive. 
St.  Paul*  urges  us  to  help  a  brother  who  has  fallen  before 
temptation  on  the  express  ground  that  we  ourselves  may 
need  similar  help  some  day :  aud  he  was  not  in  the  habit 
of  appealing  to  mean  and  base  motives.  Nay,  the  very 
Golden  Eule  itself  touches  this  spring  of  action  ;  for  among 
other  meanings  it  surely  has  this,  that  we  are  to  do  to 
others  as  we  would  that  they  should  do  to  us,  in  the  hope 
that,  sooner  or  later,  they  also  will  walk  by  the  same  rule, 
and  do  to  us  as  we  have  done  to  them.  There  are  other 
higher  meanings  in  the  Ilule,  as  there  are  other  purer 
motives  for  Charity :  but  I  don't  know  that  we  are  any  of 
us  of  so  lofty  a  virtue  that  we  may  need  fear  to  show  kind- 
ness in  order  that  we  may  win  kindness,  or  to  give  help 
that  we  may  get  help.  Possibly,  to  act  on  this  motive  may 
be  the  best  and  nearest  way  to  rise  to  such  higher  motives 
as  we  can  reach. 

The  first  characteristic,  then,  of  the  man  who  is  likely  to 
achieve  the  Quest  of  the  Chief  Good  is,  the  Charity  wliich 
prompts  him  to  be  gracious  and  show  kindness  and  do 
wod   even    to   tlie   thankless   and   uncfracious.     And  his 


*■  Sec  Gal.  vi.  i. 

16 


242  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.        Chap.  XL  v.  2,  to 

second  characteristic  is  the  steadfast  Industry  which  turns 
all  seasons  to  account.     The  Man  of  Afifairs,  who  wants  to 
rise,  waits  on  occasion :  he  is  on  the  watch  to  avail  him- 
self of  the  moods  and  caprices  of  men  and  bend  them  to 
his  interest.      But  he  who  has  learned  to  value  things  at 
their  true  worth,  and  whose  heart  is  fixed  on  the  acquisi- 
tion of  the  highest  good,  does  not  want  to  get  on  so  much 
as  he  wants  to  do  his  duty  in  whatever  station  he  may  be 
placed,  and  under  all  the  variable  conditions  of  life.  Just  as 
he  will  not  withhold  his  hand  from  giving,  lest  some  of 
the  recipients  of  his  charity  should  prove  unworthy;  so 
also   he   will   not   withdraw   his   hand   from   the   labour 
appointed  him,  because  this  or  that  endeavour  may  be 
unproductive,  or  lest  it  should  be  thwarted  by  the  ordi- 
nances of  Heaven.     He  knows  that  the  laws  of  Nature  will 
hold  on  their  way,  often  causing  individual  loss  to  promote 
the  general  good.     He  knows,  for  instance,  that  when  the 
clouds  are  full  of  rain,  they  loill  empty  themselves  upon 
the  earth,  even  though  they  put  his  harvest  in  peril ;  and 
that  when  the  wind  is  fierce,  it  will  blow  down  trees,  even 
though  it  should  also  scatter  the  seed  which  he  is  sowing. 
But  he  does  not  therefore  wait  vipon  the  wind  till  it  is  too 
late  to  sow,  nor  upon  the  clouds  till  his  ungathered  crops 
rot  in  the  fields.     He  is  conscious  that,  though  he  knows 
much,  he  knows  little  of  these  as  of  other  works  of  God : 
he  cannot  tell  whether  this  tree  or  that  will  be  blown 
down  ;  almost  all  he  is  certain  of  is  that,  when  the  tree 


CuAP.  XI.  V.  G.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED,  243 

is  down,  it  will  lie  where  it  has  fallen,  lifting  its  bleeding 
roots  in  dumb  protest  against  the  wind  which  has  laid  it 
low.  But  this  too  he  knows,  that  it  is  "  God  who  workcth 
all ;"  that  he  is  not  responsible  for  events  beyond  his 
control :  that  what  he  is  responsible  for  is  that  he  do  his 
duty  ^\■hatever  wind  may  blow,  and  calmly  leave  the  issue 
in  the  hand  of  God.  And  so,  diligent  and  undismayed,  he 
goes  on  his  way,  giving  liimsclf  heartily  to  the  present 
duty,  "  sowing  his  seed,  morning  and  evening,  although  he 
cannot  tell  which  shall  prosper,  this  or  that,  or  whether  both 
shall  prove  good  "  (vv.  3 — G).  "Windy  ]\Iarch  cannot  blow 
him  from  his  constant  purpose,  though  it  may  blow  the 
seed  out  of  his  hand ;  nor  a  rainy  August  melt  him  to 
despairing  tears,  though  it  may  damage  his  harvest.  He 
has  done  his  duty,  discharged  his  responsibility :  let  God 
see  to  the  rest :  whatever  pleases  God  will  content  him. 

'fhis  man,  then,  has  already  learned  one  or  two  of  the 
proibundest  secrets  of  Wisdom.  He  has  learned  that, 
giving,  we  gain ;  and,  spending,  thrive.  He  has  also 
learned  that  a  man's  true  care  is  himself ;  that  all  which 
pertains  to  the  body,  to  the  issues  of  labour,  to  the  chances 
of  fortune,  is  external  to  himself ;  that  whatever  form  these 
may  take,  he  may  learn  from  them,  and  jn-ofit  by  them, 
and  be  content  in  them:  that  his  true  business  in  the 
world  is  to  cultivate  a  strong  dutiful  cliaracter  which  shall 
prepare  him  for  any  world  or  any  fate  ;  and  that  so  long 

Hi* 


244  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.         Chap.  XI.  v.  7,  to 

as  he  can  do  that,  his  main  duty  will  be  done,  his  ruling 
object  attained. 

Is  not  tliis  the  true  wisdom  ?  is  it  not  an  abiding  good  ? 
Pleasures  may  bloom  and  fade.  Speculations  may  shift 
and  change.  Eiches  may  come  and  go — what  else  have 
they  wings  for  ?  The  body  may  sicken  or  strengthen.  The 
favour  of  men  may  be  conferred  and  withdrawn.  There 
js  no  stability  in  these  ;  and  if  we  are  dependent  on  them, 
we  shall  be  variable  and  inconstant  as  they  are.  But  if 
we  make  it  our  chief  aim  to  do  our  duty  whatever  it  may 
be,  and  to  love  our  neighbour  even  though  he  be  envious 
and  thankless  ;  we  have  an  aim  always  within  our  reach, 
a  duty  we  may  be  always  doing,  a  good  enduring  as  the 
immortal  soul,  and  therefore  a  good  we  may  enjoy  for 
ever.  Standing  on  this  rock,  "  the  light  will  be  sweet  to 
us,  and  it  shall  be  pleasant  to  our  eyes  to  behold  the  sun," 
whatever  the  day,  or  the  world,  on  which  he  may  rise 
(V.  7). 

But  is  all  our  life  to  be  taken  up  in  meeting  the  claims 
of  Duty  and  Charity  ?  Are  we  never  to  relax  into  mirth  ? 
never  to  look  forward  to  a  time  in  which  reward  will  be 
more  exactly  adjusted  to  service  ?  Yes ;  we  are  to  do  both 
this  and  that.  It  is  very  true  that  he  who  makes  it  his 
ruling  aim  to  do  the  present  duty  and  leave  the  future  with 
God,  will  live  a  happy  because  a  useful  life.  He  that 
walks  tliis  path  of  duty 


Chap.  XI.  v.  8.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  246 


only  thirsting 
For  the  right,  and  learns  to  deaden 
Love  of  self,  before  his  joumcj-  closes, 
He  shall  find  the  stubborn  thistle  bursting 
Into  glossy  purples,  which  outredden 
All  voluptuous  garden  roses. 

The  patli  may  often  be  difficult  and  steep  ;  it  may  be  over- 
hung with  threatening  rocks  and  strewed  with  "  stones  of 
offence ; "  but  he  who  pursues  it,  still  pressing  on  "  through 
the  long  gorge  "  and  winning  his  way  upward, 

Shall  find  the  toppling  crags  of  Duty  scaled. 

Are  close  upon  the  shining  table-lands 

To  which  our  God  Himself  is  moon  and  sun. 

Nevertheless,  if  his  life  is  to  be  full  and  complete,  he  must 
be  able  to  pluck  whatever  bright  flowers  of  joy  spring 
beside  his  path,  to  find  "  laughing  waters  "  in  the  crags 
he  climbs,  and  to  rejoice  not  only  in  "  the  glossy  purples  " 
of  the  stubborn  thistle,  but  in  the  delicate  beauty  of  the 
ferns,  the  pure  grace  of  the  cyclamens,  and  the  sweet  breath 
of  the  fragrant  grasses  and  flowers  which  haunt  those  severe 
heifrhts.  If  he  is  to  be  a  man  rather  than  a  Stoic  or  an 
Anchorite,  he  must  add  to  his  sense  of  duty  a  keen  delight 
in  all  lieauty,  all  grace,  all  pleasure.  For  the  sake  of  others, 
too,  as  well  as  for  his  own  sake,  he  must  carry  with  him 
"  the  merry  heart  which  doeth  good  like  a  medicine,"  since 
lacking  that,  ho  will  neither  do  all  llu^  good  he  might,  nor 


246  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.         Chap.  XI.  v.  8,  to 

himself  become  perfect  and  complete.  And  it  is  proof,  I 
think,  of  the  good  divinity  no  less  than  of  the  broad  hu- 
manity of  the  Preacher,  that  he  lays  much  stress  on  this 
point.  He  not  only  bids  us  enjoy  life,  but  gives  us  cogent 
reasons  for  enjoying  it.  "  Even,"  he  says,  "if  a  man  should 
live  many  years,  he  ought  to  enjoy  them  all."  But  why  ? 
"  Because  there  will  be  many  dark  days,"  days  of  old  age 
and  its  accompanying  infirmities,  in  which  pleasures  will 
lose  their  charm ;  days  of  death  in  which  he  will  sleep 
quietly  in  the  dark  stillness  of  the  grave,  beyond  the  touch 
of  the  happy  excitements  granted  us  here  (v.  8).  There- 
fore the  man  who  attains  the  Chief  Good  will  not  only  do 
the  duty  of  the  moment ;  he  will  also  enjoy  the  pleasure  of 
the  moment.  He  will  not  toil  through  the  day  of  life,  till, 
spent  and  weary,  he  has  no  power  to  enjoy  his  "  much 
goods,"  or  no  time  for  his  soul  to  "  make  merry  and  be 
glad."  Wliile  he  is  "  a  young  man,"  lie  will  "  rejoice  in 
his  youth,  and  let  his  heart  cheer  liim,"  and  go  after  the 
pleasures  which  attract  youth  (v.  9).  While  his  heart  is 
still  fresh,  when  pleasures  are  most  innocent  and  healthful, 
easiest  of  attainment  and  unalloyed  by  anxiety  and  care, 
he  will  cultivate  that  cheerful  happy  temper  whicli  is  a 
prime  safeguard  against  vice,  discontent,  and  the  morose 
fretfidness  of  a  selfish  old  age. 

ComLinod  with  a  -r>i.i>i^-j^  ri-  n 

stoadfiist  Faith  in  the         But  sott ;  IS  uot  our  luau  01  men  becoming  a  mere  man  of 

1  c  to  coiuo.  pleasure  ?     "Will  not  he  run  the  riot  of  the  senses,  and  soon 

Chap!  xii.,\-.  7.  "       have  to  say  to  Mirth  "  Thou  art  mad  !  "  and  to  Pleasure' 


Chap.  XI.  v.  9.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  247 

"  What  canst  thou  do  ? "     No  :  for  he  is  not  a  mere  votary 
of  Pleasure.     As  we  have  seen,  he  recognizes  the  claims  of 
Duty  and  of  Charity,  and  does  not  reject  these  for  that. 
These  keep  his  pleasures  sweet  and  wholesome,  prevent 
them  from  usurping  the  whole  man  and  landing  him  in  the 
weariness  and  satiety  of  dissipation.     But  lest  even  these 
safeguards  should  prove  insufficient,  he  has  also  this :  he 
knows  that  "  God  will  bring  him  into  judgment;  "  that  all 
his  works,  whether  of  charity  or  duty  or  recreation,  will  be 
weighed  in  the  balance  of  Divine  Justice  (v.  9).     This  is 
the  simple  secret  of  the  pure  heart — the  heart  that  is  kept 
pure  amid  all  labours  and  cares  and  joys.     But  the  in- 
tention of  the  Preacher  in  thus  adverting  to  tlic  Divine 
Judgment  has  been  gravely  misconstrued — wrested  even  to 
its  very  opposite.     Wo  too  much  forget  what  that  Judgment 
must  have  seemed  to  the  enslaved  Jews ; — how  weighty  a 
consolation !  how  bright  a  hope !  They  were  captive  exiles, 
oppressed  by  profligate  despotic  lords.     Cleaving  to  the 
Divine  Law  with  a  passionate  loyalty  such  as  they  had 
never  felt  in  happier  days,  they  were  nevertheless  exposed 
to  the  most  dire  and  constant  misfortunes.     All  the  bles- 
sings which  the  Law  pronounced  on  the  obedient  seemed 
withheld  from  them,  all  its  promises  of  good  and  peace  to 
be  falsified ;  the  wicked  triumphed  over  them,  and  pros- 
pered in  their  wickedness.     Now  to  a  people  whose  con- 
victions and  hopes  had  suffered  this  miserable  defeat,  what 
truth  would  be  more  welcome  than  that  of  a  life  to  come, 


248  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.         Chap.  XI.  v.  9,  to 

in  which  all  wrongs  should  be  both  righted  and  avenged,  and 
all  the  promises  in  which  they  had  hoped  should  receive  a 
large  fulfdment  that  would  beggar  hope  ?  what  prospect 
could  be  more  cheerful  and  consolatory  than  that  of  a  day 
of  retribution,  on  which  their  oppressors  would  be  shamed, 
and  lIieTj  be  recompensed  for  their  fidelity  to  the  Law  of 
God?  This  hope  would  be  sweeter  to  them  than  any 
pleasure  :  it  would  lend  a  new  zest  to  every  pleasure,  and 
make  them  more  zealous  in  good  worlcs.* 


*  Nay,  we  Icnow  from  the  Psalms  composed  during  tlio  period  of  the  Captivity 
that  the  judgment  of  God  was  an  incentive  to  hope  and  joy ;  that,  instead  of 
fearing  it,  the  oppressed  captives  looked  forward  to  it  with  rapture  and  exulta- 
tion. What,  for  example,  can  he  more  riant  and  joyful  than  the  concluding 
strophe  of  Psalm  xcvi.  ? 

Let  the  heavens  rejoice  and  let  the  earth  he  glad, 

Let  the  sea  make  a  noise  and  all  that  therein  is ; 
Let  the  field  be  joyful  and  all  that  is  in  it, 
And  let  all  the  trees  of  the  wood  rejoice 
Before  Jehovah  ;  for  He  comcth, 

For  He  cometh  to  judge  the  Earth, 
To  judge  the  world  tcith  His  righteousness 
And  the  people  tvith  His  truth  : 
or  than  the  third  strophe  of  Psalm  xcviii.  ? 

Let  the  sea  make  a  noise  and  all  that  therein  is, 

The  world  and  they  that  dwell  in  it ; 
Let  the  floods  clap  their  hands 

And  let  the  hills  be  joyful  together, 
Before  Jehovah ;  for  He  comcth  to  judge  the  Earth  : 
With  righteousness  shall  He  judge  the  world, 
And  the  people  with  equity. 
It  is  impossible  to  read  these  verses  without  feeling  tliat  the  Jews  of  the 
Caj)tivity  anticipated  the  Divine  Judgment,  not  M'ith  fear  and  dread,  but  \vith 
a  hope  the  most  bright  and  glad. 


Chap.  XI.  v.  10.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  249 

If  we  remembered  this,  wc  should  not  so  readily  agree 
with  those  Commentators  who  suppose  the  Preacher  to  ho 
speaking  ironically  in  this  verse  (v.  9),  as  thougli  he  would 
defy  his  readers  to  enjoy  their  pleasures  with  the  thought 
of  God  and  His  judgment  in  their  minds.  We  should 
rather  understand  that  he  was  making  their  life  more 
cheerful  to  them ;  that  he  was  removing  the  blight  of 
liopeless  despair  which  had  fallen  on  it ;  that  he  was  kind- 
ling in  their  dreary  future  a  light  which  would  shine  even 
upon  the  darkened  present  with  most  gracious  and  kindly 
rays.  All  wTongs  would  be  easier  to  bear,  all  duties  would 
be  more  heartily  done,  aU  alleviating  pleasures  woidd  grow 
more  welcome,  if  once  they  were  fully  persuaded  that  there 
was  a  life  beyond  death,  a  life  in  which  the  good  would  be 
"  comforted "  and  the  evil  "  tormented."  It  is  on  the 
express  ground  that  there  is  a  Judgment,  that  the  Preacher, 
in  the  last  verse  of  this  Eleventh  Chapter,  bids  them  "  ban- 
ish care  and  sadness : " — though  he  also  adds  another  rea- 
son, a  reason  which  no  longer  afficts  him,  viz.  that  "  youth 
and  manhood  are  vanity."  Mark  how  quickly  the  force  of 
this  great  hope  has  reversed  his  position.  Only  in  the 
eighth  verse  of  this  Chapter,  the  very  instant  before  he 
states  his  hope,  he  urges  men  to  enjoy  the  present, "  because 
all  that  is  coming  is  vanity,"  because  there  were  so  many 
dark  days,  days  of  infirm  age  and  dreary  death,  at  hand. 
But  here,  in  the  tenth  verse,  the  very  moment  he  has  stated 
his  hope  of  a  future  life,  he  urges  them  to  enjoy  the  present' 


250  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.         Chap.  XI.  v.  10,  to 

not  because  the  future  is  vanity,  but  because  the  present  is 
vanity,  because  youth  and  manhood  soon  pass  and  the 
pleasures  proper  to  them  will  soon  be  out  of  reach.  Why 
should  they  be  any  longer  fretted  with  care  and  anxiety 
when  the  Lamp  of  Eevelation  shone  so  brightly  on  the 
future  ?  Wliy  should  they  not  be  cheerful  when  so  happy 
a  prospect  lay  before  them  ?  Why  should  they  sit  brooding 
over  their  wrongs  when  their  wrongs  were  so  soon  to  be 
righted  and  they  were  to  enter  on  so  ample  a  recompense 
of  reward?  Wliy  should  they  not  travel  towards  that 
happy  future  with  light  hearts,  hearts  attuned  to  mirth, 
and  responsive  to  every  touch  of  pleasure  ? 

But  is  the  thought  of  the  Judgment  to  be  no  check  on 
our  pleasures  ?  Well,  it  is  certainly  used  in  this  passage 
as  an  incentive  to  pleasure.  AVe  are  to  be  happy  because 
we  are  to  meet  God,  because  there  is  a  bright  future  life, 
because  in  the  Judgment  He  will  compensate  all  the  wrongs 
and  afflictions  of  time.  But  it  is  not  every  one  who  can 
take  to  himself  the  full  comfort  of  this  argument.  Only 
he  can  do  that,  who  makes  it  his  ruling  aim  to  do  his  duty 
and  to  help  his  neighbour.  And  no  doubt  even  he  will 
find  the  hope  of  judgment — for  with  him  it  is  a  hope, 
not  a  fear — a  valuable  check  not  on  his  pleasures,  but  on 
those  base  counterfeits  which  often  pass  for  pleasures,  and 
which  betray  men  through  voluptuousness  into  satiety, 
disgust,  remorse.  Because  he  hopes  to  meet  God,  and  has 
to    give    account  of   himself  to  God,    he  will  resist  the 


Chap.  XII.  v.  I.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  261 


evil  lusts  .vhich  pollute  and  degrade  the  soul :  and  thus 
the  prospect  of  the  Judgment  will  become  a  safeguard  and 
a  defence.  r>ut  he  has  a  safeguard  of  even  a  more  sove- 
reign potency  than  this.  For  he  not  only  looks  forward  to 
a  future  judgment ;  he  is  conscious  of  a  present  and 
constant  judgment.  God  is  with  him  wherever  he  goes. 
From  "  the  days  of  his  youth,"  he  has  "  remembered  his 
Creator "  (chap.  xii.  v.  1).  He  has  remembered  Him  ; 
and  given  to  the  poor  and  needy.  He  has  remembered 
Him,  and,  doing  all  things  as  to  Him,  duty  has  grown 
light.  He  has  remembered  Him,  and  his  pleasures  liave 
groAvn  the  sweeter  because  they  were  gifts  from  Heaven, 
and  because  he  has  taken  them,  in  a  thankful  spirit,  for  a 
temperate  enjoyment.  Of  all  safeguards  to  a  life  of  virtue, 
this  is  the  noblest  and  the  best.  We  can  afford,  indeed, 
to  part  with  none  of  them,  for  we  are  very  weak  and 
need  all  helps ;  but  least  of  all  can  we  afford  to  part  with 
this.  We  need  to  remember  that  we  must  all  appear 
before  the  judgment-seat  of  God,  to  render  an  account  of 
the  deeds  done  in  the  body.  But  above  all — if  love,  and 
not  fear,  is  to  be  the  animating  spirit  of  our  life — we  need 
to  remember  that  God  is  always  with  us  ;  observing  wliat 
we  do,  not  that  He  may  gather  heavy  charges  against  us, 
but  tliat  He  may  help  us  to  do  well ;  not  to  frown  upon 
our  pleasures,  but  to  hallow  and  deepen  and  prolong  tliem, 
and  to  be  Himself  our  Chief  Good  and  our  Supreme 
Delidit. 


2o2  THE  QUBST  ACHIEVED.       Chap.  XII.  v.  1,  to 

'  Live  while  you  live,'  the  Epiciu-e  would  say, 
*  And  seize  the  pleasui-o  of  the  present  day.' 
'  Live  "while  you  live,'  the  Sacred  Preacher  cries, 
'  And  give  to  God  each  moment  as  it  flies.' 

Lord,  in  my  view  lot  both  united  be, 

I  live  in  pleasure  while  I  live  in  Thee.* 

Finally,  the  Preacher  enforces  this  early  and  habitual 
reference  of  the  soul  to  the  Divine  Presence  and  Will 
by  a  brief  allusion  to  the  impotence  and  weariness  of  a 
godless  old  age,  and  by  a  very  striking  description  of  the 
terrors  of  the  death  in  which  it  culminates. 

While  "  the  dew  of  youth  "  is  still  fresh  upon  us  we  are 
to  "  remember  our  Creator "  and  His  constant  judgment 
of  us,  lest,  forgetting  Him,  we  should  waste  our  powers  in 
sensual  excess ;  lest  temperate  mirth  should  degenerate 
into  an  extravagant  and  wanton  devotion  to  pleasure  ;  lest 
the  lust  of  mere  physical  enjoyment  should  outlive  the 
power  of  enjoyment,  and,  groaning  under  the  penalties  our 
unbridled  indulgence  has  provoked,  we  should  find  "  days 
of  evil "  rise  on  us  in  long  succession  and  draw  out  into 
"  years  "  of  fruitless  desire,  self-disgust,  and  despair  (verse 
1).  "  Before  the  evil  days  come,"  and  that  they  may  not 
come ;  before  "  the  years  arrive  of  which  we  shall  say  '  I 
have  no  pleasure  in  them !'"  and  that  they  may  not  arrive, 


*  Dxm  vivimus  viviamiis. — Doddridge. 


Chap.  XII.'v.  6.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  253 

■\vc  are  to  bethink  us  of  the  Pure  and  A^vful  Presence  in 
which  we  daily  stand.  God  is  with  us  that  we  may  not 
sin  ;  with  us  in  youth  that  the  angel  of  Ilis  Presence  may 
save  us  from  the  sins  to  whicli  youth  is  prone  ;  with  us  to 
save  us  from  the  sins  of  youth  that  our  closing  years 
may  have  the  cheerful  serenity  of  happy  old  age. 

To  this  admonition  drawn  from  the  miseries  of  godless 
age,  the  Preacher  subjoins  a  description  of  the  terrors  of 
approaching  death  (w.  2 — 5), — a  description  which  has 
suftered  many  strange  torments  at  the  hands  of  the  Com- 
mentators. It  has  commonly  been  read  as  an  allegorical, 
but  singularly  accurate,  diagnosis  of  the  breaking  up  of 
man's  physical  frame,  as  setting  forth  in  graphic  figures  the 
gradual  decay  of  sense  after  sense,  faculty  after  faculty.* 


*  It  may  be  worth  while  to  specify  some  of  the  gross  and  absurd  conjectures, 
8omo  also  of  the  strange  differences,  into  which  what  may  be  called  the 
malical  reading  of  this  passage  has  betrayed  even  the  most  learned  Commen- 
tators. Ginsburg,  who  really  seems  to  have  read  well-nigh  all  in  evei-y  language 
which  has  been  written  on  Ecclesiastes,  has  a  wonderful  collection  of  them 
distributed  through  his  "  Notes  "  to  these  verses.  I  select  and  combine  a  few 
of  them.  The  darkening  of  the  sun,  the  light,  the  moon,  and  the  st<irs  (verse  2), 
for  instance,  is  taken  by  one  great  authority  (the  Talmud)  to  mean  the  dark- 
ening of  the  forehead,  the  nose,  the  soul,  and  the  teeth  ;  by  another  (the  Chaldce 
Para phrast),  the  obscuring  of  the  face,  tU  eyes,  the  checks,  and  the  apples  of  the 
eyes;  by  a  third  (Dr.  Smith,  in  his  "  Portraitui-e  of  Old  Age"),  for  the  decay 
of  all  the  mental  faculties.  That  "  the  clouds  return  after  the  rain"  signifies, 
according  to  Ibn  Ezra,  the  constant  dimness  of  the  eyes  ;  according  to  Le  Clerc, 
a  had  influenza,  accompanied uith  unceasing  snujfliny.  "The  keepers  of  the 
house  "  (verse  3)  arc  the  fibs  and  the  loins  (Talmud),  the  kncis  (Chaldce),  and 
the  hands   and  arms    (Ibn   Ezra).     "The  men   of   power"    are    the    thighs 


•2oi  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.       Chap.  XII.  v.  2,  to 

Learned  physicians  have  written  treatises  upon  it,  and  have 
been  lost  in  admiration  of  the  force  and  beauty  of  the 
metaphors  in  which  it  conveys  the  results  of  their  special 
science,  although  they  differ  in  their  interpretation  of  al- 
most every  sentence,  and  are  driven  at  times  to  the  most 
gross  and  absurd  conjectures  in  order  to  sustain  their 
several  theories.     I  need  not  trouble  you,  however,  with 


(Talmud),  and  the  arms  (Chaldcc).  "  The  grinding  maids  "  are  the  teeth,  and 
"  the  ■women  who  look  out  of  windows  "  are  the  eyes.  "  The  door  closed  on 
the  street"  is  the  pores  of  the  skin  (Dr.  Smith),  the  lips  (Ibn  Ezra),  and  the 
eyes  {HenstenheTg).  That  "  the  noise  of  the  mill  grows  faint"  (verse  4) 
means  that  the  mastieation  of  food  becomes  imperfect  (Dr.  Smith),  that  the 
appetite  fails  (Chaldee),  that  the  voice  grows  feeble  (Grotius).  That  "  the 
song-birds  descend  to  their  nests  "  signifies  that  music  and  songs  are  a  bore  to 
the  aged  man  (Talmud),  that  he  is  no  longer  able  to  sing  (Chaldee),  that  his 
ears  are  heavy  (Grotius).  The  allusion  to  "  the  almond  "  (verse  5)  denotes  that 
the  haunch-bone  shall  come  oxU  from  leanness  (Talmud),  or  (Reynolds)  it  denotes 
the  hoary  hair  ivhich  comes  qtdckly  on  a  man,  just  as  the  almond-tree  thrusts 
out  her  blossoms  before  any  other  tree;  while  at  least  half-a-dozen  scholars 
and  physicians  aflBrm  that  it  points  to  mcmbrum  gcntilce  or  glans  virilis. 
That  "  the  locust  becomes  a  burden  "  means  that  the  ankles  sicell  (Chaldee), 
gout  in  the  feet  {Jerome),  a  projecting  stomach  (Lc  Clcrc),  the  dry  shrivelled 
frame  of  an  old  man  (Dr.  Smith).  Almost  all  modern  Commentators  take  the 
reference  to  "  the  caper-berry  "  as  marking  that  provocatives  to  lust  lose  their 
power  ^vith  the  aged.  "  The  silver  cord  "  and  "  golden  bowl "  of  verse  6,  arc 
the  tongue  and  the  skull  (Chaldee),  S2)ina  dorsi  and  pia  mater,  backbone  and 
brain  (Dr.  Smith),  urine  and  bladder  (Gasper  Sanctius)  ;  while  "the  bucket" 
is  either  the  gall  or  the  right  ventricle  of  the  heart,  and  "the  wheel"  that 
draws  the  water  is  an  image  of  the  air-inspiring  lungs. 

Now  of  course  it  would  not  be  just  to  condemn  any  interpretation  simply 
because  it  is  weighted  with  absurdities  aud  contradictions,  though  it  surely 
rc(iuircs  a  very  strong  theory  to  carry  such  a  mass  of  gross  and  opposed 
readings   us  I   have  just   cited.     But  when  an  interpretation  is  so  obviously 


Chap.  XII.  v.  6.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  256 


any  detailed  account  of  their  speculations,  for  the  simple 
reason  that  they  are  based,  as  I  believe,  on  an  entire  mis- 
conception of  the  Sacred  Text.  Instead  of  being,  as  they 
have  supposed,  a  figurative  description  of  the  dissolution  of 
the  body,  it  sets  forth  the  threatening  approach  of  Deatli 
under  the  image  of  a  tempest  which,  gathering  over  an 
Eastern  city  during  the  day,  breaks  upon  it  towards  even- 
iuf'.  I  do  not  know  that  we  can  better  arrive  at  its  mean- 
ing  and  force  than  by  considering  what  would  be  the  inci- 
dents which  would  strike  us  if  we  were  to  stroll  through 
the  narrow  tortuous  streets  of  such  a  city  as  the  day  was 


closing  in. 


As  we  passed  along  we  should  find  rows  of  small  houses 
and  shops,  broken  here  and  there  by  a  wide  stretch  of  blank 
wall,  behind  which  were  the  mansions,  harems,  courtyards 
of  its  wealthier  inhabitants.  Hound  and  within  the  low 
narrow  gates  which  gave  access  to  these  mansions,  we 
should  see  armed  men  lounging  M-hose  duty  it  is  to  guard 


forced  and  fiinciful  as  that  wc  arc  lierc  considering,  when  it  is  so  remarkably 
ingenious  and  leaves  to  ingenuity  so  wide  and  lawless  a  scope,  wc  shall  do  well 
to  hesitate  before  accepting  it.  And  if  another  interpretation  be  oflcred  us,  aa 
in  the  text,  which  gives  a  literal  rendering  to  every  phrase  instead  of  a  figurative 
rendering,  which  bases  itself  on  the  common  household  facts  of  Eastern  expe- 
rience instead  of  on  the  niceties  of  Western  science,  which  instead  of  being 
contradictory  and  absurd  is  coherent  and  impressive,  wc  really  have  no  alter- 
native before  us.  "We  cannot  but  reject  the  former  for  the  latter  interpretation  ; 
the  ingenious  puzzle,  capable  of  so  many  and  various  solutions,  loses  its  chai-m 
when  confronted  with  the  simplicities  of  Nature  and  Truth. 


256  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.       Chap.  XII.  v.  2,  to 

the  premises  against  robbers  and  intruders  :  these  are  "  the 
keepers  of  the  house  "  (v.  3),  over  whom,  as  over  the  whole 
househokl,  are  placed  superior  officials,  or  "  men  of  power." 
Going  through  the  gates  and  glancing  up  at  the  latticed 
windows,  we  might  catch  glimpses  of  the  veiled  faces  of  the 
ladies  of  the  house  who,  not  being  permitted  to  stir  abroad 
except  on  rare  occasions  and  under  jealous  guardianship, 
are  accustomed  to  amuse  their  dreary  leisure,  and  to  learn 
a  little  of  what  is  going  on  around  them,  by  "  looking  out 
of  the  windows."  Within  the  house,  the  gentlemen  of  the 
family  would  be  enjoying  the  chief  meal  of  the  day,  pro- 
voking appetite  with  delicacies  such  as  "  the  locust,"  *  or 
condiments  such  as   "the  caper-berry," -f*  or  with  choice 


*  This  locust  (Chagab)  is  one  of  the  four  kinds  which  the  Law  of  Moses 
marked  out  as  fit  for  human  food.  To  this  day  locusts  are  held  in  the  East  to  bo 
a  very  agreeable  and  nutritious  diet.  There  arc  many  ways  of  j^reparing  them 
for  the  table.  They  may  be  pounded  with  flour  and  water,  and  made  into 
cakes.  They  may  be  smoked,  boiled,  roasted,  stewed,  and  fried  in  butter. 
They  may  be  salted  with  salt ;  and  thus  treated,  are  eaten  by  the  Arabs  as  a 
great  delicacy.  Or  they  may  be  dried  in  the  sun,  and  then  steeped  in  wine  : 
baskets  of  them,  prepared  in  this  way,  are  to  be  commonly  seen  in  Eastern 
markets.  Dr.  Kitto,  who  often  ate  them,  says  that  they  taste  more  like 
shrimps  than  anything  else.  Dr.  Shaw  says  that  they  are  quite  as  good  as  our 
fresh-water  crayfish. 

•)■  The  Caper  plant  grows  abundantly  in  Asia,  as  it  docs  also  in  Africa  and 
Southern  Europe.  It  commonly  springs  in  the  crevices  of  walls,  on_heaps  of 
ruins,  or  on  barren  wastes,  and  forms  a  diffuse  many-branched  shrub.  Its 
flowers  are  large  and  showy  ;  the  four  petals  arc  white,  but  the  long  numerous 
stamens  have  their  filaments  tinged  with  purple,  and  terminate  in  yellow  anthers. 
As  the  ovary  ripens  it  droops  and  forms  a  pear-shaped  berry,  which  holds  in  its 


Chap.  XII,  v.  6.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  2.57 

fruit  such  as  "  the  ahnond."*  Above  all  the  shrill  cries  and 
noises  of  the  city  you  would  hear  a  loud  lunnniing  sound 
rising  on  every  side,  for  which  you  would  be  sorely  puzzled 
to  account  if  you  were  a  stranger  to  Eastern  habits.  It  is 
the  sound  of  the  cornmills  which  towards  evening  are  at 
work  in  every  house.  A  cornmill  was  indispensable  to 
every  Eastern  family,  since  there  wxre  no  public  mills  or 
bakers  except  the  king's.  The  heat  of  the  climate  makes  it 
necessary  that  corn  should  be  ground  and  bread  baked 
every  day.  And  as  the  task  of  grinding  at  the  mill  was 
very  irksome,  only  the  most  menial  class  of  women,  often 
slaves  or  captives,  were  employed  upon  it.  Of  course  the 
noise  occasioned  by  the  upper  upon  the  nether  millstone 
was  very  gi-eat  when  the  mills  were  sinmltaneously  at  work 
in  every  house  in  the  city.  No  sound  is  more  familiar  in 
the  East ;  and  if  it  were  suddenly  stopped,  the  effect  would 
be  as  striking  as  the  sudden  stoppage  of  all  the  wheels 
of  traffic  in  one  of  our  English  towns.     So  familiar  was 


pulp  mnny  small  seeds.  Almost  every  part  of  the  slinib  has  been  used  as  a 
condiiuoiit  by  the  ancients.  The  stalk  and  seed  were  salted,  or  preserved  in 
vinof^ar  or  wine.  Its  buds  arc  still  held  an  agreeable  sauce — we  cat  them  with 
bi>iled  mutton.  And  the  berries  possess  irritjint  properties  which  won  them 
high  esteem  among  the  Orientals  as  a  provocative  to  appetite. 

*  The  fruit  of  the  almond-tree  is  still  reckoned  one  of  the  most  delicate  and 
delicious  fruits  in  the  East.  Wo  may  fancy  that  we  are  acquainted  with  it, 
that  we  know  "almonds"  at  least  as  well  as  we  know  "raisins."  But,  I 
believe,  that  the  almond  we  eat  is  only  the  kernel  of  the  stone  in  the  true 
almond  :  the  fruit  itself  is  of  the  .same  order  with  apricots,  peaches,  plums. 

17 


258  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.        Chap.  XII.  v.  2,  to 

the  sound,  indeed,  and  of  such  good  omen,  that  in  Holy 
Writ  it  is  used  as  a  symbol  of  a  happy,  active,  well-provided 
people ;  while  the  cessation  of  it  is  employed  to  denote 
want,  and  desolation,  and  despair.  To  an  Oriental  ear  no 
threat  would  be  more  doleful  and  pathetic  than  that  in 
Jeremiah,*  "  I  will  take  from  them  the  voice  of  mirth  and 
the  voice  of  gladness,  the  voice  of  the  bridegroom  and  the 
voice  of  the  bride,  the  sound  of  the  millstones,  and  the  light 
of  the  candle." 

Now  suppose  that  the  day  on  which  we  rambled  through 
the  city  had  been  lowering  and  boisterous ;  that  heavy 
rain  had  fallen,  obscuring  all  the  lights  of  heaven ;  and 
that,  as  the  evening  drew  on,  the  thick  clouds,  instead  of 
dispersing,  had  "  returned  after  the  rain,"  so  that  setting  sun, 
and  rising  moon,  and  the  growing  light  of  stars  were  all 
blotted  from  view  (v.  2),  The  tempest,  long  in  gathering, 
breaks  on  the  city ;  the  lightnings  flash  through  the  dark- 
ness, making  it  more  hideous;  the  thunder  crashes  and 
rolls  above  the  roofs ;  the  tearing  rain  beats  at  all  lattices 
and  floods  all  roads.  If  we  cared  to  abide  the  pelting  of 
the  storm,  we  should  have  before  us  the  very  scene  which 
the  Preacher  here  depicts.  "  The  keepers  of  the  house," 
the  guards  and  porters,  would  "quake."  "The  men  of 
power,"  the  official  superiors,  would  "  writhe  "  and  tremble 


*  Jorciniiih  xxv.  10. 


Chap.  XII.  v.  6.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  259 

with  apprehension.  The  maids  at  the  mill  would  "  stop  " 
because  one  or  other  of  the  two  women  whom  it  took  to 
work  the  heavy  millstone  had  been  frightened  from  her 
task  by  the  gleaming  lightning  and  the  pealing  thunder. 
The  ladies  looking  out  of  their  lattices  would  be  driven  back 
into  the  darkest  corners  of  the  inner  rooms  of  the  harem. 
Every  door  would  be  closed  and  barred,  lest  robbers,  avail- 
ing themselves  of  the  darkness  and  its  terrors,  should  creep 
in  (v.  3).  "  The  noise  of  the  mills "  would  grow  faint, 
because  the  threatning  tumult  had  "  gi'eatly  diminished  " 
the  number  of  the  grinding-maids.  The  strong-winged 
"  swallow,"  lover  of  wind  and  tempest,  would  fly  to  and  fro 
with  shrieks  of  joy ;  while  the  delicate  "song-birds  "  would 
hurry  to  the  shelter  of  their  nests  and  eaves.  The  gentlemen 
of  the  house  would  lose  all  gust  for  their  delicate  cates* 
and  fruits ;  "  the  almond  would  be  despised,  the  locust 
loathed,  and  even  the  stimulating  caper-berry  provoke  no 
appetite,"  fear  being  a  singularly  unwelcome  and  dis- 
appetizing  guest  at  a  feast.  In  short,  the  whole  peoiile, 
stunned  and  confused  by  the  awful  and  stupendous  ma- 


•  Sir  Henry  Rawlinson  says :  "  At  the  present  day,  among-  the  '  bons  ^•ivant8 ' 
of  Persia,  it  is  usual  to  sit  for  hours  before  dinner  drinking  wine  and  catinp 
dried  fruits,  such  as  filberts,  almonds,  pistachio-nuts,  melon-seeds,  &c.  A 
party,  indeed,  often  sits  down  at  seven  o'clock,  and  the  dinner  is  not  brought  in 
till  eleven.  The  dessert  dishes,  intermingled  as  they  are  with  highly  seasoned 
delicacies,  are  supposed  to  have  the  ctfect  of  stimulating  the  appetite." 

Notes  to  Riiivlinson' s  Hirodotus,  Vol.  I.  p.  '271. 

17* 


2G0  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.       Chap.  XII.  v.  5,  to 

jcsty  of  a  tropical  storm,  would  be  "affrighted"  at  "the 
terrors  "  Avhich  came  flaming  from  "  the  height "  of  heaven 
to  confront  them  "in  their  way  "  (w.  4,  5). 

Such  and  so  terrible  is  the  tempest  that  at  times  sweeps 
over  an  Eastern  city.*  Such  and  so  terrible,  adds  the 
Preacher,  is  death  to  the  godless  and  sensual.  They  are 
carried  away  as  by  a  storm ;  the  wind  riseth  and  snatchetli 
them  out  of  their  place.  For  if  we  ask, "  Wliy,  0  Preacher, 
has  your  pencil  laboured  to  depict  the  terrors  of  tempest  ? " 
he  replies,  "  Because  man  goeth  to  his  long  home,  and  the 
mourners  pace  up  and  down  the  street "  (v.  5).  He  leaves 
us  in  no  doubt  as  to  the  moral  of  his  fable,  the  theme  of 
his  picture.  Wliile  painting  it,  while  adding  touch  to 
touch,  he  has  been  thinking  of  "  the  long  home," — or,  as 
the  Hebrew  has  it,  "  the  house  of  eternity ; "  a  phrase  still 
used  by  the  Jews  as  a  synonym  for  "  the  grave  " — which  is 
appointed  for  all  living,  and  of  the  mercenary  professional 
mourners  who  loiter  under  the  windows  of  the  dying  man 
in  the  hope  that  they  may  be  hired  to  lament  him.  To 
the  expiring  sinner  death  is  simply  dreadful.  It  puts  an 
end  to  all  his  activities  and  enjoyments,  just  as  the  tempest 
brings  all  the  labours  and  recreations  of  the  city  to  a  pause. 


*  It  should  be  borne  in  mind  that  the  comparative  rarity  of  thunder-storms 
in  Syi'ia  and  the  adjacent  lands  makes  them  much  more  dreadful  to  the 
inhabitants  of  those  countries.  Tliroup:hout  the  Old  Testament,  and  especially 
in  the  Psalms,  wo  find  many  traces  of  the  dread  which  such  storms  inspired — 
a  dread  ahnost  unaccountable  to  our  accustomed  nerves. 


CiiAi'.  XII.  V.  7.  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  2G1 

llo  lias  nothiii},'  before  liiin  but  llic  grave,  and  none  to 
mourn  him  but  the  harpies  who  already  pace  the  street 
longing  lur  the  moment  when  he  will  be  gone,  and  who 
value  their  fee  far  above  his  life.  If  we  would  have  death 
shorn  of  its  ten-ors  for  us,  w^e  must "  remember  our  Creator  " 
before  death  comes ;  we  must  seek,  by  charity,  by  a  faithful 
discharge  of  duty,  by  a  wise  use  and  a  wise  enjoyment  of 
the  life  that  now  is,  to  have  prepared  ourselves  for  the  life 
which  is  to  come. 

Death  itself,  as  the  Preacher  proceeds  to  remind  us 
(v.  6),  cannot  be  escaped.  Some  day  the  cord  will 
break  and  the  lamp  fall ;  some  day  the  bucket  must 
be  broken  and  the  wheel  shattered.  Death  is  the  common 
event,  the  universal  and  inevitable  event.  It  befalls  not 
only  the  sinful  and  injurious,  but  also  the  useful  and  the 
good.  Our  life  may  have  been  like  a  "golden"  lamp 
suspended  by  "  silver  "  chains,  fit  for  the  palace  of  a  king, 
and  may  have  shed  a  welcome  and  cheerful  light  on  every 
side:  but  nevertheless  even  the  durable  costly  chain  will 
be  snapt  at  last  and  the  costly  beautiful  bowl  be  broken. 
Our  life  may  have  been  like  "  the  bucket "  dropped  by 
village  maidens  into  the  village  fountain,  or  like  "the 
wheel "  by  which  water  is  drawn  from  the  city  well ;  it 
may  have  conveyed  a  vital  refreshment  to  many  lips :  but 
nevertheless  the  day  must  come  when  the  bucket  will  be 
shattered  on  the  marble  edge  of  the  fountain,  and  the  time- 
worn  wheel  drop  into  the  well.     There  is  no  escape  from 


262  THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED. 

death.  And,  therefore,  as  we  must  all  die,  let  us  all  live 
as  cheerfully  and  helpfully  as  we  can :  let  us  all  prepare  for 
the  better  life  beyond  the  grave  by  serving  our  Creator 
before  "  the  body  is  cast  upon  the  earth  from  which  it 
came,  and  the  spirit  returns  to  God  who  gave  it  "  (v.  7). 

This,  then,  is  the  man  who  achieves  the  Quest  of  the 
Chief  Good. — Charitable,  dvitiful,  cheerful,  he  prepares 
himself  for  death  by  a  useful  and  happy  life,  for  future 
judgment  by  a  constant  reference  to  the  present  judgment, 
for  meeting  God  hereafter  by  dwelling  with  Him  here. 

Has  he  not  achieved  the  Quest  ?  Can  we  hope  to  find 
a  more  solid,  enduring,  universal  Good  ?  What  to  him  are 
the  shocks  of  Change,  the  blows  of  Circumstance,  the 
mutations  of  Time,  the  fluctuations  of  Fortune?  These 
cannot  touch  the  Good  which  he  holds  to  be  Chief.  If 
they  bring  trouble,  he  can  bear  trouble  and  profit  by  it :  if 
they  bring  prosperity,  happiness,  mirth,  he  can  bear  even 
these,  and  not  value  them  beyond  their  worth  or  abuse 
them  to  his  hurt :  for  his  Good,  and  therefore  his  peace  and 
blessedness,  are  founded  on  a  Rock  over  which  the 
changeful  waves  may  wash,  but  against  which  they  cannot 
prevail.  Let  the  sun  shine  never  so  hotly,  let  the  storm 
beat  never  so  furiously,  the  Rock  stands  firm,  and  the 
house  which  he  has  built  for  himself  upon  the  Rock. 
Whatever  may  befall,  he  can  be  doing  his  main  woik, 
enjoying  his  supreme  satisfaction,  since  he  can  meet  uU 


THE  QUEST  ACHIEVED.  263 

changes  with  a  dutiful  and  loving  heart ;  since  through  all 
he  may  he  forming  a  nohle  character  and  helping  his 
neighbours  to  form  a  character  as  noble  as  his  own. 
Because  he  has  a  gracious  God  always  with  him,  and 
because  a  bright  future  stretches  before  him  in  endless  and 
widening  vistas  of  hope,  he  can  carry  to  all  the  wrongs  and 
afllictions  of  time  a  cheerful  spirit  which  shines  througli 
them  with  transfiguring  rays, — a  spirit  before  which  even 
the  thick  darkness  of  death  will  grow  light,  and  the 
solemnities  of  the  Judgment  be  turned  into  holiday 
festivity  and  triumph.  Ah,  foolish  and  miserable  that  we 
are,  who,  with  so  noble  a  life,  and  so  bright  a  prospect,  and 
a  Good  so  enduring  open  to  us,  nevertheless  creep  about 
the  earth  the  slaves  of  every  accident,  the  very  fools  of 
Time ! 


THE  EPILOGUE: 

In  which  the  rroUcm  of  tlic  Book  is  conclusively  solved. 

Chap.  XII.  vv.  8—14. 


jTUDENTS,"  says  the  Talmud,  "arc  of  four 
kinds :  they  are  like  a  sponge,  a  funnel,  a 
strainer,  and  a  sieve :  like  a  sponge  that 
sucketh  all  up  ;  like  a  funnel  which  receiveth  at  one  end 
and  dischargeth  at  the  other ;  like  a  strainer  which  letteth 
the  wine  pass  but  retaineth  the  lees ;  and  like  a  sieve 
which  dischargeth  the  bran  but  retaineth  the  corn."  To 
which  of  these  shall  we  liken  the  Preacher  ?  We  can  only 
liken  him  to  the  "  sieve."  He  is  the  good  student  who  has 
sifted  all  the  schemes  and  thoughts  and  pursuits  of  men, 
separating  the  wheat  from  the  bran,  teaching  us  to  know 
the  bran  as  bran,  the  wheat  as  wheat.  It  is  a  true  "  corn 
of  heaven  "  which  he  offers  us,  and  not  any  of  the  husks 
to  obtain  which  reckless  and  prodigal  man  has  often  wasted 
his  whole  living, — husks  which,  though  they  have  tlie  form 
and  line  of  wheat,  have  not  its  life  and  nutriment,  and 
cannot  therefore  satisfy  the  keen  hunger  of  the  soul. 


THE  EPILOGUE.  266 


Wc  have  now  followed  the  sifting  process  to  its  close  ; 
much  bran  lies  about  our  feet,  but  a  little  corn  is  in  our 
hands,  and  from  this  little  there  may  grow  "  a  harvest  unto 
life."  Stiirting  in  (^uest  of  that  Chief  Good  in  which,  when 
once  it  is  attained,  we  can  rest  with  an  unbroken  and 
measureless  content,  we  have  learned  that  it  is  not  to  be 
found  in  Wisdom,  in  Pleasure,  in  Devotion  to  Business 
and  I'ublic  Affairs,  in  a  modest  Competence  or  in  bomidless 
Wealth.  We  have  learned  that  only  he  achieves  this 
supreme  Quest  who  is  "  charitable,  dutiful,  cheerful ; "  only 
he  who  "  by  a  wise  use  and  a  wise  enjoyment  of  the  pre- 
sent life  prepares  himself  for  the  life  which  is  to  come." 
We  have  learned  that  the  best  incentives  to  this  life  of 
virtue,  and  its  best  safeguards,  are  a  constant  remembrance 
of  our  Creator  and  of  His  perpetual  presence  with  us,  and  a 
constant  hope  of  that  future  judgment  in  which  all  the 
wrongs  of  time  are  to  be  redressed  and  recompensed.  And 
here  we  might  think  our  task  was  ended.  We  might  sup- 
pose that  the  Preacher  would  dismiss  us  from  the  School 
in  which  he  has  so  long  held  us  by  his  sage  maxims,  his 
vivid  illustrations,  his  gracious  warnings  and  encourage- 
ments. But  even  yet  he  will  not  suffer  us  to  depart.  He 
has  still  "  words  to  utter  for  God,"  words  which  it  will  be 
well  for  us  to  hear.  As  in  the  Prologue  prefixed  to  this 
Drama  he  had  stated  the  Problem  he  was  about  to  take  in 
hand,  so  now  he  subjoins  an  Epilogue  in  which  he  rc-states 
that  Solution  of  it  at  which  he  has  arrived,     llis  last  words 


266  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  8,  to 

are,  as  we  should  expect  them  to  be,  heavily  weighted  with 
thought.  So  closely  packed  are  his  thoughts,  indeed,  as  to 
give  a  disconnected  and  illogical  tone  to  his  words.  Every 
saying  seems  to  stand  alone,  complete  in  itself:  and  hence 
our  main  difhculty  in  dealing  with  this  Epilogue  is  to  trace 
the  links  of  sequence  which  bind  saying  to  saying,  thought 
to  thought,  and,  having  traced,  to  bear  them  well  in  mind. 
Every  verse  supplies  a  text  for  patient  meditation,  or  a 
theme  which  needs  to  be  illustrated  by  historic  facts  that 
lie  beyond  the  general  reach  :  and  the  danger  is  lest,  while 
dwelling  on  these  separate  themes  and  texts,  we  should 
fail  to  gather  their  connected  meaning  and  to  grasp  the 
large  conclusion  to  which  they  are  all  intended  to 
conduct. 

Coheleth  commences  (v.  8)  by  once  more  striking  the 
key-note  in  which  his  whole  work  is  set :  "Vanity  of  vani- 
ties, saith  the  Preacher,  all  is  vanity  ! "  We  are  not,  how- 
ever, to  take  these  words  as  announcing  his  deliberate  ver- 
dict on  the  sum  of  human  endeavours  and  affairs ;  for  he 
has  now  discovered  the  true  abiding  Good  which  underlies 
all  the  vanities  of  earth  and  time.  His  repetition  of  this 
familiar  phrase  is  simply  a  touch  of  art  by  which  the  Poet 
reminds  us  of  what  the  main  theme  of  his  Poem  has  been, 
of  the  pain  and  weariness  and  disappointment  which  have 
attended  his  long  Quest.  As  it  falls  once  more,  and  for 
the  last  time,  on  our  ear,  we  cannot  but  remember  how 
often,  and  in  what  connections,  we  have  heard  it  before. 


Chap  XII.  v.  9,  THE  EPILOGUE.  267 

Memory  and  Imagination  aro  set  to  work.  The  whole 
course  of  the  Sacred  Drama  passes  swiftly  before  us,  with 
its  mournful  pauses  of  defeated  hope,  as  we  listen  to  this 
echo  of  the  despair  with  which  the  baffled  Preacher  has  so 
often  returned  from  seeking  the  true  Good  in  first  this  and 
then  that  province  of  human  life. 

Having  thus  reminded  us  of  the  several  stages  of  his 
Quest,  and  of  the  verdict  which  he  had  been  compelled  to 
pronounce  at  the  close  of  each,  Coheleth  proceeds  (v.  9) 
to  set  forth  his  qualifications  for  undertaking  this  sore 
task :  "  Not  only  was  the  Preacher  wise,  he  also  taught 
the  people  wisdom,  and  composed  many  parables  with 
care  and  thought."  His  claims  are  that  he  is  a  sage,  a 
public  teacher,  and  an  author ;  his  motive  in  setting  them 
forth  is  doubtless  simply  that  he  may  the  more  deeply 
impress  upon  us  the  conclusion  to  which  he  has  come  and 
which  it  has  cost  him  so  much  to  reach. 

Now  during  the  Captivity  there  was  a  singular  outbreak 
of  literary  activity  in  the  Hebrew  race.  As  yet  this  crisis 
in  their  history  is  little  studied  and  understood ;  but  we 
shall  only  follow  the  Preacher's  meaning,  in  vv.  9 — 12,  as 
we  collect  such  information  concerning  it  as  we  can.  That 
a  change  of  the  most  radical  and  extraordinary  kind  passed 
upon  the  Hebrews  of  this  period,  that  they  were  by  some 
means  drawn  to  a  study  of  the  Sacred  Writings  infinitely 
more  thorough  and  intense  than  any  which  went  before  it, 
we  know :  but  of  the  causes  of  this  change  we  are  yet 


268  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  9,  to 

ignorant.*  A  great,  perliaps  the  greatest,  living  authorityf 
on  this  subject  writes  :  "  One  of  the  most  mysterious  and 
momentous  periods  in  the  history  of  humanity  is  that  brief 
space  of  the  Exile.  What  were  the  influences  brought  to 
bear  on  the  captives  during  that  time,  we  know  not.  But 
this  we  know,  that  from  a  reckless,  lawless,  godless  popu- 
lace, they  returned  transformed  into  a  band  of  Puritans. 
The  religion  of  Zerdusht  (Zoroaster),  though  it  has  left  its 
traces  in  Judaism,  fails  to  account  for  that  change.  .  .  . 
Yet  the  change  is  there,  palpable,  unmistakable — a  change 
which  we  may  regard   as   almost  miraculous.     Scarcely 


*  In  the  Introduction,  however,  I  have  tried  to  give  what  is  known  of  the 
history  of  this  time,  lloufj-hly  speaking',  I  believe  the  Jews  owe  their  literary 
advance  to  contact  with  the  inquisitive  and  learned  Babylonians,  and  their 
relig^ious  advance  to  contact  with  the  pure  faitli  of  the  primitive  Persians. 

t  Emmanuel  Deutsch.  Tbe  passage  will  be  found  in  his  article  on  "  The 
Taliimd  "  in  the  Quarterly  of  October  '67.  No  one  could  well  bo  more  charmed 
with  that  masterly  article  than  I  was,or  more  indebted  to  it — indeed  in  this  Chap- 
ter I  shall  often  quote  from  it :  nevertheless,  I  confess  to  bearing  it  some  little 
grudge.  For  ten  years  now,  under  every  disadvantage  and  with  infinite  diffi- 
culty, I  have  been  collecting  the  gnomic  sayings  of  the  Talmud — I  printed  a 
score  or  two  of  them  eighteen  months  ago  {Christiayi  Spectator,  December  'GG) ; 
and  here  came  one  of  the  most  learned  scholars  of  Europe  and  carelessly  Hung 
down  out  of  his  profuse  wealth  most  of  my  special  treasures,  making  me  feel 
poor  indeed  !  Only  about  half-a-dozen  of  the  sayings  I  had  painfully  collected 
will  now  have  any  stamp  of  novelty  upon  them ;  and  these  are  so  noblo  in 
thought  and  expression  that  the  only  wonder  is  Deutsch  left  even  one  of  them 
behind  him.  To  the  lover  of  proverbs  let  me  specially  commend  the  sayings, 
than  which  I  know  none  more  perfect,  on  the  four  kinds  of  students,  on  new 
and  old  flasks,  on  not  serving  God  for  the  sake  of  reward,  and  on  doing  God's 
\vill  as  though  it  were  ours :  they  will  all  be  found  in  this  Chapter,  as  will 
many  more  with  which  Deutsch  has  already  enriched  fhem. 


Chap.  XII.  V.  12.  THE  EPILOGUE.  209 

aware  before  of  the  existence  of  their  glorious  national 
literature,  the  people  now  began  to  press  round  these  brands 
plucked  from  the  lire — the  scanty  records  of  their  faith  and 
history — with  a  fierce  and  passionate  love,  a  love  stronger 
even  than  that  of  wife  and  child.  These  same  documents, 
as  they  were  gradually  formed  into  a  canon,  became  the 
imnuitablc  centre  of  their  lives,  their  actions,  their 
thoughts,  their  very  dreams.  From  that  time  forth,  with 
scarcely  any  intermission,  the  keenest  as  well  as  the  most 
poetical  minds  of  the  nation  remained  fixed  upon  them." 

The  more  we  think  of  this  change,  the  more  the  wonder 
grows.  Good  kings  and  inspired  prophets  had  desired  to 
see  the  nation  devoted  to  the  Word  of  God,  had  spent 
their  lives  in  vain  endeavours  to  recall  the  thought  and 
affection  of  their  race  to  the  Sacred  Records  in  which  the 
Will  of  God  was  revealed.  But  what  they  failed  to  do 
was  done  when  the  inspiration  of  the  Almighty  was  with- 
drawn and  the  voice  of  Prophecy  had  grown  mute.  In 
their  Captivity,  under  the  strange  wrongs  and  miseries  of 
their  Exile,  the  Jews  remembered  God  their  Maker,  Giver 
of  Songs  in  the  night.  They  betook  themselves  to  the 
study  of  the  Sacred  Oracles.  They  began  to  acquaint 
themselves  with  all  wisdom  that  they  might  define  and 
illustrate  whatever  was  obscure  in  the  Scriptures  of  their 
fathers.  They  commenced  that  elaborate  systematic  Com- 
mentary of  which  many  noble  fragments  are  still  extant. 
They  drew  new  truths  from  the  old  letter,  or  from  the 


270  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  9,  to 

collocation  of  scattered  passages, — as,  for  instance,  the 
truths  of  the  immortality  of  the  soul  and  of  the  resurrec- 
tion of  the  body.  They  laid  the  hidden  foundations  of  the 
Synagogues  and  Schools  which  afterwards  covered  their 
land.  Ezra  and  Nehemiah  who,  by  grace  of  the  Persian 
conquerors,  led  them  back  from  Babylonia  to  Jerusalem 
are  still  claimed  as  the  founders  of  the  Great  Synagogue, 
i.e.  as  the  leaders  of  that  great  race  of  jurists,  teachers, 
authors  whose  utterances  are  still  a  law  in  Israel,  and  of 
whom  the  Lawyers  and  Scribes  of  tlie  New  Testament 
w^ere  more  modern  successors.  Before  the  Captivity  there 
was  not  a  term  for  "  school "  in  their  language ;  there 
were  at  least  a  dozen  in  common  use  within  two  or  three 
centuries  after  the  accession  of  Cyrus.  Education  had 
become  compulsory.  Its  immense  value  in  the  popular 
judgment  is  marked  in  innumerable  popular  sayings  such 
as  these :  "  Jerusalem  was  destroyed  because  the  education 
of  the  young  was  neglected  ; "  "  Even  for  the  rebuilding  of 
the  Temple  the  schools  must  not  be  interrupted ; "  "  Study 
is  more  meritorious  than  sacrifice ; "  "A  scholar  is  greater 
than  a  prophet : "  "  You  should  revere  the  teacher  even 
more  than  your  father ;  the  latter  only  brought  you  into 
this  world,  the  former  shows  you  the  way  into  the  next." 
To  meet  the  national  craving  expressed  in  these  and 
similar  proverbs,  innumerable  copies  of  the  Sacred  Books, 
of  commentaries  and  traditions  and  the  gnomic  utterances 
of  the  wise,  were  written  and  circulated,  of  which,  in  the 


Chap,  XII.  v.  12.  THE  EPILOGUE.  271 


Canon,  in  some  of  the  Apocryphal  Scriptures,  in  the  works 
of  rhilo,  and  in  the  legal  and  legendary  sections  of  the 
Talmud,  some  specimens  have  come  down  to  us.  In  short, 
whatever  was  the  cause  of  this  marvellous  outburst,  there 
can  be  no  doubt  that  the  whole  Eabbinical  period  was 
characterized  by  a  devotion  to  learning,  a  mental  and  lite- 
raiy  activity,  much  more  general  and  intense  than  it  is 
easy  for  us  to  conceive. 

In  such  an  age  the  words  of  a  professed  and  acknow- 
ledged "  Sage"  would  carry  gi*eat  weight.  If  besides  being 
"wise,"  he  were  a  recognized  "Teacher,"  a  man  whose  wisdom 
was  stamped  by  public  and  official  approval,  whatever  fell 
from  his  lips  would  command  public  attention.  For  these 
teachers  or  "  rabbis  "  were  the  real  rulers  of  the  time,  and 
not  the  pharisees  or  the  priests.  They  did  not  scruple  to 
jest  at  the  ignorance  or  licence  of  the  priests,  at  the  bare- 
faced hypocrisy  of  many  of  the  pharisees.  They  might  be, 
they  often  were,  "tent-makers,  sandal-makers,  weavers, 
car2)enters,  tanners,  bakers,  cooks,"  for  it  is  among  their 
highest  claims  to  our  respect  that  these  learned  rabbis  re- 
verenced labour,  however  menial  and  toilsome,  that  they 
held  mere  scholarship  and  piety  of  little  worth  unless  con- 
joined with  regular  and  healthy  pliysical  exertion.  But 
however  toilsome  their  lives,  or  humble  their  circumstances, 
these  "  Wise  Men  "  were  "  Masters  of  the  Law."  It  was 
their  special  function  to  interpret  the  Law  of  IMoscs — which, 
remember,  was  the  law  of  the  land — to  explain  its  bearing 


272  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  9. 

on  this  case  or  that ;  and,  as  members  of  the  local  courts  or 
of  the  metropolitan  Sanhedrin,  to  administer  the  law  they 
expounded.  An  immense  power,  therefore,  was  in  their 
hands.  To  obey  the  law  was  to  be  at  once  loyal  and  reli- 
gious, happy  here  and  hereafter.  And  therefore  the  rabbis, 
whose  business  it  was  to  apply  the  law  to  all  the  details  of 
life,  and  whose  decisions  were  authoritative  and  final,  could 
not  fail  to  command  universal  deference  and  respect. 
They  were  Lawyers,  Judges,  Schoolmasters,  Heads  of 
Colleges,  Public  Orators  and  Lecturers,  Statesmen  and 
Preachers,  all  in  one  or  all  in  turn,  and  therefore  concen- 
trated on  themselves  the  respect  which  we  distribute  on 
many  offices  and  many  men. 

Such  a  Eabbi  was  Coheleth.  He  was  of  "the  Wise  ;"  he 
was  a  "Master  of  the  Law."  And,  in  addition  to  these 
claims,  he  was  also  an  Author  who  had  "  composed  many 
parables  with  care  and  thought."  Than  this  latter  he  could 
hardly  have  any  higher  claim  to  the  regard,  and  even  to  the 
affection,  of  the  Hebrew  public.  We  all  know  the  passion- 
ate attachment  of  Oriental  races  to  fables,  to  stories  of  any 
and  every  kind.  And  the  Jews  for  whom  Coheleth  wrote 
took,  as  was  very  natural  at  such  a  time,  an  extraordinary 
delight,  extraordinary  even  for  the  East,  in  listening  to  and 
repeating  the  proverbs,  parables,  poems  of  their  national 
authors.  Some  of  these  are  still  in  our  hands ;  as  we  read 
them,  we  cease  to  wonder  at  the  intense  enjoyment  with 
which  they  were  received  by  a  generation  not  cloyed,  as  we 


Chap.  XII.  v.  9.  THE  EPILOGUE.  273 

are,  with  books.     They  are  not  only  charming  as  works  of 
art ;  tliey  have  also  this  charm,  that  they  convey  moral 
instruction.     Take  a  few  of  these  pictorial  proverbs:  "The 
house  that  does  not  open  to  the  poor  will  open  to  the  phy- 
sician."    "Commit  a  sin  twice,  and  you  will  begin  to  think 
it  quite  allowable."     "  The  reward  of  good  works  is  like 
dates — sweet,  and  ripening  late."     "  Even  when  the  gates 
of  prayer  are  shut  in  heaven,  the  gate  of  tears  is  open." 
"  When  the  righteous  dies,  it  is  the  earth  that  loses :  the 
lost  jewel  is  still  a  jewel,  but  he  who  has  lost  it — well  may 
he  weep."     "  "Wlio  is  wise  ?  He  who  is  willing  to  learn  from 
all  men.    Wlio  is  strong  ?     He  who  subdues  his  passions- 
Who  is  rich  ?     He  that  is  satisfied  with  his  lot."   All  these, 
as  you  will  admit,  are  happy  expressions  of  profound  moral 
truths.     But  the  Eabbis  are  capable  of  putting  a  keener  edge 
on  their  words ;  they  can  utter  witty  epigrams  as  sharp 
and  incisive  as  those  of  any  of  our  modern  satirists,  and 
yet  use  their  wit  in  the  service  of  good  sense  and  morality. 
It  would  not  be  easy  to  match,  it  would  be  very  hard  to 
beat,  such  sayings  as  these :   "  The  sun  will  go  down  by 
itself  without  your  help."     "When  the  ox  is  down,  many 
are  the  butchers."     "  Tlie  soldiers  fight,  and  the  kings  arc 
the   heroes."    "  The  camel  wanted  horns,  and   they  took  . 
away  his  ears."     "  The  cock  and  the  owl  both  wait  for 
morning:  the  light  brings  joy  to  me,  says  the  cock,  but 
what  are  you  waiting  for  ? "     "  When  the  pitcher  falls  on 
the  stone,  woe  to  the  pitcher ;  when  the  stone  falls  on  the 

18 


274  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  9. 

pitcher,  woe  to  the  pitcher :  whatever  happens,  woe  to  the 
pitcher."     "  Look  not  at  the  flask,  but  at  that  which  is  in 
it ;  for  there  are  new  flasks  full  of  old  wine,  and  old  flasks 
which  have  not  even  new  wine  in  them : " — ah,  of  how  many 
of  these  "  old  flasks  "  have  some  of  us  had  to  drink  or  seem 
to  drink  !     AVhen   the   Eabbis  draw   out  their  moral  at 
greater  length,  when  they  tell  a  stoiy,  their  skill  does  not 
desert  them.     Here  is  one  of  the  briefest ;  it  will  remind 
you  of  more  than  one  of  the  parables  uttered  by  the  Great 
Teacher  Himself :  "  There  was  once  a  king  who  bade  all 
his  servants  to  a  great  repast,  but  did  not  name  the  hour. 
Some  went  home  and  put  on  their  best  garments,  and  came 
and  stood  at  the  door  of  the  palace.      Others  said,  '  There 
is  time  enough,  the  king  will  let  us    know  beforehand.' 
But  the  king  summoned  them  of  a  sudden ;  and  those  that 
came  in  their  best  garments  were  well  received,  but  the 
foolish  ones,  who  came  in  their  slovenliness,  were  turned 
away  in  disgrace.     Kepent  ye  to-day,  lest  ye  be  summoned 
to-morrow." 

Do  you  wonder  that  the  Jews,  even  in  the  sorrows  of 
their  Captivity,  liked  to  hear  such  proverbs  and  parables 
as  these  ?  that  they  had  an  immense  and  grateful  admira- 
tion for  the  men  who  spent  much  care  and  thought  on  the 
composition  of  these  wise  beautiful  sayings  ?  Would  not 
you  be  glad  to  hear  them  when  the  day's  work  was  done, 
or  even  while  it  was  doing  ?  If  then  such  an  one  as 
Coheleth — a  Sage,  a  Iiabbi,  a  Composer  of  proverbs  and 


Chap  XII.  v.  9,  THE  EPILOGUE.  275 

parables — came  to  them  and  said,  "  My  children  :  I  have 
sought  what  you  arc  all  seeking ;  I  have  been  in  quest  of 
that  Cliief  Good  wliich  you  now  pursue ;  and  I  will  tell 
you  the  stoiy  of  the  Quest  in  the  parables  and  proverbs 
which  you  are  so  fond  of  hearing :  " — we  can  surely  under- 
stand that  they  would  be  charmed  to  listen,  that  they 
would  hang  upon  his  words,  that  they  would  be  predisposed 
to  accept  his  conclusions.  As  they  listened,  and  found 
that  he  was  telling  them  their  own  story  no  less  than  his, 
that  he  was  trying  to  lead  them  away  from  the  vanities 
which  they  themselves  knew  to  be  vanities  toward  an 
abiding  Good  in  which  he  had  found  rest :  as  they  heard 
him  enforce  the  duties  of  charity,  industry,  hilarity — duties 
which  all  their  rabbis  urged  upon  them,  and  invite  them  to 
that  wise  use  and  wise  enjoyment  of  the  present  life  which 
their  own  consciences  approved :  above  all,  as  he  unfolded 
before  them  the  bright  hope  of  a  future  judgment  in  which 
all  wrongs  would  be  redressed  and  all  acts  of  duty  receive 
a  great  recompence  of  reward, — would  they  not  hail  him 
as  the  wisest  of  their  teachers,  as  the  great  rabbi  who  had 
achieved  the  supreme  Quest  of  life  ?  Assuredly  few  books 
were,  or  are,  more  popular  than  the  book  Ecclesiastes. 
Its  presence  and  influence  are  felt  in  every  subsequent  age 
and  department  of  Hebrew  Literarure ;  it  has  entered  into 
our  English  Literature  hardly  less  deeply.  Many  of  its 
verses  are  simply  familiar  to  us  as  household  words.  Brief 
as  the  Book  is,  I  am  disposed  to  think  it  better  known  to  us 

18* 


276  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  10,  to 

than  any  other  of  the  Old  Testament  Books  except  Genesis, 
the  Psalter,  and  the  prophecies  of  Isaiah.  Job  is  an  incom- 
parably finer  as  it  is  a  much  longer  poem ;  but  I  doubt 
whether  most  of  us  could  not  quote  at  least  two  verses 
from  the  shorter  for  every  one  we  could  repeat  from  the 
longer  Book.  We  can  very  easily  understand  therefore 
that  the  Wise  Preacher,  as  he  himself  assures  us  (v.  10), 
bestowed  on  this  Sacred  Drama  no  less  care  and  thought 
than  he  had  given  to  other  Parables  ;  that  he  had  made 
diligent  search  for  "  words  of  comfort "  by  which  he  might 
solace  and  strengthen  the  hearts  of  his  oppressed  brethren, 
and  that,  having  found  his  comfortable  words,  he  "  wrote 
them  down  "  with  a  frank  sincerity  and  "  uprightness." 

From  this  description  of  the  motives  which  had  impelled 
him  to  publish  the  results  of  his  thought  and  experience, 
and  of  the  spirit  in  which  he  had  composed  this  beautiful 
Parable,  Coheleth  passes  (in  v.  11)  to  a  description  of 
the  twofold  function  of  the  Teacher,  which  is  really  a 
marvellous  little  poem  in  itself,  a  pastoral  cut  on  a  gem. 
That  function  is  on  the  one  hand  conservative,  and  on  the 
other  progressive.  At  times  the  Teacher's  words  are  "  like 
goads  "  with  which  the  herdsmen  prick  on  their  cattle  to 
new  pastures,  correcting  them  when  they  loiter  or  stray  : 
at  other  times  they  are  like  the  "  stakes  "  which  the  shep- 
herds drive  into  the  ground  when  they  pitch  their  tents  on 
pastures  where  they  intend  to  abide.  "  The  words  of  tJie 
Wise"  says  Coheleth,  "  are  like  goads  ;  "  and  "  the  Wise  " 


Chap.  XII.  v.  II.  THE  EPILOGUE.  277 

was  a  technical  term  for  the  sage  teachers  and  masters  who 
interpreted  and  administered  the  Law  :  while  the  words  of 
"  the  Masters  of  the  Assemblies  are  like  fixed  stakes," 
"  jMasters  of  Assemblies  "  being  a  technical  name  for  the 
heads  of  the  colleges  and  schools  which,  during  the 
llabbinical  period,  were  to  be  found  in  every  town,  and  in 
almost  every  hamlet,  of  Judaea.  The  same  man  might,  and 
commonly  tlid,  bear  both  titles ;  and  in  all  probability 
Coheleth  himself  was  both  of  the  Wise  and  the  Master  of 
an  Assembly. 

What  did  these  Masters  teach  ?  Everything  almost, — 
at  least  everything  then  kno^vn.  It  is  true  that  their  main 
function  was  to  interpret  and  enforce  the  Law  of  Moses ; 
but  this  function  demanded  all  science  for  its  adequate 
fulfilment.  Take  a  simple  illustration.  The  Law  says, 
"  Thou  shalt  not  kill."  Here,  if  ever,  is  a  plain  and  simple 
statute,  with  no  ambiguities,  capable  of  no  misconstruction 
or  evasion.  Anybody  may  remember  it,  and  know  what 
it  means.  May  they  ?  I  am  not  so  sure  of  that.  The 
Law  says  I  am  not  to  kill.  What !  not  in  self-defence  ? 
not  to  save  honour  from  outrage  ?  not  in  a  patriotic  war  ? 
not  to  save  my  homestead  from  the  freebooter,  or  my 
household  from  the  midnight  thief  ?  not  when  my  kinsman 
is  slain  before  my  eyes  and  in  my  defence  ?  Many  similar 
questions  might  be  asked,  and  were  asked,  by  the  Jews. 
The  Master  had  to  consider  such  cases  as  these  ;  to  study 
the  recorded  and  traditional  verdicts  of  previous  judges, 


278  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  11. 

the  glosses  and  comments  of  previous  Masters ;  he  had  to 
lay  down  rules  and  to  apply  rules  to  particular  and  excep- 
tional cases,  just  as  our  English  judges  have  to  define  the 
Common  Law  or  to  interpret  a  Parliamentary  Statute. 
The  growing  wants  of  the  Commonwealth,  the  increasing 
complexity  of  the  relations  of  life  as  the  people  of  Israel 
came  in  contact  with  foreign  races  or  were  carried  into 
captivity  in  strange  lands,  necessitated  new  laws,  new  rules 
of  conduct.  And  as  there  was  no  despot  to  issue  his 
decree,  and  no  Parliament  to  pass  an  Act,  the  wise  Masters, 
learned  in  the  Law  of  God,  were  compelled  to  lay  down 
these  rules  and  laws,  to  extend  and  develop  the  ancient 
Mosaic  Statutes  till  they  covered  modern  cases  and  wants. 
Thus,  in  this  very  Book,  Coheleth  gives  the  rules  which 
shoidd  govern  a  wise  pious  Jew  in  the  new  relations  of 
Traffic  (chap.  iv.  vv.  4 — 16),  and  in  the  service  of  foreign 
despots  (chap.  x.  vv.  1 — 20).  For  such  contingencies  as 
these  the  Law  of  Moses  made  no  provision  :  and  therefore 
the  Rabbis,  who  sat  in  Moses'  chair,  made  provision  for 
them  by  legislating  in  the  spirit  of  the  Law. 

Even  in  the  application  of  known  laws  there  was  need 
for  care,  and  science,  and  thought.  "  The  Mosaic  Code  has 
injunctions  about  the  Sabbatical  journey  ;  the  distance  had 
to  be  measured  and  calculated,  and  mathematics  were  called 
into  play.  Seeds,  plants,  and  animals  had  to  be  studied  in 
connection  with  many  precepts  regarding  them,  and  natural 
history  had  to  be  appealed  to.     Then  there  were  the  purely 


Chap.  XII.  v.  II.  THE  EPILOGUE.  279 

hygienic  paragraphs,  which  necessitated  for  their  precision 
a  knowledge  of  all  the  medical  science  of  the  time.  The 
'  seasons  '  and  the  feast-days  were  regulated  by  the  phases 
of  the  moon  ;  and  astronomy,  if  only  in  its  elements,  had  to 
be  studied."  *  As  the  Hebrews  came  successively  into  con- 
tact with  Babylonians,  Persians,  Greeks,  Eomans,  the  poli- 
tical and  religious  systems  of  these  foreign  races  could  not 
fail  to  leave  some  impressions  on  their  minds,  and  that 
these  impressions  might  not  be  erroneous  and  misleading, 
it  became  the  Master  to  acquaint  himself  with  the  results 
of  foreign  thought.  Nay,  "  not  only  was  science,  in  its 
widest  sense,  required  of  him,  but  even  an  acquaintance 
with  its  fantastic  shadows,  such  as  astrology,  magic,  and 
the  rest,  in  order  that  he,  as  both  law-giver  and  judge, 
should  be  able  to  enter  into  the  popular  feeling  about  these 
widespread  '  arts,' "  and  wisely  control  it. 

The  proofs  that  this  varied  knowledge  was  acquired  and 
patiently  applied  to  the  study  of  the  Law  by  the  Masters 
in  Israel  are  still  with  us  in  many  learned  sayings  and 
essays  of  that  time  ;  and  in  all  these  essays  the  conservative 
temper  is  sufficiently  prominent.  Their  leading  aim  evi- 
dently was  to  honour  the  Law  of  Moses ;  to  preserve 
its  spirit  even  in  the  new  rules  which  the  changed 
circumstances  of  the  time  imperatively  required :  to  iix 


*  Deutscb  on  '  The  Talmud  '  in  the  Qunrfirli/. 


280  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  11. 

their  stakes  and  pitch   their  tents   in  the  old  fields  of 
thought. 

But,  on  the  other  hand,  the  signs  of  progress  are  no  less 

obvious.     Through  all  this  mass  of  learned  and  deferential 

comment  on  the  Mosaic  Code  there  perpetually  crop  up 

sayings  which  savour  of  the  Gospel  rather  than  of  the  Law 

— sayings  that  denote  a  great  advance  of  thought.    "  Study 

is  better  than  sacrifice,"  for  instance,  must  have  been  a  very 

surprising  proverb  to  the  backward-looking  Jew.    It  is  only 

one  of  many  Kabbinical  sayings  conceived  in  the  same  spirit; 

but  would  not  the  priests,  for  example,  listen  to  it  with 

the  wry  clouded  face  of  grave  suspicion  ?     So  when  Rabbi 

Hillel,  anticipating  the  Golden  Eule,  said,  "  Do  not  unto 

another  what  thou  wouldest  not  have  another  do  unto  thee  : 

this  is  the  whole  law,  the  rest  is  mere  commentary,"  the 

sticklers  for  ceremonies  and  sacrifices,  fasts  and  feasts,  could 

hardly  fail  to  be  shocked :  they  would  think  the  venerable 

Master  had  hardly  shown  his  usual  wisdom  in  uttering 

words  which  might  so  easily  be  abused.   So,  too,  when  Eabbi 

Antigonous  said,  "  Be  not  as  men  who  serve  their  master 

for  the  sake  of  reward,  but  be  like  men  who  serve  not 

looking  for  reward ; "  or  when  Rabbi  Gamaliel  said,  "  Do 

God's  will  as  if  it  were  thy  will,  that  He  may  accomphsh 

thy  will  as  if  it  were  His,"  many  no  doubt  would  feel  that 

they  were  listening  to  very  novel,  and  perhaps  dangerous, 

doctrine.     Nor  could  they  fail  to  sec  that  new  fields  of 

thought  were  being  thrown  open  to  them   when  Rabbi 


Chap.  XII.  v.  11.  THE  EPILOGUE.  281 

Coheleth — if  we  may  for  once  use  Coheleth  as  a  proper  name 
— affirmed  the  future  judgment  and  the  future  life  of  men. 
Such  "  words  "  as  these  were  "  goads,"  correcting  the  errors 
of  previous  thought  and  urging  men  on  to  new  pastures  of 
truth  and  godliness. 

Sometimes,  as  I  have  said,  the  progressive  Sage  and  the 
conservative  Master  would  be  united  in  the  same  person ; 
for  there  are  teachers  who  can  "  stand  on  the  old  ways " 
and  yet  "  look  for  the  new."  But  often,  no  doubt,  the  two 
would  be  divided  and  opposed  then  as  now.  For  in 
thought,  as  in  politics,  there  are  always  two  great  parties  ; 
the  one  looking  back  with  affectionate  regret  on  the  past 
and  set  to  "  keep  invention  in  a  noted  weed,"  the  other 
looking  forward  with  eager  hope  and  desire  to  the  future, 
attached  to  "new-found  methods  and  to  compounds 
strange  ;"  the  one  bent  on  conserving  as  much  as  possible 
of  the  large  heritage  which  our  fathers  have  bequeathed  us, 
the  other  bent  on  leaving  a  new  and  fairer  inheritance  to 
those  that  shall  be  after  them.  Each  of  these  classes  has 
its  special  danger,  and  is  sorely  tempted  to  undervalue  the 
other.  The  danger  of  the  conservative  thinker  is  that  ho 
may  hold  the  debts  which  our  fathers  have  bequeathed  us 
with  the  estate  as  part  of  the  estate,  that  he  may  set  him- 
self against  all  liquidations,  all  better  jnethods  of  manage- 
ment, against  improvement  in  every  form.  The  danger  of 
the  progressive  thinker  is  that,  in  his  ambition  to  enlarge 
and  improve  the  estate,  he  may  break  violently  from  the 


282  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  11,  to 

past  and  cast  away  many  heirlooms  and  treasures  that 
would  add  to  our  wealth.  The  one  is  too  apt  to  pitch  his 
tents  in  familiar  fields  long  after  they  are  barren  ;  the  other 
is  too  apt  to  drive  men  on  from  old  pastures  to  new  before 
the  old  are  exhausted  or  the  new  ripe.  And  surely  there 
never  was  a  larger  or  more  tolerant  heart  than  that  of  the 
Preacher  who  has  taught  us  that  both  these  classes  of  men 
and  teachers,  both  the  conservative  thinker  and  the  pro- 
gressive thinker,  are  of  God  and  have  a  useful  function  to 
discharge  :  that  both  the  Shepherd  who  loves  his  tent  and 
the  Herdsman  who  loves  his  goad,  both  the  Sage  who 
urges  us  forward  and  the  Sage  who  holds  us  back  are 
servants  of  the  one  Great  Pastor,  and  owe  whether  goad  or 
tent-stake  to  Him.  Simply  to  entertain  the  thought  widens 
and  raises  our  minds  :  to  have  conceived  it  and  thrown  it 
into  that  perfect  form  proves  the  Sacred  Preacher  to  have 
been  all  he  claims  to  be  and  more, — not  only  Sage,  Teacher, 
Author,  but  also  a  true  poet  and  a  true  man  of  God. 

It  is  to  be  observed  however  that  our  accomplished  Sage 
limits  the  province  of  mental  activity  on  either  hand 
(v.  12).  His  children,  his  disciples — "my  son"  was  the 
rabbi's  customary  term  for  his  pupil  as  "rabbi,"  my  father, 
was  the  name  by  which  the  pupil  addressed  his  master — 
are  to  beware  both  of  the  "  many  books  "  of  the  making  of 
which  there  was  then  "  no  end,"  and  of  that  over-addic- 
tion to  study  which  was  "  a  wfeariness  to  the  flesh."  Tlic 
latter  caution,   the   warning   against   "  much  study "  was 


Chap.  XII.  v.  12.  THE  EPILOGUE.  283 

simply  a  result  of  that  sense  of  the  sanitary  value  of 
physical  labour  by  which,  as  we  have  seen,  the  Masters  in 
Israel  were  profoundly  impressed.  They  held  physical  toil 
and  exercise  to  be  good  for  the  soul  as  well  as  for  the  body, 
a  safeguard  against  the  dreamy  abstract  moods  and  the 
vague  fruitless  reveries  which  rather  relax  than  brace  the 
intellectual  fibre,  and  which  tend  to  a  moral  languour  all 
the  more  perilous  because  its  approaches  are  masked  under 
the  semblance  of  mental  occupation.  They  knew  that 
those  who  attempt  or  affect  to  be  "  creatures  too  bright 
and  good  for  human  nature's  daily  food  "  are  apt  to  sink 
below  the  common  level  rather  than  to  rise  above  it.  They 
did  not  want  their  disciples  to  resemble  many  of  the  young 
men  who  lounged  through  the  philosophic  schools  of 
Greece,  and  who,  though  always  ready  to  discuss  the  "  first 
true,  first  perfect,  first  fair,"  did  nothing  to  help  forward  the 
progi-ess  of  man  or  to  raise  the  tone  of  common  life  ;  young 
men,  as  Epictetus  bitterly  remarked  of  some  of  his  disciples, 
whose  philosophy  lay  in  their  cloaks  and  tongues  rather 
than  in  any  wise  conduct  of  their  daily  lives  or  any  endea- 
vour to  better  the  world.  It  was  their  aim  to  develop  the 
whole  man — body,  soul,  and  spirit;  to  train  up  useful 
citizens  as  well  as  accomplished  scholars,  to  spread  the 
love  of  wisdom  through  the  whole  nation  rather  tlian 
to  produce  a  separate  learned  class.  And  in  the  prosecu- 
tion of  this  aim  they  enjoined  neither  the  exercises  of  the 
ancient  pala?stra,  nor  athletic  sports   like  those  now  in 


284  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  12. 

vogue  at  our  universities,  which  are  often  a  mere  waste  of 
good  muscle,  but  useful  and  productive  toils.  They 
believed,  not  in  "  the  gospel  of  the  cricket-bat,"  but  in  the 
gospel  of  the  plough  and  the  spade,  the  plane  and  the  axe, 
the  hammer  and  the  trowel ;  and  saved  their  disciples  from 
the  weariness  of  overtaxed  brains  by  requiring  them  to 
become  skilled  artizans  and  to  labour  heartily  in  their 
callings. 

Nor  is  the  caution  against  "  many  books,"  at  which 
learned  Commentators  have  taken  grave  offence,  the  illiberal 
sentiment  it  has  often  been  pronounced.  For  no  doubt 
Coheleth,  like  other  wise  Hebrews,  was  fully  prepared  to 
study  whatever  science  would  throw  light  on  the  Divine 
Law  or  teach  men  how  to  live.  Mathematics,  astronomy, 
natural  history,  medicine,  casuistry,  the  modern  and 
religious  systems  of  the  East  and  the  West, — some  know- 
ledge of  all  these  various  branches  of  learning  was  neces- 
sary, as  I  have  shown,  to  those  who  had  to  interpret  the 
minute  and  complex  statutes  of  the  Mosaic  Code,  and  to 
supplement  them  with  rules  appropriate  to  the  new  con- 
ditions of  the  time.  In  these  and  kindred  studies  the 
rabbis  were  "  masters ;  "  and  what  they  knew  they  taught. 
That  which  distinguished  them  from  other  men  equally 
learned  was  that  they  did  not  "  love  knowledge  simply  for 
its  own  sake,"  but  for  an  end  higher  than  itself — the  moral 
good  of  their  race.  Like  Socrates,  they  were  not  content 
with  a  purely  intellectual  cidture,  but  sought  a  wisdom 


Chap.  XII.  v.  12.  THE  EPILOGUE.  286 

that  would  mingle  with  the  blood  of  men  and  mend  their 
ways,  a  wisdom  that  would  hold  their  baser  passions  in 
check,  energize  the  higher  moods  and  aptitudes  of  the 
soul,  and  make  duty  their  supreme  aim  and  delight.  To 
secure  this  great  end  they  knew  no  method  so  likely  to 
prove  effectual  as  an  earnest,  and  even  an  exclusive,  study 
of  the  Sacred  Scriptures  in  which  they  thought  they  had 
"  eternal  life,"  i.e.  the  life  which  is  unaffected  by  the 
shocks  and  vicissitudes  of  time.  Whatever  studies  would 
illuminate  and  illustrate  these  Scriptures  they  pursued  and 
encouraged  ;  whatever  might  divert  attention  from  these 
they  discouraged  and  condemned.  Many  of  them,  as  we 
learn  from  the  Talmud,  refused  to  wTite  down  their  Gwrv 
discourses  in  the  Schools  and  Synagogues  lest,  by  making  / 
books  of  their  own,  they  should  withdraw  attention  from  X 
the  Sacred  Books  inspired  of  Heaven.  It  was  better,  they 
thought,  to  read  the  Scriptures  than  any  commentary  on 
the  Scriptures  ;  and  therefore  they  confined  themselves  to 
oral  instruction :  even  their  profoundest  and  most  charac- 
teristic sayings  would  have  perished  had  not  "  fond  tradi- 
tion babbled  "  of  them  for  many  an  age  to  come. 

If  the  sentiment  which  dictated  this  course  were  in  part 
a  mistaken  sentiment,  it  surely  sprung  from  a  noble  motive. 
For  no  ordinance  could  be  more  self-denying  to  a  learned 
class  than  that  which  forbade  them  to  put  on  record  the 
results  of  their  researches,  the  conclusions  of  their  wisdom, 
and  thus  to  win  name  and  fame  and  use  in  after  genera- 


286  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  12. 

tions.  But  was  their  course,  after  all,  one  which  calls  for 
censure  ?  Has  the  world  ever  produced  a  literature  of  so 
lofty  a  tone,  so  pure  and  heroic  in  its  animating  spirit,  as 
that  of  the  Hebrew  Prophets  and  Psalmists  ?  Would  not 
the  world  be  infinitely  sweeter  and  better  than  it  is  had 
these  ancient  Scriptures  been  studied  before  all  and  above 
all  uninspired  writings,  if  they  had  been  brooded  over  and 
wrought  into  the  minds  of  men  till  "  the  life  "  in  them  had 
been  assimilated  and  reproduced  ?  The  man  who  has  had 
a  classical  or  scientific  education,  and  profited  by  it,  must 
be  an  ingrate  indeed,  unless  he  be  the  slave  of  some  domi- 
nant crotchet,  if  he  do  not  hold  in  grateful  reverence  the 
great  masters  at  whose  feet  he  has  sat :  but  the  man  who 
has  really  found  "  life "  in  the  Scriptures  must  be  more 
and  worse  than  an  ingrate  if  he  does  not  feel  that  mental 
culture  is  a  small  good  when  compared  with  the  treasures  of 
an  eternal  life,  if  he  does  not  admit  that  the  main  object  of 
all  education  should  be  to  conduct  men  through  a  course 
of  intellectual  training  which  shall  culminate  in  a  moral 
and  spiritual  discipline.  To  be  wise  is  much ;  but  how 
much  more  is  it  to  be  good  !  Better  be  a  child  in  the 
]  kingdom  of  heaven  than  a  philosopher  or  a  prophet  hanging 
vaguely  about  its  outskirts. 

If  any  of  us  still  suspect  the  Preacher's  words  of  illiber- 
ality,  and  say:  "There  was  no  need  to  oppose  the  one 
Book  to  the  many,  and  to  depreciate  these  in  order  to 
magnify  that,"   we   have  only  to  consider  the  historical 


Chap.  XII.  v.  12.  THE  EPILOGUE.  287 

circumstances  in  which  he  wrote  in  order  to  acquit  him  of 
the  charge.  For  a  long  series  of  years  tlie  Holy  Scriptures 
had  been  neglected  by  the  Jews  ;  copies  had  grown  scarce 
and  were  hidden  away  in  obscure  nooks  in  which  they 
were  hard  to  find :  some  of  the  inspred  books  had  been 
lost  and  have  not  been  recovered  to  this  day.*  The 
people  were  ignorant  of  their  own  history,  and  law, 
and  hope.  Suddenly  they  were  awaked  from  the  slumber 
of  indifference  to  find  themselves  in  a  night  of  ignorance. 
During  the  miseries  of  the  Captivity  a  longing  for  the 
Divine  Word  was  quickened  within  them.  They  were 
eager  to  acquaint  themselves  with  the  Revelation  which 
they  had  neglected  and  forgotten.  And  their  teachers,  the 
few  men  who  knew  and  loved  the  Word,  set  themselves  to 
deepen  and  satisfy  the  craving.  They  multiplied  copies 
of  the  Scriptures,  circulated  them,  explained  them  in  the 
Schools,  exhorted  from  them  in  the  Synagogue.  And 
till  the  people  were  familiar  with  the  Scriptures,  the 
wiser  rabbis  would  not  write  books  of  their  own,  nor 
encourage  the  reading  of  the  many  books  bred   by  the 


•  Among  tho  "  lost  books  "  of  the  Old  Testament  are  "  the  Book  of  Jasher  " 
cited  in  Joshua  x.  12,  13,  and  2  Sam.  i.  18  ;  Nathan's  and  Gad's  Biographies 
of  David  mentioned  in  1  Chron.  xxix.  29,  as  "the  Book  of  Nathan  tho 
Prophet  "  and  "  tho  Book  of  Gad  the  Seer;  "  and  three  works  connected  with 
the  life  of  Solomon— his  "Acta,"  as  narrated  in  "the  Book  of  Nathan,  in  the 
Prophecy  of  Ahijah  the  Shilonite,  and  in  the  Visions  of  Iddo  tho  Seer," 
2  Chron.  ix.  2y. 


288  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  12. 

revived  literary  activity  of  the  time.  It  was  the  very 
feeling  which  preceded  and  accompanied  our  English  Ee- 
formation.  Then  the  newly-discovered  Bible  threw  all 
other  books  into  the  shade.  The  people  thirsted  for  the 
pure  Word  of  God ;  and  the  leaders  of  the  Reformation 
were  well  content  that  they  should  read  nothing  else  till 
they  had  read  that :  that  they  should  leave  all  other 
fountains  to  drink  of  "  the  river  of  life."  The  translation 
and  circulation  of  the  Scriptures  was  the  one  work,  almost 
the  exclusive  work,  to  which  they  bent  their  energies. 
Like  the  Jewish  rabbis,  Tyndall  and  his  fellow-labourers 
did  not  care  to  write  books  themselves,  nor  wish  the 
people  to  read  the  books  they  were  compelled  to 
write  in  self-defence.  There  is  a  remarkable  passage 
in  Fryth's  "  Scripture  Doctrine  of  the  Sacrament "  in  which, 
replying  to  Sir  Thomas  More  who  led  the  opposition  to 
the  new  movement,  the  Reformer  says  :  "  This  hath  been 
offered  you,  is  offered,  and  shall  be  offered.  Grant  that 
the  Word  of  God,  I  mean  the  text  of  Scripture,  may  go 
abroad  in  our  English  tongue  .  .  .  and  my  brother 
Tyndall  and  I  have  done  and  will  promise  you  to  write  no 
more.  If  you  will  not  grant  this  condition,  then  will  we 
be  doing  while  we  have  breath,  and  show  in  few  words 
that  the  Scripture  doth  in  many,  and  so  at  the  least  save 
some."  The  Hebrew  Reformers  of  the  time  of  Colieleth 
were  animated  by  precisely  the  same  lofty  and  generous 
motive.     They  were  content  to  be  nothing  that  the  Word 


Chap.  XII.  v.  12.  THE  EPILOGUE.  289 

of  God  might  be  all  for  all.  "  The  Bible,  and  the  Bible 
only,"  they  conceived  to  be  the  want  of  their  age  and 
race  ;  and  therefore  they  were  content  to  forego  the  honours 
of  authorship  and  the  study  of  many  branches  of  learning 
which  otherwise  they  would  have  been  glad  to  pursue,  and 
besought  their  disciples  to  concentrate  all  their  thoughts 
on  the  one  Book  which  was  able  to  make  them  wise  unto 
salvation.  Learned  themselves,  and  often  profoundly 
learned,  it  was  no  contempt  for  learning  which  actuated 
them,  but  a  devout  godliness  and  the  fervours  of  a  most 
self-denying  piety. 

"  Does  not  the  Preacher  break  his  own  rule  ?  He  at  all 
events  adds  one  to  the  '  many  books '  which  already  existed, 
a  book  the  true  meaning  of  which  cannot  be  apprehended 
without  '  much  study  '  and  such  study  as  is  at  times  weari- 
some to  the  flesh."  No,  he  does  not  break  his  rule.  For, 
first  of  all,  his  book  is  a  Scripture ;  it  is  inspired  by  one 
and  the  selfsame  Spirit  with  those  elder  Scriptures  to 
which  he  would  have  his  disciples  devote  their  energies. 
And,  then,  besides  being  a  Scripture,  it  served  to  explain 
other  Scriptui-es ;  to  teach  men  how  their  lives  might  be 
ordered  by  the  law  of  God.  In  this  Book  there  are  both 
the  words  of  a  conservative  Master  and  the  words  of  a 
progressive  Sage ;  both  words  which  applied  the  Divine 
Law  to  the  details  of  human  life  and  words  which  opened 
up  new  and  broader  views  of  human  life ;  words  which 
threw  new  light  both  upon  the  past  and  the  future.    It  was 

10 


290  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

only  against  "what  was  more  than  these,"  only  against 
words  and  books  which  neither  explained  the  bearing  of 
the  Divine  Law  on  human  action  nor  extended  the  bound- 
aries of  human  thought  until  they  embraced  the  whole 
counsel  of  God,  that  the  Preacher  raised  his  protest.  For 
the  present  need  he  thought  it  well  that  his  disciples 
should  restrict  their  studies  to  the  Inspired  Word  ;  but 
within  the  limits  of  that  Word  they  were  to  seek  things 
both  new  and  old.  A  rabbi  conscious  of  no  special  inspi- 
ration from  heaven  might  well  scruple  to  add  even  one  to 
the  many  books  which  were  already  abroad ;  but  a  rabbi 
who  felt  that  the  Divine  Spirit  had  taught  him  so  to 
marshal  the  facts  of  human  life  as  to  help  his  brethren 
out  of  their  perplexities  and  guide  them  in  their  Quest  of 
the  Chief  Good  was  surely  bound  to  give  them  the  wisdom 
God  had  given  to  him. 

So  far  the  Epilogue  seems  a  mere  digression,  not  without 
interest  and  value  indeed,  but  having  no  vital  connection 
with  the  main  theme  of  the  Poem.  It  tells  us  that  the 
Preacher  was  a  Sage,  a  recognized  official  Teacher,  the 
Master  of  an  Assembly,  a  Doctor  of  laws,  an  Author  who 
had  expended  much  labour  on  the  composition  of  many 
parables,  a  conservative  "  Shepherd  "  pitching  his  tent  on 
familiar  fields  of  thought,  a  progressive  "  Herdsman " 
goading  men  on  to  new  pastures.*    If  we  are  glad  to  know 


*  The  reader  will  not  fail  to  note  that  the  titles  here  assumed  by  Coheleth 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  291 

SO  much  of  him,  we  cannot  but  ask,  Wliat  has  all  this  to  do 
with  the  Quest  of  the  Chief  Good  ?  It  has  this  to  do  with 
it.  Coheleth  has  achieved  that  quest :  lie  has  solved  his 
problem  and  given  us  his  solution  of  it.  He  is  about  to 
repeat  that  solution.  To  give  emphasis  and  force  to  the 
repetition,  that  he  may  carry  his  readers  more  fully  with 
him,  he  dwells  on  his  claims  to  their  respect,  their  confi- 
dence, their  affection.  He  is  all  that  they  most  admire ; 
he  has  the  very  authority  to  which  they  most  willingly 
defer.  If  they  know  this — and,  scattered  as  the  Jews 
wore  through  many  cities  and  provinces,  most  of  them 
could  not  know  it  unless  he  told  them — they  cannot  refuse 
him  a  hearing ;  they  wiU  be  pre-disposed  to  accept  his 
conclusion  ;  they  will  be  sure  not  to  reject  it  without  grave 
consideration  and  regret.  It  is  not  out  of  any  personal 
conceit  therefore,  nor  any  pride  of  learning,  that  he  recites 
his  titles  of  honour.  He  is  simply  gathering  force  from 
the  willing  respect  and  deference  of  his  readers  in  order 
that  he  may  plant  his  final  conclusion  more  strongly  and 
more  deeply  in  their  hearts. 

And  what  is  the  conclusion  which  he  is  at  such  pains  to 
enforce  ?  "  The  conclusion  of  the  whole  matter  is  this : 
that   God  taketh  cognizance   of  all   tilings :    Fear   God, 


are  inconsistent  with  the  Solomonic  authorship  of  the  Book,  as  is  indeed  tl;e 
whole  tone  and  spirit  of  the  Epilo^i^e  ;  while,  on  the  other  hand,  tone,  spirit, 
titles,  all  iigToe  \nth  and  confinn  the  theory  of  a  later  and  Rabbinical  authorship. 

10* 


292  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

therefore,  and  keep  His  commandments,  for  this  it  behoveth 
all  men  to  ;  since  God  will  bring  every  deed  to  the  judg- 
ment appointed  for  every  secret  thing,  whether  it  be  good 
or  whether  it  be  bad  "  (w.  13,  14). 

Now  that  this  "  conclusion  "  is  simply  a  repetition,  in 
part  expanded  and  in  part  condensed,  of  that  with  which 
the  Preacher  closes  the  previous  Section  is  sufficiently 
obvious.  Tlure  he  incites  men  to  a  life  of  virtue  with  two 
leading  motives  :  first,  by  the  fact  of  the  present  constant 
judgment  of  God  ;  and,  secondly,  by  the  prospect  of  a  future, 
a  more  searching  and  decisive,  judgment.  Here  he  appeals 
to  precisely  the  same  motives,  though  now,  instead  of  imply- 
ing the  present  judgment  of  God  under  the  injunction 
"  Eemember  thy  Creator,"  he  broadly  affirms  "  that  God 
taketh  cognizance  of  all  things ;"  and,  instead  of  simply 
reminding  the  young  that  God  will  bring  "  the  ways  of 
their  heart "  into  judgment,  he  defines  that  future  judg- 
ment at  once  more  largely  and  more  exactly  as  "  appointed 
for  every  secret  thing"  and  extending  to  "every  deed," 
whether  these  be  good  or  bad.  In  dealing  with  the  motives 
of  a  virtuous  life,  therefore,  he  a  little  goes  beyond  his 
former  lines  of  thought,  gives  them  a  wider  scope,  makes 
them  more  sharp  and  definite.  On  the  other  hand,  in 
speaking  of  the  forms  which  a  virtuous  life  should  assume, 
he  is  very  curt  and  brief  All  he  has  to  say  on  that 
point  now  is,  "  Fear  God  and  keep  His  commandments :" 
whereas  in  his  previous  treatment  of  it  he  had  had  much  to 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  293 

say, — bidding  us,  for  instance,  "  cast  our  bread  upon  the 
waters,"  and  "give  a  portion  thereof  to  seven,  and  even 
to  eight :"  bidding  us  "  sow  our  seed  morning  and  evening  " 
though  "the  clouds"  shoidd  "be  full  of  rain"  and  what- 
ever "  the  course  of  the  wind  ;"  bidding  us  "  rejoice "  in 
all  our  labours,  and  carry  to  all  our  self-denials  a  merry 
medicinal  heart.  As  we  studied  the  meaning  of  the  many 
beautiful  figures  of  the  Eleventh  Chapter,  as  we  sought  to 
gather  up  their  several  meanings  into  an  orderly  connection 
and  to  express  them  in  a  more  literal  logical  form — to  trans- 
late them,  in  short,  from  the  Eastern  to  the  Western  mode, 
— we  found  that  the  main  virtues  enjoined  by  the  Preacher  ^ 
were  charity,  industry,  cheerfulness :  the  charity  which 
does  good  hoping  for  nothing  again,  the  industry  which 
bends  itself  to  the  present  duty  in  scorn  of  omen  or 
consequence,  and  the  cheerfulness  which  springs  from 
a  consciousness  of  the  Divine  presence,  from  the  convic- 
tion that,  however  men  may  misjudge  us,  God  knows  us 
altogether  and  will  one  day  reveal  the  secrets  of  all  hearts. 
This  was  our  summary  of  the  Preacher's  argument,  of  his 
solution  of  the  supreme  moral  problem  of  life.  Here,  in 
the  Epilogue,  he  gives  us  his  own  summary  in  the  words  : 
"  Fear  God,  and  keep  Ilis  commandments." 

If  we  compare  these  two  summaries,  there  seems  at  first 
rather  difference  than  resemblance  between  them  :  the  one 
appears,  if  more  indefinite,  much  more  comprehensive  than 
the  other.     Yet  there  is  one  point  of  resemblance  which 


294  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

soon  strikes  us.  For  we  know  very  well  that  on  the 
Preacher's  lips  "  Fear  God  "  does  not  mean  "  Be  afraid  of 
God ;"  that  it  indicates  and  demands  just  that  reverent 
sense  of  the  Divine  Presence,  that  strong  inward  convic- 
tion of  the  constant  judgment  God  passes  on  all  our  ways 
and  motives  and  thoughts,  which  Coheleth  has  already 
affirmed  to  be  a  prime  safeguard  of  virtue.  It  is  the 
phrase  "  keep  His  commandments  "  which  sounds  so  much 
larger  than  anything  we  have  heard  from  him  before,  so 
much  more  comprehensive.  Por  the  commandments  of 
God  are  many  and  very  broad.  He  reveals  His  will  in 
the  natural  laws  which  govern  the  universe,  and  which, 
inasmuch  as  we  are  part  of  the  universe,  we  need  to  know 
and  to  obey.  He  reveals  His  wiU  in  the  social  and  po- 
litical forces  which  govern  the  history  and  development  of 
the  various  races  of  mankind,  which  therefore  meet  and 
affect  us  at  every  turn.  He  reveals  His  will  in  the  moral 
codes  which  govern  the  formation  of  inward  character, 
which  enter  into  and  give  shape  to  all  in  us  that  is  most 
spiritual,  profound,  enduring.  To  keep  all  the  command- 
ments revealed  in  these  immense  provinces  of  Divine 
action  with  an  intelligent  and  an  invariable  obedience  is 
simply  impossible  to  us :  it  is  the  perfection  which  ilows 
round  our  imperfection,  and  towards  which  it  is  our  one 
great  task  to  reach  forth  and  will  always  be  our  task.  Is  it  as 
inciting  us  to  this  impossible  perfection  that  the  Preacher 
bids  us  "  Pear  God  and  keep  His  commandments  "  ? 


CuAV.  XII.  V.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  295 

Yes  and  No.  It  is  not  as  having  this  large  perfect 
ideal  distinctly  before  his  mind  that  he  utters  his  injunc- 
tion, nor  even  as  having  so  much  of  it  in  his  mind  as  is 
expressed  in  the  complex  law  that  came  by  INIoses — in 
which,  as  you  will  remember,  there  are  precepts  for  tlie 
l)hysical  and  political  as  well  as  for  the  moral  and  religious 
life.  What  he  meant  by  bidding  us  "  keep  the  command- 
ments "  was,  I  apprehend,  that  we  should  take  the  counsels 
he  has  already  given  us,  and  follow  after  charity,  industry, 
cheerfulness.  Every  other  phrase  in  this  final  "conclu- 
sion of  the  whole  matter  "  is,  as  we  have  seen,  a  repetition 
of  the  truths  announced  at  the  close  of  the  previous  Sec- 
tion, and  therefore  we  may  fairly  assume  this  phrase  to 
contain  a  truth — the  truth  of  duty — which  he  there  illus- 
trates. Throughout  the  whole  Book  there  is  not  a  single 
technical  allusion,  no  allusion  to  the  temple,  to  the  feasts, 
to  the  sacrifices,  rites,  ceremonies  of  the  Law  :  and  there- 
fore we  can  hardly  take  this  reference  to  God's  "com- 
mandments "  as  an  allusion  to  the  Mosaic  code.  By  the 
rules  of  fair  inteq^rctation  we  are  compelled  to  take  these 
commandments  as  previously  defined  by  the  Preacher 
himself,  to  understand  him  as  once  more  enforcing  the 
virtues  which  he  has  already  suggested  as  comprising  the 
whole  duty  of  man. 

Do  we  thus  limit  and  degrade  the  moral  ideal,  or  repre- 
sent him  as  degrading  and  limiting  it  ?  By  no  means. 
For  to  love  our  neighbour,  to  discharge  the  present  duty 


296  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

whatever  rain  may  fall  and  whatever  storm  may  blow,  to 
carry  a  bright  cheerful  spirit  to  all  our  toils  and  acts  of 
goodwill ;  to  do  this  in  the  fear  of  God,  as  in  His  presence, 
because  He  is  judging  us  and  will  judge  us,  involves  all 
that  is,  included  in  the  loftiest  ideal  of  moral  duty  and 
perfection.  For  how  are  we  to  be  cheerful  and  dutiful  and 
kind  except  as  we  obey  the  commandments  of  God  whether 
these  commandments  be  revealed  in  the  physical  universe, 
or  in  the  history  of  man,  or  in  his  spiritual  culture  and 
progress  ?  The  diseases  which  result  from  a  violation  of 
sanitary  laws,  as  also  the  ignorance  or  the  wilfulness  or  the 
impotence  which  lead  us  to  violate  social  or  moral  laws, 
of  necessity  and  by  natural  consequence  impair  our  cheer- 
fulness, our  strength  for  laborious  duties,  our  neighbourly 
charity  and  goodwill.  To  live  the  life  which  the  Preacher 
recommends  on  the  inspiration  of  the  motives  which  he 
supplies  is  therefore,  in  the  largest  and  broadest  sense,  to 
keep  all  the  commandments  of  God. 

What  advantage  is  there  then  in  saying,  "  Be  kind,  be 
dutiful,  be  cheerful,"  over  saying,  "  Obey  all  the  laws  of 
God,  sanitary,  social,  moral "  ?  There  is  this  great  prac- 
tical advantage  :  that,  while  in  the  last  resort  the  one  rule 
of  life  is  just  as  comprehensive  as  the  other  and  just  as 
difficult,  it  is  more  definite,  more  portable  :  it  does  not 
daunt  us  at  the  very  outset  with  an  unnerving  sense  of  our 
own  ignorance  and  weakness.  It  is  the  very  advantage 
which  our  Lord's  memorable  summary,  "  Thou  shalt  love 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  297 


the  Lord  thy  God  with  all  thy  heart  and  thy  neighbour  as 
thyself,"  has  over  the  Law  and  the  Prophets.     Bid  a  man 
keep  the  whole  Mosaic  code  as  interpreted  by  the  prophets 
through  a  thousand  years,  and  you  set  him  a  task  so  heavy, 
so  hopeless,  that  he  may  well  decline  it :  only  to  under- 
stand the  bearing  and  harmony  of  the  Mosaic  statutes  and 
to  gather  the  sense  in  which  the  several  prophets  inter- 
preted them  is  the  labour  of  a  lifetime,  a  labour  for  which 
even  the  whole  life  of  a  trained  scholar  is  insufficient.    But 
bid  him  "Love  God  and  man,"  and  you  give  him  a  rule  which 
his  own  conscience  at  once  accepts  and  interprets,  a  rule 
which,  if  he  be  of  a  good  heart  and  a  willing  mind,  he  will 
be  able  to  apply  to  the  details  and  problems  of  life  as  they 
arise.     In  like  manner,  if  you  say  :  "  The  true  ideal  of  life 
is  to  be  reached  only  by  the  man  who  comprehends  and 
obeys  all  the  laws  of  God  as  revealed  in  the   physical 
universe,  in  the  history  of  humanity,  in  the  moral  instincts 
and  intuitions  and  discoveries  of  the  race,"  you  set  him  a 
task  so  stupendous  that  not  only  has  no  man  ever  been 
able  to  accomplish  it,  but  to  this  day  it  remains  unaccom- 
plished by  the  united  wisdom  and  virtue  of  mankind.  Say, 
on  the  other  hand,  "  Do  the  duty  of  every  hour  as  it  passes, 
without  fretting  about  future  issues  ;  help  your  neighbour 
to  do  his  duty  or  to  bear  his  burden,  even  though  he  may 
never  have  helped  you  ;  be  blithe  and  cheerful  when  your 
work  is  hard  and  your  neighbour  is  ungrateful  or  unkind," 
and  you  speak  to  his  lieart,  to  his  sense  of  what  is  just  ami 


298  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

right  and  good.  He  can  begin  to  practise  your  rule  of  life 
without  preliminary  and  exhausting  study  of  its  meaning : 
and  if  he  finds  it  work,  as  he  assuredly  will,  he  will  be 
encouraged  to  make  it  his  rule.  He  will  soon  discover 
indeed  that  it  means  more  than  he  thought,  that  it  includes 
much  more  than  he  saw  in  it  at  first,  that  it  is  very  much 
harder  to  keep  than  he  supposed ;  but  its  depths  and 
difficulties  will  open  on  him  gradually,  as  he  is  able  to 
bear  them.  If  his  heart  now  and  then  faint,  if  hand 
and  foot  falter,  still  God  is  with  him,  with  him  to  help 
and  reward  as  well  as  to  judge ;  and  that  conviction  once 
in  his  mind  is  there  for  ever,  a  constant  stimulus  to 
thought,  to  obedience,  to  patience. 

In  nothing  indeed  does  the  wisdom  of  the  inspired  He- 
brew sages  show  its  superiority  over  that  of  the  other 
sages  of  antiquity  more  decisively  than  in  its  adaptation 
to  the  practical  needs  of  men  busied  in  the  affairs  of  life, 
and  with  no  learning  and  no  leisure  for  the  study  of  large 
intricate  problems.  If  you  read  Confucius,  for  instance, 
or  Plato,  you  cannot  fail  to  be  struck  with  their  immense 
grasp  of  thought,  or  their  profound  learning,  or  even  their 
moral  enthusiasm :  as  you  read,  you  will  often  meet  with 
wise  rules  of  life  expressed  in  beautiful  forms.  And  yet 
your  mam  feeling  will  be  that  they  give  you  and  men 
like  you  little  help,  that  unless  you  had  their  rare  endow- 
ments or  could  give  yourself  whoUy  to  the  study  of  their 
works,  you  could  hardly  hope  to  learn  what  they  have  to 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  299 

teach  or  to  order  your  life  by  their  rules.  And  that  this 
feeling  is  just  and  accurate  is  proved  by  the  histories  of 
China  and  Greece.  In  China  only  students,  only  literati 
are  so  much  as  supposed  to  understand  the  moral  system 
of  Confucius ;  the  great  bulk  of  the  people  have  to  be 
content  mth  a  few  rules  and  forms  and  rites  which  his 
disciples  have  dictated  to  them  and  of  the  moral  bases  of 
which  they  are  utterly  ignorant.  In  ancient  Greece,  as  we 
aU  know,  the  wisdom  to  which  the  great  masters  of  anti- 
quity attained  was  only  taught  in  the  Schools  to  men  who 
had  addicted  themselves  to  a  philosophic  life:  even  the 
natural  and  moral  truths  on  which  the  popular  mythology 
was  founded  were  hidden  in  "  mysteries  "  open  only  to  the 
initiated  few :  while  the  great  mass  of  the  people  were 
amused  with  fables  which  they  misinterpreted  and  with 
rites  which  they  soon  degraded  into  licentious  orgies.  No 
man  cared  for  tlieir  souls:  their  mistakes  were  not  cor- 
rected, their  license  met  no  rebuke.  Their  wise  men 
made  no  endeavour  to  lift  them  to  a  height  from  which 
they  might  see  that  the  whole  of  morality  lay  in  the  love 
of  God  and  man — in  charity,  duty,  cheerfulness.  But  it 
was  far  otherwise  with  the  Hebrews  and  their  sages.  The 
holy  men  who  were  taught  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  men  such 
as  the  Preacher,  confined  themselves  to  no  school  or  class, 
but  carried  their  wisdom  to  the  synagogue,  to  the  market- 
place, to  the  popular  assemblies  and  academies.  Tliey 
invented  no  "  mysteries,"  but  brought  down  the  mysteries 


300  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

of  heaven  to  the  understanding  of  the  simple.  Instead  of 
engaging  in  lofty  abstract  speculations  in  which  only  the 
learned  could  follow  them,  they  compressed  the  loftiest 
wisdom  into  plain  moral  rules  which  the  unlettered  could 
comprehend,  and  urged  them  to  obedience  by  motives 
and  promises  which  inflamed  the  popular  heart.  And 
they  had  their  reward.  The  truths  of  God  became  familiar 
to  all  sorts  and  conditions  of  Hebrew  men ;  they  became  a 
factor,  and  the  most  influential  factor,  in  the  national  life. 
Fishermen,  carpenters,  tent-makers,  sandal-makers,  publi- 
cans grew  studious  of  the  Divine  Will  and  learned  the 
secrets  of  peace.  During  the  wonderful  revival  of  literary 
and  religious  activity  which  followed  the  Exile  in  Babylon, 
every  Hebrew  child  was  compelled  to  attend  a  common 
school  in  which  the  Sacred  Scriptures — almost  their  sole 
literature  then — were  taught  by  the  ablest  and  most 
learned  rabbis :  in  which,  as  we  learn  from  the  Talmud, 
the  duty  of  leading  a  religious  life  in  all  outward  con- 
ditions even  to  the  poorest  was  impressed  upon  them, 
and  the  very  virtues  of  the  Preacher — the  virtues  of  cha- 
rity, industry,  cheerfulness — were  enforced  as  the  very 
soul  of  religion.  Here,  for  example,  is  a  legend  from  the 
Talmud,  and  it  is  only  one  of  many  like  unto  it,  which 
illustrates  and  confirms  all  that  I  have  said. — "A  sage, 
while  walking  in  a  crowded  market-place,  suddenly  en- 
countered the  prophet  Elijah,  and  asked  him  who,  out  of 
that  vast  multitude,  would  be  saved.     Whereupon   the 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  301 

Prophet  first  pointed  out  a  weird-looking  creature,  a  turn- 
key, '  because  he  was  merciful  to  his  prisoners,'  and  next 
two  common-looking  tradesmen  who  were  walking  through 
the  crowd,  pleasantly  chatting  together.  The  Sage  in- 
stantly rushed  after  them,  and  asked  them  what  were  their 
saving  works.  But  they,  much  puzzled,  replied  :  '  We  are 
but  poor  workmen  who  live  by  our  trade.  All  that 
can  be  said  for  us  is  that  we  are  always  of  a  cheerful 
spirit,  and  are  good-natured.  "NVlien  we  meet  anybody 
who  seems  sad  we  join  him,  and  we  talk  to  him  and  cheer 
him  so  long  that  he  must  forget  his  grief.  And  if  we  know 
of  two  people  who  have  quarreled,  we  talk  to  them,  and 
persuade  them,  until  we  have  made  them  friends  again. 
This  is  our  whole  life.' "  It  is  simply  impossible  that  such  a 
legend  should  have  sprung  up  in  any  ancient  literature  save 
that  of  the  Jews.  Had  Confucius  been  asked  to  point  out 
the  man  whom  Heaven  most  approved,  he  would  probably 
have  replied,  "  The  superior  man  is  catholic,  not  sectarian  ; 
he  does  not  do  to  others  what  he  would  not  have  done  to 
liimself ; "  *  "  he  is  observant  of  the  rules  of  Propriety ; "  and 


*  Tliis  partial  anticipation  of  the  Golden  Rule  will  be  found  in  the  Con- 
fucian Analects,  Book  xv.  chap,  xxiii.  "  Tsze-kung:  asked,  .sayinpr,  '  Is  there 
one  word  which  may  serve  as  a  rule  of  practice  for  all  one's  life  ?'  The  Master 
said,  '  Is  not  reciprocity  such  a  word  ?  What  you  do  not  want  done  to  your- 
self, do  not  do  to  others.'  "  The  same  rule  is  given  in  another  fonn  in  Book  v. 
Chap.  xi.  of  the  Analects.  The  other  phrases  I  have  put  into  the  sage's 
mouth  arc  quoted  from  the  same  work. 


302  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

lie  would  certainly  have  looked  for  him  in  a  State  official 
distinguished  by  his  wise  administration.  Had  any  of  the 
Greek  sages  been  asked  the  same  question,  they  would 
have  found  their  perfect  man  in  the  philosopher  who, 
raised  above  the  common  passions  and  aims  of  men,  gave 
himself  to  the  pursuit  of  an  abstract  and  speculative  wis- 
dom. Only  a  Hebrew  would  have  looked  for  him  in  that 
low  estate  in  which,  by  the  wisdom  of  God  and  in  His 
great  humility,  the  one  truly  Perfect  Man  dwelt  among 
us.  And  yet  how  that  Hebrew  legend  charms  us  and  com- 
mends itseK  to  us  !  What  a  hope  for  humanity  there  is 
in  the  thought,  that  the  poor  weird-looking  jailer  who  was 
merciful  to  his  prisoners,  and  the  kindly,  industrious, 
cheerful  working  men,  living  by  their  craft,  and  incapable 
of  regarding  their  diligence  and  good-nature  as  saving 
works,  stood  higher  than  priest  or  rabbi,  philosopher  or 
ruler !  How  welcome  and  ennobling  is  the  conviction  that 
there  are  last  who  yet  are  first — last  with  men,  first  with 
God  ;  that  turnkeys  and  artizans,  even  publicans  and  har- 
lots may  draw  nearer  to  Heaven  than  -sophist  or  flamen, 
sage  or  prince!  Who  so  poor  but  that  he  has  a  little 
"  bread  "  to  cast  on  the  thankless  unreturning  waters  ?  who 
so  faint  of  heart  but  that  he  may  sow  a  little  "  seed  "  even 
when  the  winds  rave  and  the  sky  is  full  of  clouds  ?  who 
so  solitary  and  forlorn  but  that  he  may  say  a  word  of  com- 
fort to  a  weeping  neighbour  or  seek  to  make  "  two  people 
who  have  quaiTeled  friends  again  ?  "     And  this  is  all  that 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  303 

the  Preacher,  all  that  God  through  the  Preacher,    asks 
of  us. 

All — yet  even  this  is  much  ;  even  for  this  we  shall  need 
the  help  of  constant  and  weighty  motives  :  for  it  is  not 
only  occasional  acts  which  are  required  of  us,  but  settled 
tempers  and  habits  of  goodwill,  diligence,  cheerfulness ; 
and  to  love  all  men,  to  rejoice  alway,  to  do  our  duty  in  all 
weathers  and  all  moods  is  very  hard  to  our  weak,  selfish, 
and  easily-dejected  natures.  Does  the  Preacher  supply  us 
with  such  motives  as  we  need  ?  He  offers  us  two  motives ; 
one  in  the  present  judgment,  another  in  the  future  judg- 
ment of  God.  "God  is  with  you,"  he  says,  "taking 
cognizance  of  all  you  do ;  and  you  will  soon  be  with  God, 
to  give  Him  an  account  of  every  secret'  and  every  deed." 
But  tJiat  is  an  appeal  to  fear — is  it  not  ?  It  is  rather  an 
appeal  to  love  and  hope.  He  has  no  thought  of  frightening 
us  into  obedience — for  the  obedience  of  fear  is  not  worth 
having,  is  not  obedience  in  the  true  sense  ;  but  he  is  trying 
to  win  and  allure  us  to  obedience.  For  whatever  terrors 
God's  judgment  or  the  future  world  may  have  for  us,  it  is 
very  certain  that  these  terrors  were  in  large  measure 
unknown  to  the  Jews.  The  Talmud  knows  nothing  of 
"  hell,"  nothing  of  an  everlasting  torture.  Even  the  "  Shcol" 
of  the  Old  Testament  Scriptures  is  simply  the  "under- 
world "  in  which  the  Jews  thought  the  spirits  of  good  men 
and  bad  were  gathered  after  death.  And  to  the  Jews  for 
whom  Coheleth  wrote  the  judgment  of  God,  whether  here 


304  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

or  hereafter,  would  have  singular  and  powerful  attractions. 
They  were  in  captivity  to  merciless  and  capricious  despots 
who  took  no  pains  to  understand  their  character,  their 
habits,  their  modes  of  thought  and  worship — despots  who 
had  no  sense  of  justice,  no  kindness,  no  ruth  for  slaves. 
For  men  thus  oppressed  and  liopeless  there  would  be  an 
infinite  comfort  in  the  thought  that  God,  the  Great  Euler 
and  Disposer,  knew  them  altogether,  saw  all  their  strug- 
gles to  maintain  His  worship  and  to  do  His  will,  took  note 
of  every  wrong  they  suffered,  "  was  afflicted  in  all  their 
afflictions  ; "  and  would  one  day  call  both  them  and  their 
oppressors  to  the  bar  at  which  all  wrongs  are  righted,  all 
services  recompensed,  all  cruelty  and  unmercifulness 
avenged.  Would  it  affright  them,  think  you,  to  hear  "  that 
God  taketh  cognizance  of  all  things,"  and  has  "  appointed 
a  judgment  for  every  secret  and  every  deed "  ?  Eather 
would  not  this  be  their  strongest  consolation,  their  brightest 
hope  ?  Would  they  not  do  their  duty  with  a  better  heart, 
if  they  knew  that  God  saw  how  hard  it  was  ?  Would 
they  not  show  a  more  constant  kindness  to  their  neigh- 
bour, if  they  knew  that  God  would  openly  reward  every 
alms  done  in  secret  ?  Would  they  not  carry  a  blither  and 
more  patient  spirit  to  all  their  labours  and  sufferings,  if 
they  knew  that  a  day  of  recompenses  was  at  hand  ?  The 
Preacher  thought  they  would :  and  hence  he  bids  them 
"  rejoice,"  bids  them  "  banish  care  and  sadness,"  lecmtse 
God  will  bring  them  into  judgment,  and  incites  them  to 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  306 

"  keep  the  commandments  "  because  God's  eye  is  on  tliem, 
and  because,  in  the  judgment,  He  will  not  forget  the  work 
of  their  obedience,  the  labour  of  their  love. 

This  to  some  of  us  may  be  a  novel  view  whether  of  the 
present  or  of  the  future  judgment  of  God.  For  the  most 
part,  I  fear,  we  speak  of  the  Divine  judgments  as  terrible 
and  well-nigh  unendurable.  "We  would  escape  them  even 
here,  if  we  could  ;  but,  above  all,  we  dread  them  when  we 
shall  stand  before  the  bar  at  which  the  secrets  of  all  hearts 
will  be  disclosed.  Now  we  need  not,  and  we  must  not, 
lose  aught  of  that  awe  and  reverence  for  Him  who  is  our 
God  and  Father  which,  so  far  from  impairing,  deepens  our 
love.  But  we  need  to  remember  that  fear  is  base,  that  it 
is  the  enemy  of  love ;  that  so  long  as  we  anticipate  the 
Divine  judgments  only  or  mainly  with  dread,  we  are  far 
from  the  love  which  alone  gives  value  to  obedience ;  and 
that,  if  we  are  to  be  good  and  happy,  we  must  "  shut  out 
fear  with  all  the  strength  of  hope."  What  is  it  that  we  fear  ? 
Suffering !  But  why  should  we  fear  that  if  we  shall  be  the 
better  and  happier  for  it  ?  Death  !  But  why  should  we 
fear  that  if  it  will  take  us  home  to  our  Father  ?  God's 
anger !  But  God  is  not  angry  with  us  if  we  love  Him  and 
try  to  do  His  will ;  He  loves  us  even  when  we  sin  against 
Him,  and  shows  His  love  in  making  our  sin  so  hard  and 
painful  to  us  that  we  can  know  no  peace  till  we  have  cast 
it  away.  We  are  to  guard  against  sin  lest  we  should  be 
judged  here  and  now  ;  but,  says  St.  Paul,  "  when  we  are 

20 


306  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

judged,  we  are  cliastened  tliat  we  should  not  be  con- 
demned." Is  it  not  better  to  be  chastened  than  condemned  ? 
Shall  we  dread,  shall  we  not  rather  desire,  the  judgment  by 
which  we  are  purified  and  saved  ? 

"  But  the  future  judgment — that  is  so  dreadful !"  Is  it  ? 
God  knows  us  as  we  are  already  :  is  it  so  very  much  worse 
that  we  should  know  ourselves  and  that  our  neighbours 
should  know  us  ?  If  among  our  "  secrets  "  there  be  many 
things  evil — are  there  not  some  good  ?  Do  we  not  find 
ourselves  perpetually  thwarted  or  hindered  in  our  endea- 
vours to  give  form  and  scope  to  our  best  feelings,  to  our 
kindest  tenderest  sympathies,  to  our  loftiest  resolves  ?  Do 
we  not  perpetually  complain  that  when  we  would  do  good, 
even  if  evil  is  not  present  to  overcome  the  good,  it  is 
present  to  mar  it,  to  make  our  goodness  poor,  scanty, 
ungraceful  ?  Well,  these  obstructed  purposes  and  inten- 
tions and  resolves,  all  the  good  in  us  that  has  been  frus- 
trated or  deformed  by  ova  social  conditions,  by  our  lack  of 
power,  culture,  expression,  by  the  clogging  flesh  or  by  the 
flagging  brain, — all  these  are  among  "  the  secret  things " 
which  God  will  bring  to  light ;  and  we  may  be  very  sure 
that  He  will  not  think  less  of  these.  His  own  work  in  us, 
than  of  the  manifold  sins  by  wliich  we  have  marred  His 
work.  We  are  in  some  danger  of  regarding  "the  judg- 
ment "  as  a  revelation  of  our  trespasses  only,  instead  of  a 
revelation  of  the  whole  man,  the  "  good  "  in  him  as  well 
as  the  "  bad."    Once  conceive  of  it  aright,  as  the  disclosure 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  307 

of  all  that  is  in  iis,  and  mere  lionesty  might  well  lead  ns 
to  desire  rather  than  to  dread  it.  One  of  the  finest  and 
most  devout  spirits*  of  modern  France  has  said :  "  It  seems 
to  me  intolerable  to  appear  to  men  other  than  we  appear 
to  God.  ]My  worst  torture  at  this  moment  is  the  over- 
estimate which  generous  friends  form  of  me.  We  are  told 
that  af  the  last  judgment  the  secret  of  all  consciences  will 
be  laid  bare  to  the  universe  ;  vjould  that  mine  ^vere  so  this 
day,  and  that  every  passer-by  could  read  me  as  I  am  !  "  To 
seem  what  we  are,  to  be  known  for  what  we  are,  to  be 
treated  as  what  we  are,  this  is  the  judgment  of  God.  And, 
though  this  judgment  must  bring  even  the  best  of  us  much 
shame  and  much  sorrow,  who  that  sincerely  loves  God  and 
truth  will  not  rejoice  to  have  done  at  last  with  all  subter- 
fuge, all  hypocrisy,  all  smooth  insincerities,  to  wear  his 
natural  colours,  and  to  take  his  true  place,  even  though  it 
be  the  lowest  ? 

In  the  corrupted  currents  of  this  world 
Ofience's  gilded  hand  may  shove  by  justice, 
And  oft  'tis  seen  the  wicked  prize  itself 
Buj's  out  the  law :  but  'tis  not  so  above  ; 
There  is  no  shtiffling,  there  the  action  lies 
In  its  true  nature,  and  we  ourselves  compell'd 
Even  to  the  teeth  and  forehead  of  our  faults 
To  give  in  evidence.f 


•  Maurice  de  Gudrin,  in  his  celebrated  "  Journal." 
t  Hamlet.     Act  III.,  Scone  iii. 

20* 


308  THE  EPILOGUE.  Caap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

To  have  got  out  of  "  tlic  corrupted  currents  "  of  which 
audacious  and  strong  injustice  so  often  avails  itself  to  our 
hurt ;  to  be  quit  of  all  the  shuffling  equivocations  by  which 
we  so  often  pervert  the  true  character  of  our  actions  and 
persuade  ourselves  that  we  are  other  and  better  than  we 
are ;  to  be  compelled  to  look  our  faults  straight  and  fairly 
in  the  face  ;  to  have  all  the  latent  goodness  of  our  natures 
developed,  and  their  fettered  and  obstructed  virtue  liberated 
from  every  hindering  bond ;  to  see  our  "  every  deed  "  good 
as  well  as  bad,  and  our  "  every  secret "  good  as  well  as 
bad,  brought  to  light :  is  there  no  hope,  no  comfort  for  us 
in  such  a  prospect  as  this  ?  It  is  a  prospect  full  of  comfort, 
full  of  hope,  if  at  least  we  have  any  real  trust  in  the  grace 
and  kindness  of  God  ;  and  if,  through  His  grace,  we  have 
set  ourselves  to  do  our  duty,  to  love  our  neighbour,  to  bear 
all  the  changes  and  sorrows  of  life  with  a  patient  cheerful 
heart. 

Now  that  we  have  once  more  heard  the  Preacher's  final 
conclusion,  we  shall  have  no  difficulty  in  fitting  into  its 
place,  or  valuing  at  its  worth,  the  partial  and  provisional 
conclusion  to  which  he  rises  at  the  close  of  the  previous 
Sections  of  the  Book.  In  the  First  Section  he  describes  his 
Quest  of  the  Chief  Good  in  Wisdom  and  in  Mirth  ;  he  de- 
clares that  though  both  wisdom  and  mirth  are  good,  neither 
of  them  is  the  supreme  good  of  life ;  and,  in  despair  of 
reaching  any  higher  mark,  he   closes  with  the  admission 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  aO'J 

(Chap,  ii,  vv.  24 — 26),  that  even  for  the  wise  good  man 
"  there  is  nothing  better  than  to  eat  and  to  drink,  and  to 
let  liis  soul  take  pleasure  in  his  labour."  In  the  Second 
Section  he  urges  his  Quest  in  Devotion  to  Business  and 
Public  Affairs,  only  to  find  his  former  conclusion  confirmed 
(Chap.  V.  vv.  18—20);  "Behold,  that  which  I  have  said 
holds  good  ;  it  is  well  for  a  man  to  eat  and  to  drink,  and 
to  enjoy  all  the  good  of  his  labour  through  the  brief  day 
of  his  life :  this  is  his  portion ;  he  should  take  his  portion 
and  rejoice  in  his  labour,  remembering  that  the  days  of  his 
life  are  not  many  and  that  God  meant  him  to  work  for  the 
enjoyment  of  liis  heart."  In  the  Third  Section,  his  Quest 
in  Wealth  and  in  the  Golden  Mean  conducts  him  by 
another  road  to  the  same  bright  resting-place,  which  how- 
ever, for  all  so  bright  as  it  looks,  he  seems  to  enter  every 
time  with  a  sadder  and  more  dejected  spirit  (Chap.  viii. 
V.  15):  more  and  more  ruefully  he  "  commends  mirth,  be- 
cause there  is  nothing  better  for  man  than  to  eat  and  to 
drink  and  to  rejoice,  and  because  this  will  go  with  him  to 
his  work  througli  the  days  of  his  life  which  God  giveth  him 
under  the  sun."  To  my  mind  there  is  a  strange  pathos  in 
the  mournful  tones  in  which  the  Preacher  commends  mirth, 
in  the  i)laintive  minors  of  a  voice  from  which  we  should 
naturally  expect  the  clear  ringing  majors  of  joy.  As  we 
listen  to  these  recurring  notes,  we  feel  that  he  has  been 
bafTled  in  his  (^>uest ;  that,  starting  every  day  in  a  fresh 
direction  and  travelling  till  he  is  weary  and  uver.spent,  he 


310  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

finds  himself  night  after  night  at  the  very  spot  he  had  left 
in  the  morning,  and  can  only  alleviate  the  unwelcome  sur- 
prise by  muttering,  "  As  well  here  perhaps  as  elsewhere  ! " 
No  votary  of  mirth  and  jollity  surely  ever  wore  so  rueful  a 
face,  or  sang  their  praises  with  more  trembling  and  reluc- 
tant lips.  What  can  be  more  hopeless  than  his  "  there  is 
nothing  better,  so  you  must  even  be  content  with  this,"  or 
than  his  constant  reference  to  the  brevity  of  life !  You 
feel  that  the  man  has  been  passionately  seeking  for  some- 
thing better,  for  a  good  which  would  be  a  good  not  only 
through  the  brief  days  of  this  life,  but  through  all  time  ; 
that  it  is  with  a  heart  broken  by  the  sense  of  wasted 
endeavour  and  keen  unsatisfied  cravings  that  he  falls 
back  on  pleasures  as  brief  as  his  day,  as  wearisome  as 
his  toils.  Yet  all  the  while  he  feels,  and  makes  you  feel, 
that  there  is  a  truth  in  his  conclusion ;  that  mirth  is  a 
great  good,  though  not  the  greatest ;  that  if  he  could  but 
find  that  "  something  better "  of  which  he  is  in  quest,  he 
would  learn  the  secret  of  a  deeper  mirth  than  that  which 
springs  from  eating  and  drinking  and  sensuous  delights, 
a  mirth  which  would  not  set  with  the  setting  sun  of  his 
brief  day. 

This  feeling  is  justified  by  the  issue.  Now  that  the 
Preacher  has  completed  his  circle  of  thought,  we  can  see 
that  it  is  well  for  a  man  to  rejoice  and  take  pleasure  in  his 
labours,  that  God  did  mean  him  to  work  for  the  enjoyment 
of  his  heart,  that  there  is  a  mirth  purer  and  more  enduring 


Chap.  XII.  V.  14.  TllK  Kl'lLOOUE.  311 

than  that  which  springs  from  knowletlgi;  ov  from  the  gra- 
tification of  the  senses,  or  from  success  in  the  affairs  of 
business,  or  from  the  possession  of  wealth, — a  mirth  for 
this  life  which  widens  and  deepens  into  an  everlasting 
joy.  Throughout  his  Quest  Cohelcth  held  fast  to  the  con- 
viction that  "  it  is  a  comely  fashion  to  be  glad,"  though  he 
could  iiive  no  better  reasons  for  his  conviction  than  the 
transitoriness  of  life  and  the  impossibility  of  reaching  any 
higher  good.  Before  he  could  justify  this  conviction, 
before  he  could  really  satisfy  us  that  "  creatures  such  as 
we  are  in  such  a  world  as  this  "  should  be  blithe,  cheerful, 
gladi  he  nmst  achieve  his  Quest.  It  is  only  when  he  has 
learned  to  regard  our  life 

as  a  harp, 
A  gracious  instmmcnt  on  whose  fail'  strings 
We  learn  those  airs  wo  shall  be  set  to  play 
When  mortal  hours  are  ended, 

that  his  plaintive  minors  pass  into  the  light  jocund  tones 
appropriate  to  a  sincere  and  well-grounded  mirth.  Now 
he  can  cease  to  "trouble  deaf  heaven  with  his  bootless 
cries  "  about  the  indiscrimination  of  death  and  the  vanity 
of  all  things  under  the  sun.     He  can  now  say  to  his  soul, 

What  hast  thou  to  do  with  sorrow 
Or  the  injuries  of  to-morrow  ? 

for  he  has  discovered  that  no  morrow  can  any  more  injure 
him,  that  no  sorrow  can  rob  him  of  his  Chief  Good.     God 


312  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

is  with  him  now  and  here,  observing  all  the  postures  and 
moods  of  his  soul,  and  adapting  all  his  circumstances  to 
the  correction  of  what  is  evil  in  him  or  the  culture  of 
what  is  good.  There  is  no  dark  impassable  gulf  between 
this  world  and  the  heavenly  world  in  which  God  dwells : 
life  does  not  cease  at  death,  but  grows  more  intense,  more 
full ;  death  is  but  a  second  birth  into  a  second  and  better 
life,  a  life  of  happier  and  more  favourable  conditions,  yet 
a  life  which  is  the  continuation  and  consummation  of  that 
which  we  now  live  in  the  flesh.  All  that  he  has  to  do, 
therefore,  is  to  "  fear  God  and  keep  His  commandments," 
leaving  the  issues  of  his  labour  in  the  wise  gentle  Hands 
which  bend  all  things  to  a  final  goal  of  good.  Wliat 
though  the  clouds  drop  rain,  or  the  winds  blow  bitterly, 
what  though  his  life  be  overshadowed  or  his  diligence  and 
charity  meet  no  present  recognition  or  reward  ?  All  that 
is  no  business  of  his.  He  has  only  to  do  the  duty  of  the 
passing  day  and  to  help  his  neighbours  to  do  their  duty. 
So  long  as  he  can  do  this,  why  should  he  not  be  bright  and 
gay  ?  In  this  lies  his  Chief  Good :  why  should  he  not 
enjoy  that,  even  though  other  and  lesser  goods  be  taken 
from  him  for  a  time— be  lent  to  the  Lord  that  they  may 
hereafter  be  repaid  with  usury  ?     He  is  no  longer 

a  pipe  for  fortune's  finger 
To  sound  -wliat  stop  slie  please ; 

he  has  a  tune  of  his  own,  "  a  cheerful  tune,"  to  play,  and 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  313 

vnll  play  it  let  fortune  be  in  what  mood  she  please,  lie 
is  not  "  passion's  slave,"  but  the  servant  and  tlic  friend  of 
Cfod ;  and  because  God  is  with  him  and  for  him,  because 
he  will  soon  be  with  God,  he  is 

As  ono,  in  suffering  all,  that  suffers  nothing, 

and  can  take  "  fortune's  buffets  and  rewards  with  equal 
thanks."  His  cheerful  content  does  not  lie  at  the  mercy 
of  accident ;  the  winds  and  waves  of  vicissitude  cannot 
prevail  against  it :  for  it  has  two  broad  solid  foundations, 
one  on  earth,  the  other  in  heaven.  On  the  one  hand,  it 
springs  from  a  faithful  discharge  of  personal  duty  and  a 
neighbourly  charity  which  hopeth  all  things  and  endureth 
all  things :  on  the  other  hand,  it  springs  from  the  convic- 
tion that  God  taketh  cognizance  of  all  things,  and  will 
bring  every  secret  and  every  deed  into  judgment.  The 
fair  structure  which  rises  on  these  sure  foundations  is  not 
to  be  shaken  by  aught  that  does  not  sap  the  foundations 
on  which  it  rests.  Convince  him  that  God  is  not  with 
him,  or  that  God  does  not  so  care  for  him  as  to  judge  and 
reward  him  according  to  his  deeds ;  convict  him  of  gross 
and  constant  failures  in  duty  or  in  charity  :  and  then 
indeed  you  touch,  you  endanger,  his  peace.  But  no  ex- 
ternal loss,  no  breath  of  change,  no  cloud  in  the  sky  of 
his  fortimes,  no  loss,  no  infirmity  that  does  not  impede 
him  in  the  doing  of  his  duty,  can  do  more  than  cast  a 
passing   shadow  on  his  heart.     Whatever  happens,  into 


314  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

whatever  new  conditions  or  new  worlds  lie  may  pass,  his 
chief  good  and  therefore  his  supreme  joy  is  with  him. 

This  man  is  freed  from  servile  bands 

Of  hope  to  rise  or  fear  to  fall : 
Lord  of  himself,  though  not  of  lands, 

And,  having  nothing,  yet  hath  all. 

Now  too,  without  fear  or  favour,  without  any  prejudice 
for  or  against  his  conclusion  because  we  find  it  in  Holy 
Writ,  we  may  ask  ourselves :  Has  the  Preacher  satisfac- 
torily solved  the  problem  with  which  he  started  ?  has  he 
really  achieved  his  Quest  and  attained  the  Chief  Good  ? 
One  thing  is  qu.ite  clear  ;  he  has  not  lost  himself  in  specu- 
lations foreign  to  our  experience  and  remote  from  it ;  he 
has  dealt  with  the  common  facts  of  life  such  as  they  were 
in  his  time,  such  as  they  remain  in  our  time  :  for  now  as 
then  men  are  restless  and  craving,  and  seek  the  satisfac- 
tions of  rest  in  science  or  in  pleasure,  in  successful  public 
careers  or  in  the  fortunate  conduct  of  affairs,  by  securing 
wealth  or  by  laying  up  a  modest  provision  for  present  and 
future  wants.     Now  as  then  • 

The  common  problem,  yours,  mine,  everyone's, 
Is  not  to  fancy  what  were  fair  in  life 
Providing  it  could  be, — but,  finding  first 
What  may  be,  then  find  how  to  make  it  fair 
Up  to  our  means — a  veiy  diflPerent  thing.* 

*   "Bishop  Blougram's  Apolog-y:  "  Browning. 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EriLOGUE.  315 

That  the  Preacher  should  have  attacked  this  coininou 
problem,  and  should  have  handled  it  with  the  practical 
good  sense  which  characterizes  his  Poem,  is  a  point,  and  a 
large  point,  in  his  favour. 

Nor  is  the  conclusion  at  which  lie  arrives,  in  its  sub- 
stance, peculiar  to  hiui  or  even  to  the  Sacred  Scriptures. 
He  says :  The  perfect  man,  the  ideal  man,  is  he  who  ad- 
dresses himself  to  present  duty  untroubled  by  adverse 
clouds  and  currents,  who  so  loves  his  neighbour  that  he 
can  do  good  even  to  the  evil  and  the  unthankful,  and  who 
carries  a  brave  cheerful  temper  to  the  unrewarded  toils  and 
unrecognized  sacrifices  of  his  life,  because  God  is  with  him, 
taking  note  of  all  he  does,  and  because  there  is  a  future 
life,  for  which  this  course  of  duty,  charity,  and  magna- 
ninuty  will  be  the  best  preparation.  He  affirms  tliat  the 
man  who  has  risen  to  the  discovery  and  practice  of  this 
ideal  has  attained  the  Chief  Good,  that  he  has  found  a  duty 
from  which  no  accident  can  divert  him,  a  pure  tranquil  joy 
which  will  go  with  him  through  all  vicissitude  and  loss 
and  grie£  And,  on  his  behalf,  I  am  bold  to  assert  that, 
allowing  for  inevitable  differences  of  conception  and  utter- 
ance, his  conclusion  is  the  conclusion  of  all  the  great 
teachers  of  morality  whether  of  ancient  or  modern  times, 
whether  blessed  or  not  blessed  with  the  immediate  inspira- 
tion of  the  Almighty.  Take  any  of  the  ancient  systems  of 
morality  and  religion,  Hindu,  Egyptian,  Persian,  Chinese, 
Greek  or  Latin ;  select  those  elements  of  it  in  virtue  of 


316  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v.  13,  to 

which  it  has  lived  for  centuries  and  commanded  the  alle- 
giance of  myriads  of  men  ;  reduce  these  elements  to  their 
simplest  forms,  express  them  in  the  plainest  words  :  and, 
unless  I  am  much  mistaken,  you  will  find  that  in  every 
case  they  are  only  different  versions  of  the  final  conclusion 
of  the  Preacher.  "  Do  your  duty  patiently  ;  Be  kind  and 
helpful  one  to  another ;  Show  a  cheerful  content  with  your 
lot ;  Heaven  is  with  you  and  will  judge  you :" — these  brief 
maxims  seem  to  be  the  moral  epitome  of  all  the  creeds  and 
systems  that  have  had  their  day  as  also  of  those  which 
even  yet  have  not  ceased  to  be.  It  is  very  true  that  the 
motive  to  obedience  which  Coheleth  draws  from  the  future 
life  has  been  of  a  varying  force  and  influence,  rising  per- 
haps to  its  greatest  clearness  among  the  Egyptians  and  the 
Persians,  sinking  to  its  dimmest  among  the  Greeks  and 
Eomans,  although  we  cannot  say  it  did  not  shine  even  on 
these  ;  for  though  the  secret  of  their  "  mysteries  "  has  been 
kept  with  a  rare  fidelity,  yet  the  general  impression  of  an- 
tiquity concerning  them  was  that,  besides  disclosing  to  the 
initiated  the  natural  truths  and  moral  relations  which 
were  the  bases  of  the  popular  mythology,  they  "  opened  to 
man  a  comforting  prospect  of  a  future  state."  I  am  not 
careful  to  show  how  the  Word  of  Inspiration  surpasses  all 
other  "  scriptures  "  in  the  precision  with  which  it  enun- 
ciates the  elementary  truths  of  all  morality,  in  its  freedom 
from  admixture  with  baser  matter,  in  its  application  of 
those  truths  to  all  sorts  and  conditions  of  men,  and,  above 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  317 

all,  in  that  it  fuses  them  into  a  sacred  constraining  afl'ec- 
t  ion  which  dominates  and  gathers  to  itself 

All  thoughta,  all  passions,  all  delights 
Which  stir  within  this  mortal  frame : 

that  is  no  part  of  my  present  duty.  The  one  point  on 
which  I  would  ask  you  to  reflect  is  this  :  With  what  an 
enormous  weight  of  authority,  drawn  from  all  creeds  and 
systems,  from  the  whole  moral  experience  of  humanity,  the 
conclusion  of  the  Preacher  comes  to  us  ;  how  we  stand  re- 
buked by  the  wisdom  of  all  past  ages  if,  after  duly  testing 
it,  we  have  not  adopted  his  solution  of  the  moral  problem 
of  life  and  are  not  working  it  out.  Out  of  every  land,  in 
all  the  different  languages  of  the  divided  earth,  from  the 
lips  of  all  the  antique  sages  whom  we  reverence  for  their 
excellence  or  their  wisdom,  no  less  than  from  the  mouths 
of  prophet  and  psalmist,  preacher  and  apostle,  there  come 
to  us  voices  which  with  one  consent  bid  us  "  fear  God  and 
keep  His  commandments  ; " — a  sacred  chorus  which  paces 
down  the  aisles  of  Time,  chanting  the  praise  of  the  man 
who  does  his  duty  even  though  he  lose  by  it,  who  loves 
his  neighbour  even  though  he  win  no  love  in  return,  who 
breasts  the  blows  of  circumstance  with  a  tranquil  heart, 
who  by  a  wise  use  and  a  wise  enjoyment  of  the  life  that 
now  is  qualifies  himself  for  the  better  life  to  be. 

This,  then,  is  the    Hebrew  solution  of  "the   common 
problem."     It  is  also  the  Christian  solution.     For  when 


318  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  v,  13,  to 

"  the  Fellow  of  the  Lord  of  Hosts,"  instead  of  "  clutching  at 
His  equality  with  God,"  humbled  Himself  and  took  on  Him 
the  form  of  a  servant,  the  very  ideal  of  perfect  manhood 
became  incarnate  in  this  "  Man  from  heaven."  Does  the 
Hebrew  Preacher,  backed  by  the  consentient  voices  of  all 
the  great  sages  of  Antiquity,  demand  that  the  ideal  man, 
moved  thereto  by  his  sense  of  a  constant  Divine  Presence 
and  the  hope  of  God's  future  judgment,  should  cast  the 
bread  of  his  charity  on  the  thankless  waters  of  neigh- 
bourly ingratitude,  give  himself  with  all  diKgence  to 
the  discharge  of  duty  whatever  clouds  may  darken  the 
heaven,  whatever  unkindly  wind  may  nip  his  harvest, 
and  maintain  a  calm,  even  a  cheerful  temper  in 
all  weathers  and  through  all  the  changing  seasons 
of  life?  His  demand  is  met,  and  surpassed,  by  the 
Man  Christ  Jesus.  He  loved  all  men  with  a  love 
which  the  many  waters  of  their  hostility  and  unthank- 
fulness  could  not  quench.  Always  about  His  Father's 
business,  when  He  laid  aside  the  glory  He  had  with 
the  Father  before  the  world  was.  He  put  off  the  robes 
of  a  king  to  don  the  weeds  of  the  husbandman,  and  went 
forth  to  sow  in  all  weathers  beside  all  waters,  undaunted 
by  any  wind  of  opposition,  by  any  threatening  cloud.  In 
all  the  shocks  of  hostile  circumstance,  in  the  abiding 
agony  and  passion  of  a  life  short  in  years  indeed  but  in 
sorrows  above  all  measure  long.  He  carried  Himself  with 
a  cheerful  patience  which  never  wavered,  knew  a  peace 


Chap.  XII.  v.  14.  THE  EPILOGUE.  319 

which  the  world  did  not  give  and  could  not  take  away,  for 
the  joy  set  before  Him  despising  even  the  bitter  cross.  In 
.short,  the  very  virtues  inculcated  by  the  Preacher  were 
the  very  substance  of  "  the  highest  holiest  manhood  "  of 
Him  who  was  both  "  human  and  divine."  And  if  we  ask, 
What  were  the  motives  which  inspired  this  life  of  consum- 
mate and  unparalleled  excellence  ?  we  find  among  them 
the  very  motives  suggested  by  Coheleth.  The  strong  Son 
of  Man  was  never  alone  because  the  Father  was  alway 
with  Him,  as  truly  with  Him  while  He  was  on  earth  as 
when  He  was  in  heaven.  He  never  bated  heart  nor  hope 
because  He  knew  that  He  would  soon  be  with  God,  to  be 
judged  of  Him,  and  to  be  recompensed  according  to  the 
deeds  done  in  the  body  of  His  humiliation.  Men  might 
misjudge  Him ;  but  the  Judge  of  all  the  earth  would  do 
Him  right.  Men  might  award  Him  only  a  crown  of 
thorns ;  but  God  would  touch  the  thorns,  and,  at  His 
quickening  touch,  they  would  flower  into  a  garland  of 
immortal  beauty  and  honour. 

Nor  did  the  Lord  Jesus  help  us  in  our  Quest  of  the 
Chief  Good  only  by  becoming  the  Pattern  of  all  virtue. 
The  work  of  His  redemption  is  even  a  more  sovereign  help. 
By  the  sacrifice  of  His  death  He  took  away  the  sins  which 
had  rendered  the  pursuit  of  excellence  well-nigh  a  hopeless 
task.  By  the  impartation  of  His  Spirit  no  less  than  by 
tlie  inspirations  of  His  example.  He  seeks  to  win  us  to 
the  love  of  our  neighbour,  to  fidelity  in  the  discharge  of 


320  THE  EPILOGUE.  Chap.  XII.  vv.  13,  14. 

daily  duties,  to  that  cheerful  and  constant  trust  in  the 
providence  of  God  by  which  we  are  redeemed  from  the 
shackles  of  care  and  fear.  He,  the  Immanuel,  by  taking 
our  flesh  and  dwelling  among  us,  has  proved  that  "  God  is 
with  us,"  that  He  will  in  very  deed  dwell  with  men  upon 
the  earth.  He,  the  Victor  over  Death,  by  His  resurrection 
from  the  grave,  has  proved  the  truths  of  a  future  judgment 
and  a  future  life  with  arguments  of  a  force  and  quality 
unknown  to  our  Hebrew  fathers. 

So  that  now  as  of  old,  now  even  more  demonstrably 
than  of  old,  "  the  conclusion  of  the  whole  matter "  is  to 
"fear  God  and  keep  His  commandments."  This  is  still 
the  one  solution  of  "  the  common  problem  "  and  "  the 
whole  duty  of  man."  He  who  accepts  this  solution  and 
discharges  this  duty — he  has  achieved  the  supreme  Quest ; 
to  him  it  has  been  given  to  find  the  Chief  Good. 


FINIS. 


Yates  &  Alexander,  Printers,  7,  Symonds  Inn,  Chanccrj'  Lane. 


BY    THE     SAME    AUTHOR. 
Crown  8vo,  38. 

THE  PEIVATE  LETTERS  OF  ST.  PAUL 
AND  ST.  JOHN. 


NOTICES  OF  TEE  FEESS. 
"  These  letters  arc  the  Epistles  of  Paul  to  Philemon,  and  the  Second  and  Third  Epistles 
of  John.  These  personal  and  priTatc  letters,  Mr.  Cox  riphtly  thinks,  are  valuable,  as 
throwing  light  on  thuructer  which  more  formal  public  letters  do  not.  and  as  enabhng 
comparison  between  the  man  in  his  more  and  in  his  less  jruarded  moods.  Thus  the 
letter  to  Philemon  incidentally  brings  out  the  courtesj-  and  devotedness,  and  what  is  not 
so  often  recognized,  the  humour  of  the  Apostle  Paul.  It  also  furnishes  Mr.  Cox  with  an 
opportunity-  of  bringing  out  the  teaching  of  Christianity  concerning  slavery.  The 
Second  Epistle  of  St.  John  sets  forth  the  Apostle's  ideal  of  a  Christian  lady,  and  the 
third  that  he  formed  of  a  Christian  gentlemsui.  In  a  fresh,  natural,  and  practical  way, 
Mr.  Cox  touclies  the  points  brought  out  in  these  letters,  and  prefaces  each  lecture  with  a 
new  translation  of  the  epistle  on  which  he  discourses.  His  little  book  is  scholarly  and 
useful.  Mr.  Cox  is,  we  trust,  preparing  himself  for  a  more  important  work  in  this 
department  of  literature."— £ri7iji/i  Quarterly,  July,  1867. 

"  "We  have  been  much  pleased  with  portions  of  the  volume,  especially  with  those 
relating  to  the  Pauline  letter.  All  three  epistles  will,  we  think,  be  read  with  increased 
interest  after  a  perusal  of  this  Uttle  work."— 2'Ae  Friend,  Eighth  Month  \,  1867. 

"The  lectures  are  fresh,  racy,  and  scholar-like,  showing  a  remarkable  insight  into 
haracter,  and  bringing  out  many  of  those  traits  which  give  special  wcith  and  interest 
o  the  private  letters  of  public  men."— 27i<'  buuduy  Magazine,  AvyUbt,  18C7. 

"Mr.  Cox's  expositions  were  originally  delivered,  he  tells  us,  as  week-evening 
lectures  in  the  ordinary  course  of  his  mini.stry.  And  we  cannot  help  wondering,  if  so 
much  thought  and  pains-taking  can  be  given  to  week-evening  lectures,  what  must  be 
the  mental  wealth  lavished  on  the  ministrations  of  the  Lord's-day.  Mr.  Cox  is  happy  in 
his  subject,  and  successful  in  its  treatment ;  and  his  little  volume  cannot  fail  to  sati.sfr 
many  .--tudents  of  Scripture,  that  even  the  less  important  portions  of  Holy  Writ  will 
more  than  repay  all  the  labour  that  can  be  bestowed  upon  them."— TAe  Chritttan 
Witness,  Nov.,  1867. 

"  It  is  a  model  of  exposition.  It  will  be  read  with  satisfaction  alike  bv  the  scholar  and 
by  the  mere  English  reader.  It  is  full  of  learning,  without  any  parade  of  it.  It  need 
not  be  ashamed  to  take  its  modest  phice  by  the  side  of  the  greater  and  more  pretentious 
works  of  our  great  modem  expositors.  We  need  not  add  that  it  has  our  hearty  recom- 
mendation ;  and  we  only  hope  that  it  will  be  followed  by  other  productions,  cquall>- 
able,  and  equally  helpful  to  the  understanding  of  the  Di\-ine  Word,  from  the  same 
skilful  pen."- 77ie  Church,  August  1,  1867. 

"  This  small  volume  is  one  of  very  great  merit.  We  can  sincerely  congratulate  Mr. 
Cox's  hearers  on  the  rich  mental  repasts  with  which  they  are  constantlv  favoured.  The 
stj-le  in  which  Mr.  Cox  writes  is  greatly  to  be  commended  for  its  combination  of  fora- 
and  beauty,  while  the  subject -matter  is  such  as  only  a  cultivated  and  thoughtful  student 
of  Scripture  could  supply.  If  this  little  volume  had  been  pubhshed  anonymously,  con- 
jecture would  have  conferred  the  honour  of  its  production  upon  the  highest  names  in 
sacred  literature  ;  and  we  cannot  but  hope  that  its  author  will  be  spared  to  produce 
many  more  pages  of  like  volumes." — The  Baptist  Magazine,  Aov.,  1867. 


"  This  little  book  is  not  professedly  critical,  and  yet  is  highly  so  in  fact.  The  com- 
petent reader  will  see  that  it  is  the  fruit  of  wide  general  reading  and  of  much  biblical 
scholarship.  ...  To  bring  the  results  of  modern  criticism  on  the  sacred  canon 
within  the  reach  of  the  many,  and  to  do  it  in  such  a  way  that  they  shall  be  at  once 
perfectly  intelligible  and  attractive  to  persons  of  modern  education,  is  one  of  the  most 
pressing  wants  we  know  of.  It  is  for  this  inllucntial  but  loug-neglccted  class,  Mr.  Cox 
has  written.  We  gladly  accept  his  work  as  an  instalment  of  what  has,  in  this  respect, 
to  be  achieved ;  and  earnestly  hope  he  will  follow  it  in  due  time  by  others  which  shall 
aim  at  a  far  higher  mark.  A  greater  service  he  can  hardly  do, the  Church." — The 
General  Baptist  Magazine. 

"  It  was  a  happy  thought  to  select  the  private  letters  of  Paul  and  John  for  special 
examination  and  comment ;  and  in  the  little  volume  before  us  this  thought  is  worked 
out  with  singular  felicity  and  success.  Mr.  Cox  has  brought  rare  qualifications  to  his 
task.  Something  after  the  manner  adopted  by  Dexn  Stanley  in  dealing  with  the  Old 
Testament  History,  he  has  contrived  to  throw  around  these  brief  epistles  and  the 
events  to  which  they  relate,  a  feeling  of  historic  reality  and  human  interest  too  often 
wanting  in  theological  dissertations  about  Scripture  character  and  incident.  Without 
giving  the  reins  to  his  imagination,  or  indulging  in  mere  speculation  and  conjecture,  he 
has,  by  bringing  the  scattered  rays  of  light  to  be  derived  from  thoughtful  criticism  and 
varied  reading,  cast  very  vivid  illustration  upon  these  slight  fragments  of  the  Sacred 
Book."— 2%e  Herald  of  Peace,  August,  1867. 

"  This  is  a  beautiful  morsel  of  criticism,  delivered,  we  are  told  in  the  modest  prefatory 
note,  '  as  week-evening  lectures  in  th ;  ordinary  course  of  my  ministry.'  The  author 
must  have  a  choice  congregation  to  hear  such  things  as  these  as  week-evening  lectures, 
introduced  and  looked  for  as  matters  of  course:  they  are  characterised  by  depth, 
breadth,  and  length  of  view,  by  patience,  and  yet  by  freedom ;  careful  scholarship  and 
varied  reading.  If  the  author  takes  some  larger  portions  of  the  Word  of  God,  and  deals 
with  them  in  this  way,  he  will  do  something  great,  and  we  shall  not  have  to  regret  that 
the  ministers  of  the  Church  of  England  do  all  our  biblical  criticism  for  us.  Although 
he  says  these  pieces  were  delivered  to  congregations,  they  are  but  slightly  homiletical. 
There  is  the  fascination  of  a  pre-Raphaelite  picture  about  the  manner  in  which  he 
attempts  to  work  out  his  conceptions  of  the  personalities  and  circumstances  of  the 
Apostolic  correspondence,  and  the  neglected  Epistles  become  as  beautiful  as  some  deep 
shady  grove  suddenly  irradiated,  through  the  dark  boughs,  by  a  rich  beam  of  golden 
sunlight.  We  congratulate  the  author  heartily  on  the  success  of  his  first  critical  effort, 
and  respectfully  bid  him  take  time  aud  go  on." — Eclectic  Review,  Sept.,  1867. 

"  A  volume  in  the  perusal  of  which  we  have  been  much  interested,  and  which  we 
cordially  commend  to  our  readers  as  the  production  of  a  man  evidently  of  no  common 
culture  and  of  great  originality  of  mind." — The  Court  Circular,  July  6,  1867. 

"  We  have  not  met  of  late  with  so  unpretending  a  work  which  is  so  rich  in  thought 
and  instruction,  and  we  trust  that  Mr.  .Cox  will  feel  encouraged  to  illustrate  in  a 
similar  way  other  portions  of  the  Apostolic  writings."— TAc  Inquirer,  October  19,  1867. 

"  The  writer  evidently  possesses  a  keen  insight  into  the  meaning  of  these  letters,  and 
has  put  himself  in  sympathy  with  the  minds  of  the  Apostles  with  whose  words  he  deals. 
.  .  .  .  We  cordially  commend  this  book  as  both  a  scholarly  and  popular  exposi- 
tion of  parts  of  the  New  Testament  which  are  too  often  overlooked  by  all  classes  of 
readers." — The  Christian  World,  August  2,  1867. 

"  This  little  book  may  be  read  through  in  about  a  couple  of  hours  ;  but  it  contains 
the  fruit  of  many  hours'  study  and  retlection,  and  it  is  full  of  interesting  and  profitable 
matter.  It  is  a  valuable  volume ;  its  truth  and  beauty  will  cause  it  to  he  remembered 
with  pleasure  when  many  builder  volumes  are  forgotten."  —  The  Nonconformist. 

"  A  little  book  which  makes  no  pretension,  but  has  merits  rarely  to  be  found  in  more 
elaborate  treatises,  which  is  marked  throughout  by  a  singular  power  for  developing  the 
meaning  of  the  text,  which  is  full  of  thought,  rich  and  varied  in  illustration,  practical 
in  its  spirit,  and  earnest  in  its  appeals,  deserves  our  highest  commendation.  Mr.  Cox 
tells  us  that  these  singularly  beautiful  and  striking  teachings  were  the  substance  of 
week-evening  lectures  in  the  ordinary  course  of  his  ministry.  There  is  no  pulpit  to 
which  they  would  not  have  done  honour,  and  no  congregation  that  might  not  feel 
themselves  privileged  in  the  enjoyment  of  a  ministry  so  thoughtful,  and  yet  so  manly 
and  so  helpful.  These  discourses  are  very  models  of  what  Scnpture  exposition  ought 
to  be." — English  Independent. 

"  All  we  know  of  Mr.  Cox  is  negative.    lie  is  not  a  clerg3Tnan  of  the  Church  of  Eng- 


land,  but  to  what  other  body  he  ministers  we  are  not  informed.  Whoever  he  may  be, 
he  has  written  well  and  originally  on  what  ho  styles  the  '  private  letters '  of  the 
Apostles  St.  Paul  and  St.  John ;  that  is  the  Epistles  to  Philemon  by  the  former,  and 
those  to  Kyria  and  Oaius  by  the  '  beloved  disciple.'  It  will  bo  seen  at  onco  that  the  dis- 
tinction between  those  letters  and  those  intended  for  the  whole  Church,  is  real  and  not 
fanciful.  One  great  object  of  the  writer  is  to  .show  in  the  manner  of  the  lIora3  PauliniB, 
that  these  letters  are  in  every  way  what  the  more  general  writings  of  the  Apostles  would 
lead  us  to  expect ;  and  a  pleasing  confirmation  is  thus  atforded  us  of  the  genuineness  of 
the  whole." — The  Clerical  Journal. 

"  we  suppose  that  a  greater  human  interest  attaches  to  the  "  private"  Epistles  than 
to  those  addressed  to  communities  of  Christians.    In  a  very  readable  book,  Mr.  Co.x  has 

brought  this  element  of  human  interest  into  very  life-like  prominence Of 

Mr.  Cox  wo  know  nothing :  there  is  nothing  in  the  book  itself  to  determine  whether  he  is 
a  Dissenting  minister  or  a  priest  of  the  Catholic  Church,  unless  his  very  frequent  '  run- 
ning a-muS'  at  Ecclesiastical  history  for  making  this  or  that  Scripture  character  a 
'  bishop,*  and  one  or  two  isolated  piirases  may  be  taken  as  pointing  in  the  former 
diroction.  But  whether  a  Dissenter  or  a  Churchman,  he  has  (speaking  generally)  pro- 
duced a  book  which  no  Catholic  need  have  been  ashamed  ot  penning,  and  wmch  no 
Catholic  will  bo  able  to  peruse  without  pleasure  and  profit." — The  Church  Times, 
January  11,  1868. 

"  The  idea  of  this  little  volume  is  a  very  happy  one,  and  not  less  happy  in  the  execu- 
tion. To  comment  on  th*  Epistle  to  Philemon,  and  on  the  Epistles  to  Kyria  and  Oaius, 
to  bring  out  the  delicate  beautiful  thoughts  they  contain,  to  explain  the  allusions,  to 
tell  all  that  is  known  of  the  circumstances  of  their  authors,  when  they  wrote  them,  and 
to  gather  carefully  the  lessons  they  teach,  is  a  work  that  requires  no  small  .skill,  as  it 
yields  rich  instruction.  All  this  Mr.  Cox  has  done,  and  the  result  is  a  volume  which 
will  be  examined  with  great  interest  by  thoughtful  readers,  and  which  is  admirably 
fitted  to  minister  |to  the  spiritual  life  of  all.  .  .  .  The  microscopic  exposition  of 
Scripture  is  gaining  attention  on  all  sides — the  exposition  which  brings  out  the  moaning 
and  beauty  of  brief  expressions.  We  have  never  seen  it  used  with  juster  discrimination, 
nor  is  there  any  volume  we  know  in  which  it  is  turned  more  skUfully  to  the  purpose  of 
popular  instruction." — The  Freeman, 

"  It  is  refreshing  to  come  upon  a  little  book  like  this,  whose  worth  stands  in  inverse 
relation  to  its  size.  In  no  time  of  our  history  as  a  Christian  nation  has  it  been  more 
necessary  to  cast  out  the  evil  spirit  by  the  exoruising  presence  of  the  good.  Nothing 
can  be  more  influential  in  leading  people  away  from  an  endless  disputing  about  questions 
that  had  bettor  bo  left  to  settle  themselves  than  an  introduction  such  as  this  to  one  of 
the  'palace-chambers  far  apart'  in  the  souls  of  the  first  teachers  of  our  fiiith,  whore  their 
policy  may  be  found  as  lofty  as  their  creed.  People  of  different  opinions,  like  rough 
boys,  are  given  to  slamming  doors  in  each  other's  faces.  This  little  book  is  a  kind  of 
wedge  to  keep  the  door  of  heaven  open.  Every  man  of  true  heart  and  good  judgment 
will  read  it  with  comfort  and  hope.  We  trust  the  writer  will  meet  with  such  appre- 
ciation of  his  labour  as  will  encourage  him  to  do  a  similar  service  in  regard  to  other 
books  of  the  Bible.  There  are  many  who  cannot  search  out  for  themselves  what  they 
will  gladly  receive  when  presented  by  a  man  who  uses  the  genial  results  of  his  own 
patient  inquiry  to  build  up  the  faith  of  his  neighbour.  The  book  is  delightful  for  its 
earnestness,  large-heartedness,  and  truth." — Spectator,  July  13,  1867. 

"  A  handsomely  got-up  volume,  which  presents  a  complete  analysis  and  exposition  of 
the  chief  features  of  the  three  New  Testament  Epistles  addressed  to  private  pt-rsons— 
Philemon,  the  Elect  Lady,  and  Oaius.  The  author  has  done  justice  to  his  subject,  and, 
both  in  unpretentious  cnticism.  and  distinct  explanation,  thrown  much  light  on  valuable 
portions  of  sacred  truth." — The  Morning  Star  (June). 


"  This  is  one  of  a  class  of  books  which  suggest  a  question  as  to  the  rea.son  why  they 
should  be  published.  It  consists  of  three  lectures  of  a  very  common-placo  description." 
— The  Churchman. 


ARTHUR  MIALL,  18,  BOUVERIE  STREET,  FLEET  STREET,  E.G. 


Date  Due 

8H5  ,      , 

^_^^^^^i^.«^>^i 

r 

»r 

w 

^«,*.i*^ 

M-4*—- ^ 

f